<p>
<br /><br />
</p>
<h1>
THE TRAIL OF THE LONESOME PINE
</h1>
<p>
<br />
</p>
<h2>
BY JOHN FOX, JR.
</h2>
<p>
<br />
</p>
<h3>
ILLUSTRATED BY F. C. YOHN
</h3>
<p>
<br /> <SPAN name="linkimage-0001" id="linkimage-0001">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/frontispiece.jpg" alt="Frontispiece " width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0002" id="linkimage-0002">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/titlepage.jpg" alt="Titlepage " width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<h3>
To F. S.
</h3>
<p>
<br /> <br />
</p>
<hr />
<p>
<br /> <br />
</p>
<blockquote>
<p class="toc">
<big><b>CONTENTS</b></big>
</p>
<p>
<br />
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0002"> I </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0003"> II </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0004"> III </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0005"> IV </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0006"> V </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0007"> VI </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0008"> VII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0009"> VIII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0010"> IX </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0011"> X </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0012"> XI </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0013"> XII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0014"> XIII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0015"> XIV </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0016"> XV </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0017"> XVI </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0018"> XVII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0019"> XVIII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0020"> XIX </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0021"> XX </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0022"> XXI </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0023"> XXII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0024"> XXIII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0025"> XXIV </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0026"> XXV </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0027"> XXVI </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0028"> XXVII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0029"> XXVIII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0030"> XXIX </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0031"> XXX </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0032"> XXXI </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0033"> XXXII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0034"> XXXIII </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0035"> XXXIV </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#link2H_4_0036"> XXXV </SPAN>
</p>
<p>
<br /> <br />
</p>
<hr />
<p>
<br /> <br />
</p>
<p class="toc">
<big><b>ILLUSTRATIONS</b></big>
</p>
<p>
<br />
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0001"> Frontispiece </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0002"> Titlepage </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0003"> "Don't, Dad!" Shrieked a Voice from the
Bushes </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0004"> You Hain't Never Goin' to Marry Him." </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0005"> "Why Have You Brought Me Here?" </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0006"> "We'll Fight You Both!" </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0007"> Keep It Safe Old Pine </SPAN>
</p>
<p class="toc">
<SPAN href="#linkimage-0008"> She Made Him Tell of Everything </SPAN>
</p>
</blockquote>
<p>
<br /> <br />
</p>
<hr />
<p>
<br /> <br /> <SPAN name="link2H_4_0001" id="link2H_4_0001">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<h1>
THE TRAIL OF THE LONESOME PINE
</h1>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0002" id="link2H_4_0002">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
I
</h2>
<p>
She sat at the base of the big tree—her little sunbonnet pushed
back, her arms locked about her knees, her bare feet gathered under her
crimson gown and her deep eyes fixed on the smoke in the valley below. Her
breath was still coming fast between her parted lips. There were tiny
drops along the roots of her shining hair, for the climb had been steep,
and now the shadow of disappointment darkened her eyes. The mountains ran
in limitless blue waves towards the mounting sun—but at birth her
eyes had opened on them as on the white mists trailing up the steeps below
her. Beyond them was a gap in the next mountain chain and down in the
little valley, just visible through it, were trailing blue mists as well,
and she knew that they were smoke. Where was the great glare of yellow
light that the "circuit rider" had told about—and the leaping
tongues of fire? Where was the shrieking monster that ran without horses
like the wind and tossed back rolling black plumes all streaked with fire?
For many days now she had heard stories of the "furriners" who had come
into those hills and were doing strange things down there, and so at last
she had climbed up through the dewy morning from the cove on the other
side to see the wonders for herself. She had never been up there before.
She had no business there now, and, if she were found out when she got
back, she would get a scolding and maybe something worse from her
step-mother—and all that trouble and risk for nothing but smoke. So,
she lay back and rested—her little mouth tightening fiercely. It was
a big world, though, that was spread before her and a vague awe of it
seized her straightway and held her motionless and dreaming. Beyond those
white mists trailing up the hills, beyond the blue smoke drifting in the
valley, those limitless blue waves must run under the sun on and on to the
end of the world! Her dead sister had gone into that far silence and had
brought back wonderful stories of that outer world: and she began to
wonder more than ever before whether she would ever go into it and see for
herself what was there. With the thought, she rose slowly to her feet,
moved slowly to the cliff that dropped sheer ten feet aside from the
trail, and stood there like a great scarlet flower in still air. There was
the way at her feet—that path that coiled under the cliff and ran
down loop by loop through majestic oak and poplar and masses of
rhododendron. She drew a long breath and stirred uneasily—she'd
better go home now—but the path had a snake-like charm for her and
still she stood, following it as far down as she could with her eyes. Down
it went, writhing this way and that to a spur that had been swept bare by
forest fires. Along this spur it travelled straight for a while and, as
her eyes eagerly followed it to where it sank sharply into a covert of
maples, the little creature dropped of a sudden to the ground and, like
something wild, lay flat.
</p>
<p>
A human figure had filled the leafy mouth that swallowed up the trail and
it was coming towards her. With a thumping heart she pushed slowly forward
through the brush until her face, fox-like with cunning and screened by a
blueberry bush, hung just over the edge of the cliff, and there she lay,
like a crouched panther-cub, looking down. For a moment, all that was
human seemed gone from her eyes, but, as she watched, all that was lost
came back to them, and something more. She had seen that it was a man, but
she had dropped so quickly that she did not see the big, black horse that,
unled, was following him. Now both man and horse had stopped. The stranger
had taken off his gray slouched hat and he was wiping his face with
something white. Something blue was tied loosely about his throat. She had
never seen a man like that before. His face was smooth and looked
different, as did his throat and his hands. His breeches were tight and on
his feet were strange boots that were the colour of his saddle, which was
deep in seat, high both in front and behind and had strange long-hooded
stirrups. Starting to mount, the man stopped with one foot in the stirrup
and raised his eyes towards her so suddenly that she shrank back again
with a quicker throbbing at her heart and pressed closer to the earth.
Still, seen or not seen, flight was easy for her, so she could not forbear
to look again. Apparently, he had seen nothing—only that the next
turn of the trail was too steep to ride, and so he started walking again,
and his walk, as he strode along the path, was new to her, as was the
erect way with which he held his head and his shoulders.
</p>
<p>
In her wonder over him, she almost forgot herself, forgot to wonder where
he was going and why he was coming into those lonely hills until, as his
horse turned a bend of the trail, she saw hanging from the other side of
the saddle something that looked like a gun. He was a "raider"—that
man: so, cautiously and swiftly then, she pushed herself back from the
edge of the cliff, sprang to her feet, dashed past the big tree and,
winged with fear, sped down the mountain—leaving in a spot of
sunlight at the base of the pine the print of one bare foot in the black
earth.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0003" id="link2H_4_0003">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
II
</h2>
<p>
He had seen the big pine when he first came to those hills—one
morning, at daybreak, when the valley was a sea of mist that threw soft
clinging spray to the very mountain tops: for even above the mists, that
morning, its mighty head arose—sole visible proof that the earth
still slept beneath. Straightway, he wondered how it had ever got there,
so far above the few of its kind that haunted the green dark ravines far
below. Some whirlwind, doubtless, had sent a tiny cone circling heavenward
and dropped it there. It had sent others, too, no doubt, but how had this
tree faced wind and storm alone and alone lived to defy both so proudly?
Some day he would learn. Thereafter, he had seen it, at noon—but
little less majestic among the oaks that stood about it; had seen it
catching the last light at sunset, clean-cut against the after-glow, and
like a dark, silent, mysterious sentinel guarding the mountain pass under
the moon. He had seen it giving place with sombre dignity to the passing
burst of spring—had seen it green among dying autumn leaves, green
in the gray of winter trees and still green in a shroud of snow—a
changeless promise that the earth must wake to life again. The Lonesome
Pine, the mountaineers called it, and the Lonesome Pine it always looked
to be. From the beginning it had a curious fascination for him, and
straightway within him—half exile that he was—there sprang up
a sympathy for it as for something that was human and a brother. And now
he was on the trail of it at last. From every point that morning it had
seemed almost to nod down to him as he climbed and, when he reached the
ledge that gave him sight of it from base to crown, the winds murmured
among its needles like a welcoming voice. At once, he saw the secret of
its life. On each side rose a cliff that had sheltered it from storms
until its trunk had shot upwards so far and so straight and so strong that
its green crown could lift itself on and on and bend—blow what might—as
proudly and securely as a lily on its stalk in a morning breeze. Dropping
his bridle rein he put one hand against it as though on the shoulder of a
friend.
</p>
<p>
"Old Man," he said, "You must be pretty lonesome up here, and I'm glad to
meet you."
</p>
<p>
For a while he sat against it—resting. He had no particular purpose
that day—no particular destination. His saddle-bags were across the
cantle of his cow-boy saddle. His fishing rod was tied under one flap. He
was young and his own master. Time was hanging heavy on his hands that day
and he loved the woods and the nooks and crannies of them where his own
kind rarely made its way. Beyond, the cove looked dark, forbidding,
mysterious, and what was beyond he did not know. So down there he would
go. As he bent his head forward to rise, his eye caught the spot of
sunlight, and he leaned over it with a smile. In the black earth was a
human foot-print—too small and slender for the foot of a man, a boy
or a woman. Beyond, the same prints were visible—wider apart—and
he smiled again. A girl had been there. She was the crimson flash that he
saw as he started up the steep and mistook for a flaming bush of sumach.
She had seen him coming and she had fled. Still smiling, he rose to his
feet.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0004" id="link2H_4_0004">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
III
</h2>
<p>
On one side he had left the earth yellow with the coming noon, but it was
still morning as he went down on the other side. The laurel and
rhododendron still reeked with dew in the deep, ever-shaded ravine. The
ferns drenched his stirrups, as he brushed through them, and each dripping
tree-top broke the sunlight and let it drop in tent-like beams through the
shimmering undermist. A bird flashed here and there through the green
gloom, but there was no sound in the air but the footfalls of his horse
and the easy creaking of leather under him, the drip of dew overhead and
the running of water below. Now and then he could see the same slender
foot-prints in the rich loam and he saw them in the sand where the first
tiny brook tinkled across the path from a gloomy ravine. There the little
creature had taken a flying leap across it and, beyond, he could see the
prints no more. He little guessed that while he halted to let his horse
drink, the girl lay on a rock above him, looking down. She was nearer home
now and was less afraid; so she had slipped from the trail and climbed
above it there to watch him pass. As he went on, she slid from her perch
and with cat-footed quiet followed him. When he reached the river she saw
him pull in his horse and eagerly bend forward, looking into a pool just
below the crossing. There was a bass down there in the clear water—a
big one—and the man whistled cheerily and dismounted, tying his
horse to a sassafras bush and unbuckling a tin bucket and a curious
looking net from his saddle. With the net in one hand and the bucket in
the other, he turned back up the creek and passed so close to where she
had slipped aside into the bushes that she came near shrieking, but his
eyes were fixed on a pool of the creek above and, to her wonder, he
strolled straight into the water, with his boots on, pushing the net in
front of him.
</p>
<p>
He was a "raider" sure, she thought now, and he was looking for a
"moonshine" still, and the wild little thing in the bushes smiled
cunningly—there was no still up that creek—and as he had left
his horse below and his gun, she waited for him to come back, which he
did, by and by, dripping and soaked to his knees. Then she saw him untie
the queer "gun" on his saddle, pull it out of a case and—her eyes
got big with wonder—take it to pieces and make it into a long limber
rod. In a moment he had cast a minnow into the pool and waded out into the
water up to his hips. She had never seen so queer a fishing-pole—so
queer a fisherman. How could he get a fish out with that little switch,
she thought contemptuously? By and by something hummed queerly, the man
gave a slight jerk and a shining fish flopped two feet into the air. It
was surely very queer, for the man didn't put his rod over his shoulder
and walk ashore, as did the mountaineers, but stood still, winding
something with one hand, and again the fish would flash into the air and
then that humming would start again while the fisherman would stand quiet
and waiting for a while—and then he would begin to wind again. In
her wonder, she rose unconsciously to her feet and a stone rolled down to
the ledge below her. The fisherman turned his head and she started to run,
but without a word he turned again to the fish he was playing. Moreover,
he was too far out in the water to catch her, so she advanced slowly—even
to the edge of the stream, watching the fish cut half circles about the
man. If he saw her, he gave no notice, and it was well that he did not. He
was pulling the bass to and fro now through the water, tiring him out—drowning
him—stepping backward at the same time, and, a moment later, the
fish slid easily out of the edge of the water, gasping along the edge of a
low sand-bank, and the fisherman reaching down with one hand caught him in
the gills. Then he looked up and smiled—and she had seen no smile
like that before.
</p>
<p>
"Howdye, Little Girl?"
</p>
<p>
One bare toe went burrowing suddenly into the sand, one finger went to her
red mouth—and that was all. She merely stared him straight in the
eye and he smiled again.
</p>
<p>
"Cat got your tongue?"
</p>
<p>
Her eyes fell at the ancient banter, but she lifted them straightway and
stared again.
</p>
<p>
"You live around here?"
</p>
<p>
She stared on.
</p>
<p>
"Where?"
</p>
<p>
No answer.
</p>
<p>
"What's your name, little girl?"
</p>
<p>
And still she stared.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, well, of course, you can't talk, if the cat's got your tongue."
</p>
<p>
The steady eyes leaped angrily, but there was still no answer, and he bent
to take the fish off his hook, put on a fresh minnow, turned his back and
tossed it into the pool.
</p>
<p>
"Hit hain't!"
</p>
<p>
He looked up again. She surely was a pretty little thing—and more,
now that she was angry.
</p>
<p>
"I should say not," he said teasingly. "What did you say your name was?"
</p>
<p>
"What's YO' name?"
</p>
<p>
The fisherman laughed. He was just becoming accustomed to the mountain
etiquette that commands a stranger to divulge himself first.
</p>
<p>
"My name's—Jack."
</p>
<p>
"An' mine's—Jill." She laughed now, and it was his time for surprise—where
could she have heard of Jack and Jill?
</p>
<p>
His line rang suddenly.
</p>
<p>
"Jack," she cried, "you got a bite!"
</p>
<p>
He pulled, missed the strike, and wound in. The minnow was all right, so
he tossed it back again.
</p>
<p>
"That isn't your name," he said.
</p>
<p>
"If 'tain't, then that ain't your'n?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes 'tis," he said, shaking his head affirmatively.
</p>
<p>
A long cry came down the ravine:
</p>
<p>
"J-u-n-e! eh—oh—J-u-n-e!" That was a queer name for the
mountains, and the fisherman wondered if he had heard aright—June.
</p>
<p>
The little girl gave a shrill answering cry, but she did not move.
</p>
<p>
"Thar now!" she said.
</p>
<p>
"Who's that—your Mammy?"
</p>
<p>
"No, 'tain't—hit's my step-mammy. I'm a goin' to ketch hell now."
Her innocent eyes turned sullen and her baby mouth tightened.
</p>
<p>
"Good Lord!" said the fisherman, startled, and then he stopped—the
words were as innocent on her lips as a benediction.
</p>
<p>
"Have you got a father?" Like a flash, her whole face changed.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon I have."
</p>
<p>
"Where is he?"
</p>
<p>
"Hyeh he is!" drawled a voice from the bushes, and it had a tone that made
the fisherman whirl suddenly. A giant mountaineer stood on the bank above
him, with a Winchester in the hollow of his arm.
</p>
<p>
"How are you?" The giant's heavy eyes lifted quickly, but he spoke to the
girl.
</p>
<p>
"You go on home—what you doin' hyeh gassin' with furriners!"
</p>
<p>
The girl shrank to the bushes, but she cried sharply back:
</p>
<p>
"Don't you hurt him now, Dad. He ain't even got a pistol. He ain't no—"
</p>
<p>
"Shet up!" The little creature vanished and the mountaineer turned to the
fisherman, who had just put on a fresh minnow and tossed it into the
river.
</p>
<p>
"Purty well, thank you," he said shortly. "How are you?"
</p>
<p>
"Fine!" was the nonchalant answer. For a moment there was silence and a
puzzled frown gathered on the mountaineer's face.
</p>
<p>
"That's a bright little girl of yours—What did she mean by telling
you not to hurt me?"
</p>
<p>
"You haven't been long in these mountains, have ye?"
</p>
<p>
"No—not in THESE mountains—why?" The fisherman looked around
and was almost startled by the fierce gaze of his questioner.
</p>
<p>
"Stop that, please," he said, with a humourous smile. "You make me
nervous."
</p>
<p>
The mountaineer's bushy brows came together across the bridge of his nose
and his voice rumbled like distant thunder.
</p>
<p>
"What's yo' name, stranger, an' what's yo' business over hyeh?"
</p>
<p>
"Dear me, there you go! You can see I'm fishing, but why does everybody in
these mountains want to know my name?"
</p>
<p>
"You heerd me!"
</p>
<p>
"Yes." The fisherman turned again and saw the giant's rugged face stern
and pale with open anger now, and he, too, grew suddenly serious.
</p>
<p>
"Suppose I don't tell you," he said gravely. "What—"
</p>
<p>
"Git!" said the mountaineer, with a move of one huge hairy hand up the
mountain. "An' git quick!"
</p>
<p>
The fisherman never moved and there was the click of a shell thrown into
place in the Winchester and a guttural oath from the mountaineer's beard.
</p>
<p>
"Damn ye," he said hoarsely, raising the rifle. "I'll give ye—"
</p>
<p>
"Don't, Dad!" shrieked a voice from the bushes. "I know his name, hit's
Jack—" the rest of the name was unintelligible. The mountaineer
dropped the butt of his gun to the ground and laughed.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0003" id="linkimage-0003">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/0034.jpg"
alt="'don't, Dad!' Shrieked a Voice from the Bushes, 0034 " width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
"Oh, air YOU the engineer?"
</p>
<p>
The fisherman was angry now. He had not moved hand or foot and he said
nothing, but his mouth was set hard and his bewildered blue eyes had a
glint in them that the mountaineer did not at the moment see. He was
leaning with one arm on the muzzle of his Winchester, his face had
suddenly become suave and shrewd and now he laughed again:
</p>
<p>
"So you're Jack Hale, air ye?"
</p>
<p>
The fisherman spoke. "JOHN Hale, except to my friends." He looked hard at
the old man.
</p>
<p>
"Do you know that's a pretty dangerous joke of yours, my friend—I
might have a gun myself sometimes. Did you think you could scare me?" The
mountaineer stared in genuine surprise.
</p>
<p>
"Twusn't no joke," he said shortly. "An' I don't waste time skeering
folks. I reckon you don't know who I be?"
</p>
<p>
"I don't care who you are." Again the mountaineer stared.
</p>
<p>
"No use gittin' mad, young feller," he said coolly. "I mistaken ye fer
somebody else an' I axe yer pardon. When you git through fishin' come up
to the house right up the creek thar an' I'll give ye a dram."
</p>
<p>
"Thank you," said the fisherman stiffly, and the mountaineer turned
silently away. At the edge of the bushes, he looked back; the stranger was
still fishing, and the old man went on with a shake of his head.
</p>
<p>
"He'll come," he said to himself. "Oh, he'll come!"
</p>
<p>
That very point Hale was debating with himself as he unavailingly cast his
minnow into the swift water and slowly wound it in again. How did that old
man know his name? And would the old savage really have hurt him had he
not found out who he was? The little girl was a wonder: evidently she had
muffled his last name on purpose—not knowing it herself—and it
was a quick and cunning ruse. He owed her something for that—why did
she try to protect him? Wonderful eyes, too, the little thing had—deep
and dark—and how the flame did dart from them when she got angry! He
smiled, remembering—he liked that. And her hair—it was exactly
like the gold-bronze on the wing of a wild turkey that he had shot the day
before. Well, it was noon now, the fish had stopped biting after the
wayward fashion of bass, he was hungry and thirsty and he would go up and
see the little girl and the giant again and get that promised dram. Once
more, however, he let his minnow float down into the shadow of a big rock,
and while he was winding in, he looked up to see in the road two people on
a gray horse, a man with a woman behind him—both old and spectacled—all
three motionless on the bank and looking at him: and he wondered if all
three had stopped to ask his name and his business. No, they had just come
down to the creek and both they must know already.
</p>
<p>
"Ketching any?" called out the old man, cheerily.
</p>
<p>
"Only one," answered Hale with equal cheer. The old woman pushed back her
bonnet as he waded through the water towards them and he saw that she was
puffing a clay pipe. She looked at the fisherman and his tackle with the
naive wonder of a child, and then she said in a commanding undertone.
</p>
<p>
"Go on, Billy."
</p>
<p>
"Now, ole Hon, I wish ye'd jes' wait a minute." Hale smiled. He loved old
people, and two kinder faces he had never seen—two gentler voices he
had never heard.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you got the only green pyerch up hyeh," said the old man,
chuckling, "but thar's a sight of 'em down thar below my old mill."
Quietly the old woman hit the horse with a stripped branch of elm and the
old gray, with a switch of his tail, started.
</p>
<p>
"Wait a minute, Hon," he said again, appealingly, "won't ye?" but calmly
she hit the horse again and the old man called back over his shoulder:
</p>
<p>
"You come on down to the mill an' I'll show ye whar you can ketch a mess."
</p>
<p>
"All right," shouted Hale, holding back his laughter, and on they went,
the old man remonstrating in the kindliest way—the old woman
silently puffing her pipe and making no answer except to flay gently the
rump of the lazy old gray.
</p>
<p>
Hesitating hardly a moment, Hale unjointed his pole, left his minnow
bucket where it was, mounted his horse and rode up the path. About him,
the beech leaves gave back the gold of the autumn sunlight, and a little
ravine, high under the crest of the mottled mountain, was on fire with the
scarlet of maple. Not even yet had the morning chill left the densely
shaded path. When he got to the bare crest of a little rise, he could see
up the creek a spiral of blue rising swiftly from a stone chimney. Geese
and ducks were hunting crawfish in the little creek that ran from a
milk-house of logs, half hidden by willows at the edge of the forest, and
a turn in the path brought into view a log-cabin well chinked with stones
and plaster, and with a well-built porch. A fence ran around the yard and
there was a meat house near a little orchard of apple-trees, under which
were many hives of bee-gums. This man had things "hung up" and was
well-to-do. Down the rise and through a thicket he went, and as he
approached the creek that came down past the cabin there was a shrill cry
ahead of him.
</p>
<p>
"Whoa thar, Buck! Gee-haw, I tell ye!" An ox-wagon evidently was coming
on, and the road was so narrow that he turned his horse into the bushes to
let it pass.
</p>
<p>
"Whoa—Haw!—Gee—Gee—Buck, Gee, I tell ye! I'll
knock yo' fool head off the fust thing you know!"
</p>
<p>
Still there was no sound of ox or wagon and the voice sounded like a
child's. So he went on at a walk in the thick sand, and when he turned the
bushes he pulled up again with a low laugh. In the road across the creek
was a chubby, tow-haired boy with a long switch in his right hand, and a
pine dagger and a string in his left. Attached to the string and tied by
one hind leg was a frog. The boy was using the switch as a goad and
driving the frog as an ox, and he was as earnest as though both were real.
</p>
<p>
"I give ye a little rest now, Buck," he said, shaking his head earnestly.
"Hit's a purty hard pull hyeh, but I know, by Gum, you can make hit—if
you hain't too durn lazy. Now, git up, Buck!" he yelled suddenly, flaying
the sand with his switch. "Git up—Whoa—Haw—Gee, Gee!"
The frog hopped several times.
</p>
<p>
"Whoa, now!" said the little fellow, panting in sympathy. "I knowed you
could do it." Then he looked up. For an instant he seemed terrified but he
did not run. Instead he stealthily shifted the pine dagger over to his
right hand and the string to his left.
</p>
<p>
"Here, boy," said the fisherman with affected sternness: "What are you
doing with that dagger?"
</p>
<p>
The boy's breast heaved and his dirty fingers clenched tight around the
whittled stick.
</p>
<p>
"Don't you talk to me that-a-way," he said with an ominous shake of his
head. "I'll gut ye!"
</p>
<p>
The fisherman threw back his head, and his peal of laughter did what his
sternness failed to do. The little fellow wheeled suddenly, and his feet
spurned the sand around the bushes for home—the astonished frog
dragged bumping after him. "Well!" said the fisherman.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0005" id="link2H_4_0005">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
IV
</h2>
<p>
Even the geese in the creek seemed to know that he was a stranger and to
distrust him, for they cackled and, spreading their wings, fled cackling
up the stream. As he neared the house, the little girl ran around the
stone chimney, stopped short, shaded her eyes with one hand for a moment
and ran excitedly into the house. A moment later, the bearded giant
slouched out, stooping his head as he came through the door.
</p>
<p>
"Hitch that 'ar post to yo' hoss and come right in," he thundered
cheerily. "I'm waitin' fer ye."
</p>
<p>
The little girl came to the door, pushed one brown slender hand through
her tangled hair, caught one bare foot behind a deer-like ankle and stood
motionless. Behind her was the boy—his dagger still in hand.
</p>
<p>
"Come right in!" said the old man, "we are purty pore folks, but you're
welcome to what we have."
</p>
<p>
The fisherman, too, had to stoop as he came in, for he, too, was tall. The
interior was dark, in spite of the wood fire in the big stone fireplace.
Strings of herbs and red-pepper pods and twisted tobacco hung from the
ceiling and down the wall on either side of the fire; and in one corner,
near the two beds in the room, hand-made quilts of many colours were piled
several feet high. On wooden pegs above the door where ten years before
would have been buck antlers and an old-fashioned rifle, lay a Winchester;
on either side of the door were auger holes through the logs (he did not
understand that they were port-holes) and another Winchester stood in the
corner. From the mantel the butt of a big 44-Colt's revolver protruded
ominously. On one of the beds in the corner he could see the outlines of a
figure lying under a brilliantly figured quilt, and at the foot of it the
boy with the pine dagger had retreated for refuge. From the moment he
stooped at the door something in the room had made him vaguely uneasy, and
when his eyes in swift survey came back to the fire, they passed the blaze
swiftly and met on the edge of the light another pair of eyes burning on
him.
</p>
<p>
"Howdye!" said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Howdye!" was the low, unpropitiating answer.
</p>
<p>
The owner of the eyes was nothing but a boy, in spite of his length: so
much of a boy that a slight crack in his voice showed that it was just
past the throes of "changing," but those black eyes burned on without
swerving—except once when they flashed at the little girl who, with
her chin in her hand and one foot on the top rung of her chair, was gazing
at the stranger with equal steadiness. She saw the boy's glance, she
shifted her knees impatiently and her little face grew sullen. Hale smiled
inwardly, for he thought he could already see the lay of the land, and he
wondered that, at such an age, such fierceness could be: so every now and
then he looked at the boy, and every time he looked, the black eyes were
on him. The mountain youth must have been almost six feet tall, young as
he was, and while he was lanky in limb he was well knit. His jean trousers
were stuffed in the top of his boots and were tight over his knees which
were well-moulded, and that is rare with a mountaineer. A loop of black
hair curved over his forehead, down almost to his left eye. His nose was
straight and almost delicate and his mouth was small, but extraordinarily
resolute. Somewhere he had seen that face before, and he turned suddenly,
but he did not startle the lad with his abruptness, nor make him turn his
gaze.
</p>
<p>
"Why, haven't I—?" he said. And then he suddenly remembered. He had
seen that boy not long since on the other side of the mountains, riding
his horse at a gallop down the county road with his reins in his teeth,
and shooting a pistol alternately at the sun and the earth with either
hand. Perhaps it was as well not to recall the incident. He turned to the
old mountaineer.
</p>
<p>
"Do you mean to tell me that a man can't go through these mountains
without telling everybody who asks him what his name is?"
</p>
<p>
The effect of his question was singular. The old man spat into the fire
and put his hand to his beard. The boy crossed his legs suddenly and
shoved his muscular fingers deep into his pockets. The figure shifted
position on the bed and the infant at the foot of it seemed to clench his
toy-dagger a little more tightly. Only the little girl was motionless—she
still looked at him, unwinking. What sort of wild animals had he fallen
among?
</p>
<p>
"No, he can't—an' keep healthy." The giant spoke shortly.
</p>
<p>
"Why not?"
</p>
<p>
"Well, if a man hain't up to some devilment, what reason's he got fer not
tellin' his name?"
</p>
<p>
"That's his business."
</p>
<p>
"Tain't over hyeh. Hit's mine. Ef a man don't want to tell his name over
hyeh, he's a spy or a raider or a officer looking fer somebody or," he
added carelessly, but with a quick covert look at his visitor—"he's
got some kind o' business that he don't want nobody to know about."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I came over here—just to—well, I hardly know why I did
come."
</p>
<p>
"Jess so," said the old man dryly. "An' if ye ain't looking fer trouble,
you'd better tell your name in these mountains, whenever you're axed. Ef
enough people air backin' a custom anywhar hit goes, don't hit?"
</p>
<p>
His logic was good—and Hale said nothing. Presently the old man rose
with a smile on his face that looked cynical, picked up a black lump and
threw it into the fire. It caught fire, crackled, blazed, almost oozed
with oil, and Hale leaned forward and leaned back.
</p>
<p>
"Pretty good coal!"
</p>
<p>
"Hain't it, though?" The old man picked up a sliver that had flown to the
hearth and held a match to it. The piece blazed and burned in his hand.
</p>
<p>
"I never seed no coal in these mountains like that—did you?"
</p>
<p>
"Not often—find it around here?"
</p>
<p>
"Right hyeh on this farm—about five feet thick!"
</p>
<p>
"What?"
</p>
<p>
"An' no partin'."
</p>
<p>
"No partin'"—it was not often that he found a mountaineer who knew
what a parting in a coal bed was.
</p>
<p>
"A friend o' mine on t'other side,"—a light dawned for the engineer.
</p>
<p>
"Oh," he said quickly. "That's how you knew my name."
</p>
<p>
"Right you air, stranger. He tol' me you was a—expert."
</p>
<p>
The old man laughed loudly. "An' that's why you come over hyeh."
</p>
<p>
"No, it isn't."
</p>
<p>
"Co'se not,"—the old fellow laughed again. Hale shifted the talk.
</p>
<p>
"Well, now that you know my name, suppose you tell me what yours is?"
</p>
<p>
"Tolliver—Judd Tolliver." Hale started.
</p>
<p>
"Not Devil Judd!"
</p>
<p>
"That's what some evil folks calls me." Again he spoke shortly. The
mountaineers do not like to talk about their feuds. Hale knew this—and
the subject was dropped. But he watched the huge mountaineer with
interest. There was no more famous character in all those hills than the
giant before him—yet his face was kind and was good-humoured, but
the nose and eyes were the beak and eyes of some bird of prey. The little
girl had disappeared for a moment. She came back with a blue-backed
spelling-book, a second reader and a worn copy of "Mother Goose," and she
opened first one and then the other until the attention of the visitor was
caught—the black-haired youth watching her meanwhile with lowering
brows.
</p>
<p>
"Where did you learn to read?" Hale asked. The old man answered:
</p>
<p>
"A preacher come by our house over on the Nawth Fork 'bout three year ago,
and afore I knowed it he made me promise to send her sister Sally to some
school up thar on the edge of the settlements. And after she come home,
Sal larned that little gal to read and spell. Sal died 'bout a year ago."
</p>
<p>
Hale reached over and got the spelling-book, and the old man grinned at
the quick, unerring responses of the little girl, and the engineer looked
surprised. She read, too, with unusual facility, and her pronunciation was
very precise and not at all like her speech.
</p>
<p>
"You ought to send her to the same place," he said, but the old fellow
shook his head.
</p>
<p>
"I couldn't git along without her."
</p>
<p>
The little girl's eyes began to dance suddenly, and, without opening
"Mother Goose," she began:
</p>
<p>
"Jack and Jill went up a hill," and then she broke into a laugh and Hale
laughed with her.
</p>
<p>
Abruptly, the boy opposite rose to his great length.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon I better be goin'." That was all he said as he caught up a
Winchester, which stood unseen by his side, and out he stalked. There was
not a word of good-by, not a glance at anybody. A few minutes later Hale
heard the creak of a barn door on wooden hinges, a cursing command to a
horse, and four feet going in a gallop down the path, and he knew there
went an enemy.
</p>
<p>
"That's a good-looking boy—who is he?"
</p>
<p>
The old man spat into the fire. It seemed that he was not going to answer
and the little girl broke in:
</p>
<p>
"Hit's my cousin Dave—he lives over on the Nawth Fork."
</p>
<p>
That was the seat of the Tolliver-Falin feud. Of that feud, too, Hale had
heard, and so no more along that line of inquiry. He, too, soon rose to
go.
</p>
<p>
"Why, ain't ye goin' to have something to eat?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, no, I've got something in my saddlebags and I must be getting back to
the Gap."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I reckon you ain't. You're jes' goin' to take a snack right here."
Hale hesitated, but the little girl was looking at him with such
unconscious eagerness in her dark eyes that he sat down again.
</p>
<p>
"All right, I will, thank you." At once she ran to the kitchen and the old
man rose and pulled a bottle of white liquid from under the quilts.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon I can trust ye," he said. The liquor burned Hale like fire, and
the old man, with a laugh at the face the stranger made, tossed off a
tumblerful.
</p>
<p>
"Gracious!" said Hale, "can you do that often?"
</p>
<p>
"Afore breakfast, dinner and supper," said the old man—"but I
don't." Hale felt a plucking at his sleeve. It was the boy with the dagger
at his elbow.
</p>
<p>
"Less see you laugh that-a-way agin," said Bub with such deadly
seriousness that Hale unconsciously broke into the same peal.
</p>
<p>
"Now," said Bub, unwinking, "I ain't afeard o' you no more."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0006" id="link2H_4_0006">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
V
</h2>
<p>
Awaiting dinner, the mountaineer and the "furriner" sat on the porch while
Bub carved away at another pine dagger on the stoop. As Hale passed out
the door, a querulous voice said "Howdye" from the bed in the corner and
he knew it was the step-mother from whom the little girl expected some
nether-world punishment for an offence of which he was ignorant. He had
heard of the feud that had been going on between the red Falins and the
black Tollivers for a quarter of a century, and this was Devil Judd, who
had earned his nickname when he was the leader of his clan by his terrible
strength, his marksmanship, his cunning and his courage. Some years since
the old man had retired from the leadership, because he was tired of
fighting or because he had quarrelled with his brother Dave and his
foster-brother, Bad Rufe—known as the terror of the Tollivers—or
from some unknown reason, and in consequence there had been peace for a
long time—the Falins fearing that Devil Judd would be led into the
feud again, the Tollivers wary of starting hostilities without his aid.
After the last trouble, Bad Rufe Tolliver had gone West and old Judd had
moved his family as far away as possible. Hale looked around him: this,
then, was the home of Devil Judd Tolliver; the little creature inside was
his daughter and her name was June. All around the cabin the wooded
mountains towered except where, straight before his eyes, Lonesome Creek
slipped through them to the river, and the old man had certainly picked
out the very heart of silence for his home. There was no neighbour within
two leagues, Judd said, except old Squire Billy Beams, who ran a mill a
mile down the river. No wonder the spot was called Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
"You must ha' seed Uncle Billy and ole Hon passin'," he said.
</p>
<p>
"I did." Devil Judd laughed and Hale made out that "Hon" was short for
Honey.
</p>
<p>
"Uncle Billy used to drink right smart. Ole Hon broke him. She followed
him down to the grocery one day and walked in. 'Come on, boys—let's
have a drink'; and she set 'em up an' set 'em up until Uncle Billy most
went crazy. He had hard work gittin' her home, an' Uncle Billy hain't
teched a drap since." And the old mountaineer chuckled again.
</p>
<p>
All the time Hale could hear noises from the kitchen inside. The old
step-mother was abed, he had seen no other woman about the house and he
wondered if the child could be cooking dinner. Her flushed face answered
when she opened the kitchen door and called them in. She had not only
cooked but now she served as well, and when he thanked her, as he did
every time she passed something to him, she would colour faintly. Once or
twice her hand seemed to tremble, and he never looked at her but her
questioning dark eyes were full upon him, and always she kept one hand
busy pushing her thick hair back from her forehead. He had not asked her
if it was her footprints he had seen coming down the mountain for fear
that he might betray her, but apparently she had told on herself, for Bub,
after a while, burst out suddenly:
</p>
<p>
"June, thar, thought you was a raider." The little girl flushed and the
old man laughed.
</p>
<p>
"So'd you, pap," she said quietly.
</p>
<p>
"That's right," he said. "So'd anybody. I reckon you're the first man that
ever come over hyeh jus' to go a-fishin'," and he laughed again. The
stress on the last words showed that he believed no man had yet come just
for that purpose, and Hale merely laughed with him. The old fellow gulped
his food, pushed his chair back, and when Hale was through, he wasted no
more time.
</p>
<p>
"Want to see that coal?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, I do," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"All right, I'll be ready in a minute."
</p>
<p>
The little girl followed Hale out on the porch and stood with her back
against the railing.
</p>
<p>
"Did you catch it?" he asked. She nodded, unsmiling.
</p>
<p>
"I'm sorry. What were you doing up there?" She showed no surprise that he
knew that she had been up there, and while she answered his question, he
could see that she was thinking of something else.
</p>
<p>
"I'd heerd so much about what you furriners was a-doin' over thar."
</p>
<p>
"You must have heard about a place farther over—but it's coming over
there, too, some day." And still she looked an unspoken question.
</p>
<p>
The fish that Hale had caught was lying where he had left it on the edge
of the porch.
</p>
<p>
"That's for you, June," he said, pointing to it, and the name as he spoke
it was sweet to his ears.
</p>
<p>
"I'm much obleeged," she said, shyly. "I'd 'a' cooked hit fer ye if I'd
'a' knowed you wasn't goin' to take hit home."
</p>
<p>
"That's the reason I didn't give it to you at first—I was afraid
you'd do that. I wanted you to have it."
</p>
<p>
"Much obleeged," she said again, still unsmiling, and then she suddenly
looked up at him—the deeps of her dark eyes troubled.
</p>
<p>
"Air ye ever comin' back agin, Jack?" Hale was not accustomed to the
familiar form of address common in the mountains, independent of sex or
age—and he would have been staggered had not her face been so
serious. And then few women had ever called him by his first name, and
this time his own name was good to his ears.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, June," he said soberly. "Not for some time, maybe—but I'm
coming back again, sure." She smiled then with both lips and eyes—radiantly.
</p>
<p>
"I'll be lookin' fer ye," she said simply.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0007" id="link2H_4_0007">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
VI
</h2>
<p>
The old man went with him up the creek and, passing the milk house, turned
up a brush-bordered little branch in which the engineer saw signs of coal.
Up the creek the mountaineer led him some thirty yards above the water
level and stopped. An entry had been driven through the rich earth and ten
feet within was a shining bed of coal. There was no parting except two
inches of mother-of-coal—midway, which would make it but easier to
mine. Who had taught that old man to open coal in such a way—to make
such a facing? It looked as though the old fellow were in some scheme with
another to get him interested. As he drew closer, he saw radiations of
some twelve inches, all over the face of the coal, star-shaped, and he
almost gasped. It was not only cannel coal—it was "bird's-eye"
cannel. Heavens, what a find! Instantly he was the cautious man of
business, alert, cold, uncommunicative.
</p>
<p>
"That looks like a pretty good—" he drawled the last two words—"vein
of coal. I'd like to take a sample over to the Gap and analyze it." His
hammer, which he always carried—was in his saddle pockets, but he
did not have to go down to his horse. There were pieces on the ground that
would suit his purpose, left there, no doubt, by his predecessor.
</p>
<p>
"Now I reckon you know that I know why you came over hyeh."
</p>
<p>
Hale started to answer, but he saw it was no use.
</p>
<p>
"Yes—and I'm coming again—for the same reason."
</p>
<p>
"Shore—come agin and come often."
</p>
<p>
The little girl was standing on the porch as he rode past the milk house.
He waved his hand to her, but she did not move nor answer. What a life for
a child—for that keen-eyed, sweet-faced child! But that coal,
cannel, rich as oil, above water, five feet in thickness, easy to mine,
with a solid roof and perhaps self-drainage, if he could judge from the
dip of the vein: and a market everywhere—England, Spain, Italy,
Brazil. The coal, to be sure, might not be persistent—thirty yards
within it might change in quality to ordinary bituminous coal, but he
could settle that only with a steam drill. A steam drill! He would as well
ask for the wagon that he had long ago hitched to a star; and then there
might be a fault in the formation. But why bother now? The coal would stay
there, and now he had other plans that made even that find insignificant.
And yet if he bought that coal now—what a bargain! It was not that
the ideals of his college days were tarnished, but he was a man of
business now, and if he would take the old man's land for a song—it
was because others of his kind would do the same! But why bother, he asked
himself again, when his brain was in a ferment with a colossal scheme that
would make dizzy the magnates who would some day drive their roadways of
steel into those wild hills. So he shook himself free of the question,
which passed from his mind only with a transient wonder as to who it was
that had told of him to the old mountaineer, and had so paved his way for
an investigation—and then he wheeled suddenly in his saddle. The
bushes had rustled gently behind him and out from them stepped an
extraordinary human shape—wearing a coon-skin cap, belted with two
rows of big cartridges, carrying a big Winchester over one shoulder and a
circular tube of brass in his left hand. With his right leg straight, his
left thigh drawn into the hollow of his saddle and his left hand on the
rump of his horse, Hale simply stared, his eyes dropping by and by from
the pale-blue eyes and stubbly red beard of the stranger, down past the
cartridge-belts to the man's feet, on which were moccasins—with the
heels forward! Into what sort of a world had he dropped!
</p>
<p>
"So nary a soul can tell which way I'm going," said the red-haired
stranger, with a grin that loosed a hollow chuckle far behind it.
</p>
<p>
"Would you mind telling me what difference it can make to me which way you
are going?" Every moment he was expecting the stranger to ask his name,
but again that chuckle came.
</p>
<p>
"It makes a mighty sight o' difference to some folks."
</p>
<p>
"But none to me."
</p>
<p>
"I hain't wearin' 'em fer you. I know YOU."
</p>
<p>
"Oh, you do." The stranger suddenly lowered his Winchester and turned his
face, with his ear cocked like an animal. There was some noise on the spur
above.
</p>
<p>
"Nothin' but a hickory nut," said the chuckle again. But Hale had been
studying that strange face. One side of it was calm, kindly, philosophic,
benevolent; but, when the other was turned, a curious twitch of the
muscles at the left side of the mouth showed the teeth and made a snarl
there that was wolfish.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, and I know you," he said slowly. Self-satisfaction, straightway, was
ardent in the face.
</p>
<p>
"I knowed you would git to know me in time, if you didn't now."
</p>
<p>
This was the Red Fox of the mountains, of whom he had heard so much—"yarb"
doctor and Swedenborgian preacher; revenue officer and, some said,
cold-blooded murderer. He would walk twenty miles to preach, or would
start at any hour of the day or night to minister to the sick, and would
charge for neither service. At other hours he would be searching for
moonshine stills, or watching his enemies in the valley from some mountain
top, with that huge spy-glass—Hale could see now that the brass tube
was a telescope—that he might slip down and unawares take a pot-shot
at them. The Red Fox communicated with spirits, had visions and superhuman
powers of locomotion—stepping mysteriously from the bushes, people
said, to walk at the traveller's side and as mysteriously disappearing
into them again, to be heard of in a few hours an incredible distance
away.
</p>
<p>
"I've been watchin' ye from up thar," he said with a wave of his hand. "I
seed ye go up the creek, and then the bushes hid ye. I know what you was
after—but did you see any signs up thar of anything you wasn't
looking fer?"
</p>
<p>
Hale laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I've been in these mountains long enough not to tell you, if I
had."
</p>
<p>
The Red Fox chuckled.
</p>
<p>
"I wasn't sure you had—" Hale coughed and spat to the other side of
his horse. When he looked around, the Red Fox was gone, and he had heard
no sound of his going.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I be—" Hale clucked to his horse and as he climbed the last
steep and drew near the Big Pine he again heard a noise out in the woods
and he knew this time it was the fall of a human foot and not of a hickory
nut. He was right, and, as he rode by the Pine, saw again at its base the
print of the little girl's foot—wondering afresh at the reason that
led her up there—and dropped down through the afternoon shadows
towards the smoke and steam and bustle and greed of the Twentieth Century.
A long, lean, black-eyed boy, with a wave of black hair over his forehead,
was pushing his horse the other way along the Big Black and dropping down
through the dusk into the Middle Ages—both all but touching on
either side the outstretched hands of the wild little creature left in the
shadows of Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0008" id="link2H_4_0008">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
VII
</h2>
<p>
Past the Big Pine, swerving with a smile his horse aside that he might not
obliterate the foot-print in the black earth, and down the mountain, his
brain busy with his big purpose, went John Hale, by instinct, inheritance,
blood and tradition—pioneer.
</p>
<p>
One of his forefathers had been with Washington on the Father's first
historic expedition into the wilds of Virginia. His great-grandfather had
accompanied Boone when that hunter first penetrated the "Dark and Bloody
Ground," had gone back to Virginia and come again with a surveyor's chain
and compass to help wrest it from the red men, among whom there had been
an immemorial conflict for possession and a never-recognized claim of
ownership. That compass and that chain his grandfather had fallen heir to
and with that compass and chain his father had earned his livelihood amid
the wrecks of the Civil War. Hale went to the old Transylvania University
at Lexington, the first seat of learning planted beyond the Alleghanies.
He was fond of history, of the sciences and literature, was unusually
adept in Latin and Greek, and had a passion for mathematics. He was
graduated with honours, he taught two years and got his degree of Master
of Arts, but the pioneer spirit in his blood would still out, and his
polite learning he then threw to the winds.
</p>
<p>
Other young Kentuckians had gone West in shoals, but he kept his eye on
his own State, and one autumn he added a pick to the old compass and the
ancestral chain, struck the Old Wilderness Trail that his grandfather had
travelled, to look for his own fortune in a land which that old gentleman
had passed over as worthless. At the Cumberland River he took a canoe and
drifted down the river into the wild coal-swollen hills. Through the
winter he froze, starved and prospected, and a year later he was opening
up a region that became famous after his trust and inexperience had let
others worm out of him an interest that would have made him easy for life.
</p>
<p>
With the vision of a seer, he was as innocent as Boone. Stripped clean, he
got out his map, such geological reports as he could find and went into a
studious trance for a month, emerging mentally with the freshness of a
snake that has shed its skin. What had happened in Pennsylvania must
happen all along the great Alleghany chain in the mountains of Virginia,
West Virginia, Kentucky, Alabama, Tennessee. Some day the avalanche must
sweep south, it must—it must. That he might be a quarter of a
century too soon in his calculations never crossed his mind. Some day it
must come.
</p>
<p>
Now there was not an ounce of coal immediately south-east of the
Cumberland Mountains—not an ounce of iron ore immediately
north-east; all the coal lay to the north-east; all of the iron ore to the
south-east. So said Geology. For three hundred miles there were only four
gaps through that mighty mountain chain—three at water level, and
one at historic Cumberland Gap which was not at water level and would have
to be tunnelled. So said Geography.
</p>
<p>
All railroads, to east and to west, would have to pass through those gaps;
through them the coal must be brought to the iron ore, or the ore to the
coal. Through three gaps water flowed between ore and coal and the very
hills between were limestone. Was there any such juxtaposition of the four
raw materials for the making of iron in the known world? When he got that
far in his logic, the sweat broke from his brows; he felt dizzy and he got
up and walked into the open air. As the vastness and certainty of the
scheme—what fool could not see it?—rushed through him full
force, he could scarcely get his breath. There must be a town in one of
those gaps—but in which? No matter—he would buy all of them—all
of them, he repeated over and over again; for some day there must be a
town in one, and some day a town in all, and from all he would reap his
harvest. He optioned those four gaps at a low purchase price that was
absurd. He went back to the Bluegrass; he went to New York; in some way he
managed to get to England. It had never crossed his mind that other eyes
could not see what he so clearly saw and yet everywhere he was pronounced
crazy. He failed and his options ran out, but he was undaunted. He picked
his choice of the four gaps and gave up the other three. This favourite
gap he had just finished optioning again, and now again he meant to keep
at his old quest. That gap he was entering now from the north side and the
North Fork of the river was hurrying to enter too. On his left was a great
gray rock, projecting edgewise, covered with laurel and rhododendron, and
under it was the first big pool from which the stream poured faster still.
There had been a terrible convulsion in that gap when the earth was young;
the strata had been tossed upright and planted almost vertical for all
time, and, a little farther, one mighty ledge, moss-grown, bush-covered,
sentinelled with grim pines, their bases unseen, seemed to be making a
heavy flight toward the clouds.
</p>
<p>
Big bowlders began to pop up in the river-bed and against them the water
dashed and whirled and eddied backward in deep pools, while above him the
song of a cataract dropped down a tree-choked ravine. Just there the drop
came, and for a long space he could see the river lashing rock and cliff
with increasing fury as though it were seeking shelter from some
relentless pursuer in the dark thicket where it disappeared. Straight in
front of him another ledge lifted itself. Beyond that loomed a mountain
which stopped in mid-air and dropped sheer to the eye. Its crown was bare
and Hale knew that up there was a mountain farm, the refuge of a man who
had been involved in that terrible feud beyond Black Mountain behind him.
Five minutes later he was at the yawning mouth of the gap and there lay
before him a beautiful valley shut in tightly, for all the eye could see,
with mighty hills. It was the heaven-born site for the unborn city of his
dreams, and his eyes swept every curve of the valley lovingly. The two
forks of the river ran around it—he could follow their course by the
trees that lined the banks of each—curving within a stone's throw of
each other across the valley and then looping away as from the neck of an
ancient lute and, like its framework, coming together again down the
valley, where they surged together, slipped through the hills and sped on
with the song of a sweeping river. Up that river could come the track of
commerce, out the South Fork, too, it could go, though it had to turn
eastward: back through that gap it could be traced north and west; and so
none could come as heralds into those hills but their footprints could be
traced through that wild, rocky, water-worn chasm. Hale drew breath and
raised in his stirrups.
</p>
<p>
"It's a cinch," he said aloud. "It's a shame to take the money."
</p>
<p>
Yet nothing was in sight now but a valley farmhouse above the ford where
he must cross the river and one log cabin on the hill beyond. Still on the
other river was the only woollen mill in miles around; farther up was the
only grist mill, and near by was the only store, the only blacksmith shop
and the only hotel. That much of a start the gap had had for
three-quarters of a century—only from the south now a railroad was
already coming; from the east another was travelling like a wounded snake
and from the north still another creeped to meet them. Every road must run
through the gap and several had already run through it lines of survey.
The coal was at one end of the gap, and the iron ore at the other, the
cliffs between were limestone, and the other elements to make it the iron
centre of the world flowed through it like a torrent.
</p>
<p>
"Selah! It's a shame to take the money."
</p>
<p>
He splashed into the creek and his big black horse thrust his nose into
the clear running water. Minnows were playing about him. A hog-fish flew
for shelter under a rock, and below the ripples a two-pound bass shot like
an arrow into deep water.
</p>
<p>
Above and below him the stream was arched with beech, poplar and water
maple, and the banks were thick with laurel and rhododendron. His eye had
never rested on a lovelier stream, and on the other side of the town site,
which nature had kindly lifted twenty feet above the water level, the
other fork was of equal clearness, swiftness and beauty.
</p>
<p>
"Such a drainage," murmured his engineering instinct. "Such a drainage!"
It was Saturday. Even if he had forgotten he would have known that it must
be Saturday when he climbed the bank on the other side. Many horses were
hitched under the trees, and here and there was a farm-wagon with
fragments of paper, bits of food and an empty bottle or two lying around.
It was the hour when the alcoholic spirits of the day were usually most
high. Evidently they were running quite high that day and something
distinctly was going on "up town." A few yells—the high, clear,
penetrating yell of a fox-hunter—rent the air, a chorus of pistol
shots rang out, and the thunder of horses' hoofs started beyond the little
slope he was climbing. When he reached the top, a merry youth, with a red,
hatless head was splitting the dirt road toward him, his reins in his
teeth, and a pistol in each hand, which he was letting off alternately
into the inoffensive earth and toward the unrebuking heavens—that
seemed a favourite way in those mountains of defying God and the devil—and
behind him galloped a dozen horsemen to the music of throat, pistol and
iron hoof.
</p>
<p>
The fiery-headed youth's horse swerved and shot by. Hale hardly knew that
the rider even saw him, but the coming ones saw him afar and they seemed
to be charging him in close array. Hale stopped his horse a little to the
right of the centre of the road, and being equally helpless against an
inherited passion for maintaining his own rights and a similar
disinclination to get out of anybody's way—he sat motionless. Two of
the coming horsemen, side by side, were a little in advance.
</p>
<p>
"Git out o' the road!" they yelled. Had he made the motion of an arm, they
might have ridden or shot him down, but the simple quietness of him as he
sat with hands crossed on the pommel of his saddle, face calm and set,
eyes unwavering and fearless, had the effect that nothing else he could
have done would have brought about—and they swerved on either side
of him, while the rest swerved, too, like sheep, one stirrup brushing his,
as they swept by. Hale rode slowly on. He could hear the mountaineers
yelling on top of the hill, but he did not look back. Several bullets sang
over his head. Most likely they were simply "bantering" him, but no matter—he
rode on.
</p>
<p>
The blacksmith, the storekeeper and one passing drummer were coming in
from the woods when he reached the hotel.
</p>
<p>
"A gang o' those Falins," said the storekeeper, "they come over lookin'
for young Dave Tolliver. They didn't find him, so they thought they'd have
some fun"; and he pointed to the hotel sign which was punctuated with
pistol-bullet periods. Hale's eyes flashed once but he said nothing. He
turned his horse over to a stable boy and went across to the little frame
cottage that served as office and home for him. While he sat on the
veranda that almost hung over the mill-pond of the other stream three of
the Falins came riding back. One of them had left something at the hotel,
and while he was gone in for it, another put a bullet through the sign,
and seeing Hale rode over to him. Hale's blue eye looked anything than
friendly.
</p>
<p>
"Don't ye like it?" asked the horseman.
</p>
<p>
"I do not," said Hale calmly. The horseman seemed amused.
</p>
<p>
"Well, whut you goin' to do about it?"
</p>
<p>
"Nothing—at least not now."
</p>
<p>
"All right—whenever you git ready. You ain't ready now?"
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale, "not now." The fellow laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Hit's a damned good thing for you that you ain't."
</p>
<p>
Hale looked long after the three as they galloped down the road. "When I
start to build this town," he thought gravely and without humour, "I'll
put a stop to all that."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0009" id="link2H_4_0009">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
VIII
</h2>
<p>
On a spur of Black Mountain, beyond the Kentucky line, a lean horse was
tied to a sassafras bush, and in a clump of rhododendron ten yards away, a
lean black-haired boy sat with a Winchester between his stomach and thighs—waiting
for the dusk to drop. His chin was in both hands, the brim of his slouch
hat was curved crescent-wise over his forehead, and his eyes were on the
sweeping bend of the river below him. That was the "Bad Bend" down there,
peopled with ancestral enemies and the head-quarters of their leader for
the last ten years. Though they had been at peace for some time now, it
had been Saturday in the county town ten miles down the river as well, and
nobody ever knew what a Saturday might bring forth between his people and
them. So he would not risk riding through that bend by the light of day.
</p>
<p>
All the long way up spur after spur and along ridge after ridge, all along
the still, tree-crested top of the Big Black, he had been thinking of the
man—the "furriner" whom he had seen at his uncle's cabin in Lonesome
Cove. He was thinking of him still, as he sat there waiting for darkness
to come, and the two vertical little lines in his forehead, that had
hardly relaxed once during his climb, got deeper and deeper, as his brain
puzzled into the problem that was worrying it: who the stranger was, what
his business was over in the Cove and his business with the Red Fox with
whom the boy had seen him talking.
</p>
<p>
He had heard of the coming of the "furriners" on the Virginia side. He had
seen some of them, he was suspicious of all of them, he disliked them all—but
this man he hated straightway. He hated his boots and his clothes; the way
he sat and talked, as though he owned the earth, and the lad snorted
contemptuously under his breath:
</p>
<p>
"He called pants 'trousers.'" It was a fearful indictment, and he snorted
again: "Trousers!"
</p>
<p>
The "furriner" might be a spy or a revenue officer, but deep down in the
boy's heart the suspicion had been working that he had gone over there to
see his little cousin—the girl whom, boy that he was, he had marked,
when she was even more of a child than she was now, for his own. His
people understood it as did her father, and, child though she was, she,
too, understood it. The difference between her and the "furriner"—difference
in age, condition, way of life, education—meant nothing to him, and
as his suspicion deepened, his hands dropped and gripped his Winchester,
and through his gritting teeth came vaguely:
</p>
<p>
"By God, if he does—if he just does!"
</p>
<p>
Away down at the lower end of the river's curving sweep, the dirt road was
visible for a hundred yards or more, and even while he was cursing to
himself, a group of horsemen rode into sight. All seemed to be carrying
something across their saddle bows, and as the boy's eyes caught them, he
sank sidewise out of sight and stood upright, peering through a bush of
rhododendron. Something had happened in town that day—for the
horsemen carried Winchesters, and every foreign thought in his brain
passed like breath from a window pane, while his dark, thin face whitened
a little with anxiety and wonder. Swiftly he stepped backward, keeping the
bushes between him and his far-away enemies. Another knot he gave the
reins around the sassafras bush and then, Winchester in hand, he dropped
noiseless as an Indian, from rock to rock, tree to tree, down the sheer
spur on the other side. Twenty minutes later, he lay behind a bush that
was sheltered by the top boulder of the rocky point under which the road
ran. His enemies were in their own country; they would probably be talking
over the happenings in town that day, and from them he would learn what
was going on.
</p>
<p>
So long he lay that he got tired and out of patience, and he was about to
creep around the boulder, when the clink of a horseshoe against a stone
told him they were coming, and he flattened to the earth and closed his
eyes that his ears might be more keen. The Falins were riding silently,
but as the first two passed under him, one said:
</p>
<p>
"I'd like to know who the hell warned 'em!"
</p>
<p>
"Whar's the Red Fox?" was the significant answer.
</p>
<p>
The boy's heart leaped. There had been deviltry abroad, but his kinsmen
had escaped. No one uttered a word as they rode two by two, under him, but
one voice came back to him as they turned the point.
</p>
<p>
"I wonder if the other boys ketched young Dave?" He could not catch the
answer to that—only the oath that was in it, and when the sound of
the horses' hoofs died away, he turned over on his back and stared up at
the sky. Some trouble had come and through his own caution, and the mercy
of Providence that had kept him away from the Gap, he had had his escape
from death that day. He would tempt that Providence no more, even by
climbing back to his horse in the waning light, and it was not until dusk
had fallen that he was leading the beast down the spur and into a ravine
that sank to the road. There he waited an hour, and when another horseman
passed he still waited a while. Cautiously then, with ears alert, eyes
straining through the darkness and Winchester ready, he went down the road
at a slow walk. There was a light in the first house, but the front door
was closed and the road was deep with sand, as he knew; so he passed
noiselessly. At the second house, light streamed through the open door; he
could hear talking on the porch and he halted. He could neither cross the
river nor get around the house by the rear—the ridge was too steep—so
he drew off into the bushes, where he had to wait another hour before the
talking ceased. There was only one more house now between him and the
mouth of the creek, where he would be safe, and he made up his mind to
dash by it. That house, too, was lighted and the sound of fiddling struck
his ears. He would give them a surprise; so he gathered his reins and
Winchester in his left hand, drew his revolver with his right, and within
thirty yards started his horse into a run, yelling like an Indian and
firing his pistol in the air. As he swept by, two or three figures dashed
pell-mell indoors, and he shouted derisively:
</p>
<p>
"Run, damn ye, run!" They were running for their guns, he knew, but the
taunt would hurt and he was pleased. As he swept by the edge of a
cornfield, there was a flash of light from the base of a cliff straight
across, and a bullet sang over him, then another and another, but he sped
on, cursing and yelling and shooting his own Winchester up in the air—all
harmless, useless, but just to hurl defiance and taunt them with his
safety. His father's house was not far away, there was no sound of
pursuit, and when he reached the river he drew down to a walk and stopped
short in a shadow. Something had clicked in the bushes above him and he
bent over his saddle and lay close to his horse's neck. The moon was
rising behind him and its light was creeping toward him through the
bushes. In a moment he would be full in its yellow light, and he was
slipping from his horse to dart aside into the bushes, when a voice ahead
of him called sharply:
</p>
<p>
"That you, Dave?"
</p>
<p>
It was his father, and the boy's answer was a loud laugh. Several men
stepped from the bushes—they had heard firing and, fearing that
young Dave was the cause of it, they had run to his help.
</p>
<p>
"What the hell you mean, boy, kickin' up such a racket?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, I knowed somethin'd happened an' I wanted to skeer 'em a leetle."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, an' you never thought o' the trouble you might be causin' us."
</p>
<p>
"Don't you bother about me. I can take keer o' myself."
</p>
<p>
Old Dave Tolliver grunted—though at heart he was deeply pleased.
</p>
<p>
"Well, you come on home!"
</p>
<p>
All went silently—the boy getting meagre monosyllabic answers to his
eager questions but, by the time they reached home, he had gathered the
story of what had happened in town that day. There were more men in the
porch of the house and all were armed. The women of the house moved about
noiselessly and with drawn faces. There were no lights lit, and nobody
stood long even in the light of the fire where he could be seen through a
window; and doors were opened and passed through quickly. The Falins had
opened the feud that day, for the boy's foster-uncle, Bad Rufe Tolliver,
contrary to the terms of the last truce, had come home from the West, and
one of his kinsmen had been wounded. The boy told what he had heard while
he lay over the road along which some of his enemies had passed and his
father nodded. The Falins had learned in some way that the lad was going
to the Gap that day and had sent men after him. Who was the spy?
</p>
<p>
"You TOLD me you was a-goin' to the Gap," said old Dave. "Whar was ye?"
</p>
<p>
"I didn't git that far," said the boy.
</p>
<p>
The old man and Loretta, young Dave's sister, laughed, and quiet smiles
passed between the others.
</p>
<p>
"Well, you'd better be keerful 'bout gittin' even as far as you did git—wharever
that was—from now on."
</p>
<p>
"I ain't afeered," the boy said sullenly, and he turned into the kitchen.
Still sullen, he ate his supper in silence and his mother asked him no
questions. He was worried that Bad Rufe had come back to the mountains,
for Rufe was always teasing June and there was something in his bold,
black eyes that made the lad furious, even when the foster-uncle was
looking at Loretta or the little girl in Lonesome Cove. And yet that was
nothing to his new trouble, for his mind hung persistently to the stranger
and to the way June had behaved in the cabin in Lonesome Cove. Before he
went to bed, he slipped out to the old well behind the house and sat on
the water-trough in gloomy unrest, looking now and then at the stars that
hung over the Cove and over the Gap beyond, where the stranger was bound.
It would have pleased him a good deal could he have known that the
stranger was pushing his big black horse on his way, under those stars,
toward the outer world.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0010" id="link2H_4_0010">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
IX
</h2>
<p>
It was court day at the county seat across the Kentucky line. Hale had
risen early, as everyone must if he would get his breakfast in the
mountains, even in the hotels in the county seats, and he sat with his
feet on the railing of the hotel porch which fronted the main street of
the town. He had had his heart-breaking failures since the autumn before,
but he was in good cheer now, for his feverish enthusiasm had at last
clutched a man who would take up not only his options on the great Gap
beyond Black Mountain but on the cannel-coal lands of Devil Judd Tolliver
as well. He was riding across from the Bluegrass to meet this man at the
railroad in Virginia, nearly two hundred miles away; he had stopped to
examine some titles at the county seat and he meant to go on that day by
way of Lonesome Cove. Opposite was the brick Court House—every
window lacking at least one pane, the steps yellow with dirt and tobacco
juice, the doorway and the bricks about the upper windows bullet-dented
and eloquent with memories of the feud which had long embroiled the whole
county. Not that everybody took part in it but, on the matter, everybody,
as an old woman told him, "had feelin's." It had begun, so he learned,
just after the war. Two boys were playing marbles in the road along the
Cumberland River, and one had a patch on the seat of his trousers. The
other boy made fun of it and the boy with the patch went home and told his
father. As a result there had already been thirty years of local war. In
the last race for legislature, political issues were submerged and the
feud was the sole issue. And a Tolliver had carried that boy's
trouser-patch like a flag to victory and was sitting in the lower House at
that time helping to make laws for the rest of the State. Now Bad Rufe
Tolliver was in the hills again and the end was not yet. Already people
were pouring in, men, women and children—the men slouch-hatted and
stalking through the mud in the rain, or filing in on horseback—riding
double sometimes—two men or two women, or a man with his wife or
daughter behind him, or a woman with a baby in her lap and two more
children behind—all dressed in homespun or store-clothes, and the
paint from artificial flowers on her hat streaking the face of every girl
who had unwisely scanned the heavens that morning. Soon the square was
filled with hitched horses, and an auctioneer was bidding off cattle,
sheep, hogs and horses to the crowd of mountaineers about him, while the
women sold eggs and butter and bought things for use at home. Now and
then, an open feudsman with a Winchester passed and many a man was belted
with cartridges for the big pistol dangling at his hip. When court opened,
the rain ceased, the sun came out and Hale made his way through the crowd
to the battered temple of justice. On one corner of the square he could
see the chief store of the town marked "Buck Falin—General
Merchandise," and the big man in the door with the bushy redhead, he
guessed, was the leader of the Falin clan. Outside the door stood a
smaller replica of the same figure, whom he recognized as the leader of
the band that had nearly ridden him down at the Gap when they were looking
for young Dave Tolliver, the autumn before. That, doubtless, was young
Buck. For a moment he stood at the door of the court-room. A Falin was on
trial and the grizzled judge was speaking angrily:
</p>
<p>
"This is the third time you've had this trial postponed because you hain't
got no lawyer. I ain't goin' to put it off. Have you got you a lawyer
now?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, jedge," said the defendant.
</p>
<p>
"Well, whar is he?"
</p>
<p>
"Over thar on the jury."
</p>
<p>
The judge looked at the man on the jury.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I reckon you better leave him whar he is. He'll do you more good
thar than any whar else."
</p>
<p>
Hale laughed aloud—the judge glared at him and he turned quickly
upstairs to his work in the deed-room. Till noon he worked and yet there
was no trouble. After dinner he went back and in two hours his work was
done. An atmospheric difference he felt as soon as he reached the door.
The crowd had melted from the square. There were no women in sight, but
eight armed men were in front of the door and two of them, a red Falin and
a black Tolliver—Bad Rufe it was—were quarrelling. In every
doorway stood a man cautiously looking on, and in a hotel window he saw a
woman's frightened face. It was so still that it seemed impossible that a
tragedy could be imminent, and yet, while he was trying to take the
conditions in, one of the quarrelling men—Bad Rufe Tolliver—whipped
out his revolver and before he could level it, a Falin struck the muzzle
of a pistol into his back. Another Tolliver flashed his weapon on the
Falin. This Tolliver was covered by another Falin and in so many flashes
of lightning the eight men in front of him were covering each other—every
man afraid to be the first to shoot, since he knew that the flash of his
own pistol meant instantaneous death for him. As Hale shrank back, he
pushed against somebody who thrust him aside. It was the judge:
</p>
<p>
"Why don't somebody shoot?" he asked sarcastically. "You're a purty set o'
fools, ain't you? I want you all to stop this damned foolishness. Now when
I give the word I want you, Jim Falin and Rufe Tolliver thar, to drap yer
guns."
</p>
<p>
Already Rufe was grinning like a devil over the absurdity of the
situation.
</p>
<p>
"Now!" said the judge, and the two guns were dropped.
</p>
<p>
"Put 'em in yo' pockets."
</p>
<p>
They did.
</p>
<p>
"Drap!" All dropped and, with those two, all put up their guns—each
man, however, watching now the man who had just been covering him. It is
not wise for the stranger to show too much interest in the personal
affairs of mountain men, and Hale left the judge berating them and went to
the hotel to get ready for the Gap, little dreaming how fixed the faces of
some of those men were in his brain and how, later, they were to rise in
his memory again. His horse was lame—but he must go on: so he hired
a "yaller" mule from the landlord, and when the beast was brought around,
he overheard two men talking at the end of the porch.
</p>
<p>
"You don't mean to say they've made peace?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, Rufe's going away agin and they shuk hands—all of 'em." The
other laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Rufe ain't gone yit!"
</p>
<p>
The Cumberland River was rain-swollen. The home-going people were helping
each other across it and, as Hale approached the ford of a creek half a
mile beyond the river, a black-haired girl was standing on a boulder
looking helplessly at the yellow water, and two boys were on the ground
below her. One of them looked up at Hale:
</p>
<p>
"I wish ye'd help this lady 'cross."
</p>
<p>
"Certainly," said Hale, and the girl giggled when he laboriously turned
his old mule up to the boulder. Not accustomed to have ladies ride behind
him, Hale had turned the wrong side. Again he laboriously wheeled about
and then into the yellow torrent he went with the girl behind him, the old
beast stumbling over the stones, whereat the girl, unafraid, made sounds
of much merriment. Across, Hale stopped and said courteously:
</p>
<p>
"If you are going up this way, you are quite welcome to ride on."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I wasn't crossin' that crick jes' exactly fer fun," said the girl
demurely, and then she murmured something about her cousins and looked
back. They had gone down to a shallower ford, and when they, too, had
waded across, they said nothing and the girl said nothing—so Hale
started on, the two boys following. The mule was slow and, being in a
hurry, Hale urged him with his whip. Every time he struck, the beast would
kick up and once the girl came near going off.
</p>
<p>
"You must watch out, when I hit him," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"I don't know when you're goin' to hit him," she drawled unconcernedly.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'll let you know," said Hale laughing. "Now!" And, as he whacked
the beast again, the girl laughed and they were better acquainted.
Presently they passed two boys. Hale was wearing riding-boots and tight
breeches, and one of the boys ran his eyes up boot and leg and if they
were lifted higher, Hale could not tell.
</p>
<p>
"Whar'd you git him?" he squeaked.
</p>
<p>
The girl turned her head as the mule broke into a trot.
</p>
<p>
"Ain't got time to tell. They are my cousins," explained the girl.
</p>
<p>
"What is your name?" asked Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Loretty Tolliver." Hale turned in his saddle.
</p>
<p>
"Are you the daughter of Dave Tolliver?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"Then you've got a brother named Dave?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes." This, then, was the sister of the black-haired boy he had seen in
the Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
"Haven't you got some kinfolks over the mountain?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, I got an uncle livin' over thar. Devil Judd, folks calls him," said
the girl simply. This girl was cousin to little June in Lonesome Cove.
Every now and then she would look behind them, and when Hale turned again
inquiringly she explained:
</p>
<p>
"I'm worried about my cousins back thar. I'm afeered somethin' mought
happen to 'em."
</p>
<p>
"Shall we wait for them?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, no—I reckon not."
</p>
<p>
Soon they overtook two men on horseback, and after they passed and were
fifty yards ahead of them, one of the men lifted his voice jestingly:
</p>
<p>
"Is that your woman, stranger, or have you just borrowed her?" Hale
shouted back:
</p>
<p>
"No, I'm sorry to say, I've just borrowed her," and he turned to see how
she would take this answering pleasantry. She was looking down shyly and
she did not seem much pleased.
</p>
<p>
"They are kinfolks o' mine, too," she said, and whether it was in
explanation or as a rebuke, Hale could not determine.
</p>
<p>
"You must be kin to everybody around here?"
</p>
<p>
"Most everybody," she said simply.
</p>
<p>
By and by they came to a creek.
</p>
<p>
"I have to turn up here," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"So do I," she said, smiling now directly at him.
</p>
<p>
"Good!" he said, and they went on—Hale asking more questions. She
was going to school at the county seat the coming winter and she was
fifteen years old.
</p>
<p>
"That's right. The trouble in the mountains is that you girls marry so
early that you don't have time to get an education." She wasn't going to
marry early, she said, but Hale learned now that she had a sweetheart who
had been in town that day and apparently the two had had a quarrel. Who it
was, she would not tell, and Hale would have been amazed had he known the
sweetheart was none other than young Buck Falin and that the quarrel
between the lovers had sprung from the opening quarrel that day between
the clans. Once again she came near going off the mule, and Hale observed
that she was holding to the cantel of his saddle.
</p>
<p>
"Look here," he said suddenly, "hadn't you better catch hold of me?" She
shook her head vigorously and made two not-to-be-rendered sounds that
meant:
</p>
<p>
"No, indeed."
</p>
<p>
"Well, if this were your sweetheart you'd take hold of him, wouldn't you?"
</p>
<p>
Again she gave a vigorous shake of the head.
</p>
<p>
"Well, if he saw you riding behind me, he wouldn't like it, would he?"
</p>
<p>
"She didn't keer," she said, but Hale did; and when he heard the galloping
of horses behind him, saw two men coming, and heard one of them shouting—"Hyeh,
you man on that yaller mule, stop thar"—he shifted his revolver,
pulled in and waited with some uneasiness. They came up, reeling in their
saddles—neither one the girl's sweetheart, as he saw at once from
her face—and began to ask what the girl characterized afterward as
"unnecessary questions": who he was, who she was, and where they were
going. Hale answered so shortly that the girl thought there was going to
be a fight, and she was on the point of slipping from the mule.
</p>
<p>
"Sit still," said Hale, quietly. "There's not going to be a fight so long
as you are here."
</p>
<p>
"Thar hain't!" said one of the men. "Well"—then he looked sharply at
the girl and turned his horse—"Come on, Bill—that's ole Dave
Tolliver's gal." The girl's face was on fire.
</p>
<p>
"Them mean Falins!" she said contemptuously, and somehow the mere fact
that Hale had been even for the moment antagonistic to the other faction
seemed to put him in the girl's mind at once on her side, and straightway
she talked freely of the feud. Devil Judd had taken no active part in it
for a long time, she said, except to keep it down—especially since
he and her father had had a "fallin' out" and the two families did not
visit much—though she and her cousin June sometimes spent the night
with each other.
</p>
<p>
"You won't be able to git over thar till long atter dark," she said, and
she caught her breath so suddenly and so sharply that Hale turned to see
what the matter was. She searched his face with her black eyes, which were
like June's without the depths of June's.
</p>
<p>
"I was just a-wonderin' if mebbe you wasn't the same feller that was over
in Lonesome last fall."
</p>
<p>
"Maybe I am—my name's Hale." The girl laughed. "Well, if this ain't
the beatenest! I've heerd June talk about you. My brother Dave don't like
you overmuch," she added frankly. "I reckon we'll see Dave purty soon. If
this ain't the beatenest!" she repeated, and she laughed again, as she
always did laugh, it seemed to Hale, when there was any prospect of
getting him into trouble.
</p>
<p>
"You can't git over thar till long atter dark," she said again presently.
</p>
<p>
"Is there any place on the way where I can get to stay all night?"
</p>
<p>
"You can stay all night with the Red Fox on top of the mountain."
</p>
<p>
"The Red Fox," repeated Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, he lives right on top of the mountain. You can't miss his house."
</p>
<p>
"Oh, yes, I remember him. I saw him talking to one of the Falins in town
to-day, behind the barn, when I went to get my horse."
</p>
<p>
"You—seed—him—a-talkin'—to a Falin AFORE the
trouble come up?" the girl asked slowly and with such significance that
Hale turned to look at her. He felt straightway that he ought not to have
said that, and the day was to come when he would remember it to his cost.
He knew how foolish it was for the stranger to show sympathy with, or
interest in, one faction or another in a mountain feud, but to give any
kind of information of one to the other—that was unwise indeed.
Ahead of them now, a little stream ran from a ravine across the road.
Beyond was a cabin; in the doorway were several faces, and sitting on a
horse at the gate was young Dave Tolliver.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I git down here," said the girl, and before his mule stopped she
slid from behind him and made for the gate without a word of thanks or
good-by.
</p>
<p>
"Howdye!" said Hale, taking in the group with his glance, but leaving his
eyes on young Dave. The rest nodded, but the boy was too surprised for
speech, and the spirit of deviltry took the girl when she saw her
brother's face, and at the gate she turned:
</p>
<p>
"Much obleeged," she said. "Tell June I'm a-comin' over to see her next
Sunday."
</p>
<p>
"I will," said Hale, and he rode on. To his surprise, when he had gone a
hundred yards, he heard the boy spurring after him and he looked around
inquiringly as young Dave drew alongside; but the boy said nothing and
Hale, amused, kept still, wondering when the lad would open speech. At the
mouth of another little creek the boy stopped his horse as though he was
to turn up that way. "You've come back agin," he said, searching Hale's
face with his black eyes.
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale, "I've come back again."
</p>
<p>
"You goin' over to Lonesome Cove?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
The boy hesitated, and a sudden change of mind was plain to Hale in his
face. "I wish you'd tell Uncle Judd about the trouble in town to-day," he
said, still looking fixedly at Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Certainly."
</p>
<p>
"Did you tell the Red Fox that day you seed him when you was goin' over to
the Gap last fall that you seed me at Uncle Judd's?"
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale. "But how did you know that I saw the Red Fox that day?"
The boy laughed unpleasantly.
</p>
<p>
"So long," he said. "See you agin some day." The way was steep and the sun
was down and darkness gathering before Hale reached the top of the
mountain—so he hallooed at the yard fence of the Red Fox, who peered
cautiously out of the door and asked his name before he came to the gate.
And there, with a grin on his curious mismatched face, he repeated young
Dave's words:
</p>
<p>
"You've come back agin." And Hale repeated his:
</p>
<p>
"Yes, I've come back again."
</p>
<p>
"You goin' over to Lonesome Cove?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale impatiently, "I'm going over to Lonesome Cove. Can I stay
here all night?"
</p>
<p>
"Shore!" said the old man hospitably. "That's a fine hoss you got thar,"
he added with a chuckle. "Been swappin'?" Hale had to laugh as he climbed
down from the bony ear-flopping beast.
</p>
<p>
"I left my horse in town—he's lame."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, I seed you thar." Hale could not resist: "Yes, and I seed you." The
old man almost turned.
</p>
<p>
"Whar?" Again the temptation was too great.
</p>
<p>
"Talking to the Falin who started the row." This time the Red Fox wheeled
sharply and his pale-blue eyes filled with suspicion.
</p>
<p>
"I keeps friends with both sides," he said. "Ain't many folks can do
that."
</p>
<p>
"I reckon not," said Hale calmly, but in the pale eyes he still saw
suspicion.
</p>
<p>
When they entered the cabin, a little old woman in black, dumb and
noiseless, was cooking supper. The children of the two, he learned, had
scattered, and they lived there alone. On the mantel were two pistols and
in one corner was the big Winchester he remembered and behind it was the
big brass telescope. On the table was a Bible and a volume of Swedenborg,
and among the usual strings of pepper-pods and beans and twisted long
green tobacco were drying herbs and roots of all kinds, and about the
fireplace were bottles of liquids that had been stewed from them. The
little old woman served, and opened her lips not at all. Supper was eaten
with no further reference to the doings in town that day, and no word was
said about their meeting when Hale first went to Lonesome Cove until they
were smoking on the porch.
</p>
<p>
"I heerd you found some mighty fine coal over in Lonesome Cove."
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"Young Dave Tolliver thinks you found somethin' else thar, too," chuckled
the Red Fox.
</p>
<p>
"I did," said Hale coolly, and the old man chuckled again.
</p>
<p>
"She's a purty leetle gal—shore."
</p>
<p>
"Who is?" asked Hale, looking calmly at his questioner, and the Red Fox
lapsed into baffled silence.
</p>
<p>
The moon was brilliant and the night was still. Suddenly the Red Fox
cocked his ear like a hound, and without a word slipped swiftly within the
cabin. A moment later Hale heard the galloping of a horse and from out the
dark woods loped a horseman with a Winchester across his saddle bow. He
pulled in at the gate, but before he could shout "Hello" the Red Fox had
stepped from the porch into the moonlight and was going to meet him. Hale
had never seen a more easy, graceful, daring figure on horseback, and in
the bright light he could make out the reckless face of the man who had
been the first to flash his pistol in town that day—Bad Rufe
Tolliver. For ten minutes the two talked in whispers—Rufe bent
forward with one elbow on the withers of his horse but lifting his eyes
every now and then to the stranger seated in the porch—and then the
horseman turned with an oath and galloped into the darkness whence he
came, while the Red Fox slouched back to the porch and dropped silently
into his seat.
</p>
<p>
"Who was that?" asked Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Bad Rufe Tolliver."
</p>
<p>
"I've heard of him."
</p>
<p>
"Most everybody in these mountains has. He's the feller that's always
causin' trouble. Him and Joe Falin agreed to go West last fall to end the
war. Joe was killed out thar, and now Rufe claims Joe don't count now an'
he's got the right to come back. Soon's he comes back, things git
frolicksome agin. He swore he wouldn't go back unless another Falin goes
too. Wirt Falin agreed, and that's how they made peace to-day. Now Rufe
says he won't go at all—truce or no truce. My wife in thar is a
Tolliver, but both sides comes to me and I keeps peace with both of 'em."
</p>
<p>
No doubt he did, Hale thought, keep peace or mischief with or against
anybody with that face of his. That was a common type of the bad man, that
horseman who had galloped away from the gate—but this old man with
his dual face, who preached the Word on Sundays and on other days was a
walking arsenal; who dreamed dreams and had visions and slipped through
the hills in his mysterious moccasins on errands of mercy or chasing men
from vanity, personal enmity or for fun, and still appeared so sane—he
was a type that confounded. No wonder for these reasons and as a tribute
to his infernal shrewdness he was known far and wide as the Red Fox of the
Mountains. But Hale was too tired for further speculation and presently he
yawned.
</p>
<p>
"Want to lay down?" asked the old man quickly.
</p>
<p>
"I think I do," said Hale, and they went inside. The little old woman had
her face to the wall in a bed in one corner and the Red Fox pointed to a
bed in the other:
</p>
<p>
"Thar's yo' bed." Again Hale's eyes fell on the big Winchester.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon thar hain't more'n two others like it in all these mountains."
</p>
<p>
"What's the calibre?"
</p>
<p>
"Biggest made," was the answer, "a 50 x 75."
</p>
<p>
"Centre fire?"
</p>
<p>
"Rim," said the Red Fox.
</p>
<p>
"Gracious," laughed Hale, "what do you want such a big one for?"
</p>
<p>
"Man cannot live by bread alone—in these mountains," said the Red
Fox grimly.
</p>
<p>
When Hale lay down he could hear the old man quavering out a hymn or two
on the porch outside: and when, worn out with the day, he went to sleep,
the Red Fox was reading his Bible by the light of a tallow dip. It is
fatefully strange when people, whose lives tragically intersect, look back
to their first meetings with one another, and Hale never forgot that night
in the cabin of the Red Fox. For had Bad Rufe Tolliver, while he whispered
at the gate, known the part the quiet young man silently seated in the
porch would play in his life, he would have shot him where he sat: and
could the Red Fox have known the part his sleeping guest was to play in
his, the old man would have knifed him where he lay.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0011" id="link2H_4_0011">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
X
</h2>
<p>
Hale opened his eyes next morning on the little old woman in black, moving
ghost-like through the dim interior to the kitchen. A wood-thrush was
singing when he stepped out on the porch and its cool notes had the liquid
freshness of the morning. Breakfast over, he concluded to leave the yellow
mule with the Red Fox to be taken back to the county town, and to walk
down the mountain, but before he got away the landlord's son turned up
with his own horse, still lame, but well enough to limp along without
doing himself harm. So, leading the black horse, Hale started down.
</p>
<p>
The sun was rising over still seas of white mist and wave after wave of
blue Virginia hills. In the shadows below, it smote the mists into
tatters; leaf and bush glittered as though after a heavy rain, and down
Hale went under a trembling dew-drenched world and along a tumbling series
of water-falls that flashed through tall ferns, blossoming laurel and
shining leaves of rhododendron. Once he heard something move below him and
then the crackling of brush sounded far to one side of the road. He knew
it was a man who would be watching him from a covert and, straightway, to
prove his innocence of any hostile or secret purpose, he began to whistle.
Farther below, two men with Winchesters rose from the bushes and asked his
name and his business. He told both readily. Everybody, it seemed, was
prepared for hostilities and, though the news of the patched-up peace had
spread, it was plain that the factions were still suspicious and on guard.
Then the loneliness almost of Lonesome Cove itself set in. For miles he
saw nothing alive but an occasional bird and heard no sound but of running
water or rustling leaf. At the mouth of the creek his horse's lameness had
grown so much better that he mounted him and rode slowly up the river.
Within an hour he could see the still crest of the Lonesome Pine. At the
mouth of a creek a mile farther on was an old gristmill with its
water-wheel asleep, and whittling at the door outside was the old miller,
Uncle Billy Beams, who, when he heard the coming of the black horse's
feet, looked up and showed no surprise at all when he saw Hale.
</p>
<p>
"I heard you was comin'," he shouted, hailing him cheerily by name. "Ain't
fishin' this time!"
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale, "not this time."
</p>
<p>
"Well, git down and rest a spell. June'll be here in a minute an' you can
ride back with her. I reckon you air goin' that a-way."
</p>
<p>
"June!"
</p>
<p>
"Shore! My, but she'll be glad to see ye! She's always talkin' about ye.
You told her you was comin' back an' ever'body told her you wasn't: but
that leetle gal al'ays said she KNOWED you was, because you SAID you was.
She's growed some—an' if she ain't purty, well I'd tell a man! You
jes' tie yo' hoss up thar behind the mill so she can't see it, an' git
inside the mill when she comes round that bend thar. My, but hit'll be a
surprise fer her."
</p>
<p>
The old man chuckled so cheerily that Hale, to humour him, hitched his
horse to a sapling, came back and sat in the door of the mill. The old man
knew all about the trouble in town the day before.
</p>
<p>
"I want to give ye a leetle advice. Keep yo' mouth plum' shut about this
here war. I'm Jestice of the Peace, but that's the only way I've kept
outen of it fer thirty years; an' hit's the only way you can keep outen
it."
</p>
<p>
"Thank you, I mean to keep my mouth shut, but would you mind—"
</p>
<p>
"Git in!" interrupted the old man eagerly. "Hyeh she comes." His kind old
face creased into a welcoming smile, and between the logs of the mill
Hale, inside, could see an old sorrel horse slowly coming through the
lights and shadows down the road. On its back was a sack of corn and
perched on the sack was a little girl with her bare feet in the hollows
behind the old nag's withers. She was looking sidewise, quite hidden by a
scarlet poke-bonnet, and at the old man's shout she turned the smiling
face of little June. With an answering cry, she struck the old nag with a
switch and before the old man could rise to help her down, slipped lightly
to the ground.
</p>
<p>
"Why, honey," he said, "I don't know whut I'm goin' to do 'bout yo' corn.
Shaft's broke an' I can't do no grindin' till to-morrow."
</p>
<p>
"Well, Uncle Billy, we ain't got a pint o' meal in the house," she said.
"You jes' got to LEND me some."
</p>
<p>
"All right, honey," said the old man, and he cleared his throat as a
signal for Hale.
</p>
<p>
The little girl was pushing her bonnet back when Hale stepped into sight
and, unstartled, unsmiling, unspeaking, she looked steadily at him—one
hand motionless for a moment on her bronze heap of hair and then slipping
down past her cheek to clench the other tightly. Uncle Billy was
bewildered.
</p>
<p>
"Why, June, hit's Mr. Hale—why—-"
</p>
<p>
"Howdye, June!" said Hale, who was no less puzzled—and still she
gave no sign that she had ever seen him before except reluctantly to give
him her hand. Then she turned sullenly away and sat down in the door of
the mill with her elbows on her knees and her chin in her hands.
</p>
<p>
Dumfounded, the old miller pulled the sack of corn from the horse and
leaned it against the mill. Then he took out his pipe, filled and lighted
it slowly and turned his perplexed eyes to the sun.
</p>
<p>
"Well, honey," he said, as though he were doing the best he could with a
difficult situation, "I'll have to git you that meal at the house. 'Bout
dinner time now. You an' Mr. Hale thar come on and git somethin' to eat
afore ye go back."
</p>
<p>
"I got to get on back home," said June, rising.
</p>
<p>
"No you ain't—I bet you got dinner fer yo' step-mammy afore you
left, an' I jes' know you was aimin' to take a snack with me an' ole Hon."
The little girl hesitated—she had no denial—and the old fellow
smiled kindly.
</p>
<p>
"Come on, now."
</p>
<p>
Little June walked on the other side of the miller from Hale back to the
old man's cabin, two hundred yards up the road, answering his questions
but not Hale's and never meeting the latter's eyes with her own. "Ole
Hon," the portly old woman whom Hale remembered, with brass-rimmed
spectacles and a clay pipe in her mouth, came out on the porch and
welcomed them heartily under the honeysuckle vines. Her mouth and face
were alive with humour when she saw Hale, and her eyes took in both him
and the little girl keenly. The miller and Hale leaned chairs against the
wall while the girl sat at the entrance of the porch. Suddenly Hale went
out to his horse and took out a package from his saddle-pockets.
</p>
<p>
"I've got some candy in here for you," he said smiling.
</p>
<p>
"I don't want no candy," she said, still not looking at him and with a
little movement of her knees away from him.
</p>
<p>
"Why, honey," said Uncle Billy again, "whut IS the matter with ye? I
thought ye was great friends." The little girl rose hastily.
</p>
<p>
"No, we ain't, nuther," she said, and she whisked herself indoors. Hale
put the package back with some embarrassment and the old miller laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Well, well—she's a quar little critter; mebbe she's mad because you
stayed away so long."
</p>
<p>
At the table June wanted to help ole Hon and wait to eat with her, but
Uncle Billy made her sit down with him and Hale, and so shy was she that
she hardly ate anything. Once only did she look up from her plate and that
was when Uncle Billy, with a shake of his head, said:
</p>
<p>
"He's a bad un." He was speaking of Rufe Tolliver, and at the mention of
his name there was a frightened look in the little girl's eyes, when she
quickly raised them, that made Hale wonder.
</p>
<p>
An hour later they were riding side by side—Hale and June—on
through the lights and shadows toward Lonesome Cove. Uncle Billy turned
back from the gate to the porch.
</p>
<p>
"He ain't come back hyeh jes' fer coal," said ole Hon.
</p>
<p>
"Shucks!" said Uncle Billy; "you women-folks can't think 'bout nothin'
'cept one thing. He's too old fer her."
</p>
<p>
"She'll git ole enough fer HIM—an' you menfolks don't think less—you
jes' talk less." And she went back into the kitchen, and on the porch the
old miller puffed on a new idea in his pipe.
</p>
<p>
For a few minutes the two rode in silence and not yet had June lifted her
eyes to him.
</p>
<p>
"You've forgotten me, June."
</p>
<p>
"No, I hain't, nuther."
</p>
<p>
"You said you'd be waiting for me." June's lashes went lower still.
</p>
<p>
"I was."
</p>
<p>
"Well, what's the matter? I'm mighty sorry I couldn't get back sooner."
</p>
<p>
"Huh!" said June scornfully, and he knew Uncle Billy in his guess as to
the trouble was far afield, and so he tried another tack.
</p>
<p>
"I've been over to the county seat and I saw lots of your kinfolks over
there." She showed no curiosity, no surprise, and still she did not look
up at him.
</p>
<p>
"I met your cousin, Loretta, over there and I carried her home behind me
on an old mule"—Hale paused, smiling at the remembrance—and
still she betrayed no interest.
</p>
<p>
"She's a mighty pretty girl, and whenever I'd hit that old—-"
</p>
<p>
"She hain't!"—the words were so shrieked out that Hale was
bewildered, and then he guessed that the falling out between the fathers
was more serious than he had supposed.
</p>
<p>
"But she isn't as nice as you are," he added quickly, and the girl's
quivering mouth steadied, the tears stopped in her vexed dark eyes and she
lifted them to him at last.
</p>
<p>
"She ain't?"
</p>
<p>
"No, indeed, she ain't."
</p>
<p>
For a while they rode along again in silence. June no longer avoided his
eyes now, and the unspoken question in her own presently came out:
</p>
<p>
"You won't let Uncle Rufe bother me no more, will ye?"
</p>
<p>
"No, indeed, I won't," said Hale heartily. "What does he do to you?"
</p>
<p>
"Nothin'—'cept he's always a-teasin' me, an'—an' I'm afeered
o' him."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'll take care of Uncle Rufe."
</p>
<p>
"I knowed YOU'D say that," she said. "Pap and Dave always laughs at me,"
and she shook her head as though she were already threatening her bad
uncle with what Hale would do to him, and she was so serious and trustful
that Hale was curiously touched. By and by he lifted one flap of his
saddle-pockets again.
</p>
<p>
"I've got some candy here for a nice little girl," he said, as though the
subject had not been mentioned before. "It's for you. Won't you have
some?"
</p>
<p>
"I reckon I will," she said with a happy smile.
</p>
<p>
Hale watched her while she munched a striped stick of peppermint. Her
crimson bonnet had fallen from her sunlit hair and straight down from it
to her bare little foot with its stubbed toe just darkening with dried
blood, a sculptor would have loved the rounded slenderness in the curving
long lines that shaped her brown throat, her arms and her hands, which
were prettily shaped but so very dirty as to the nails, and her dangling
bare leg. Her teeth were even and white, and most of them flashed when her
red lips smiled. Her lashes were long and gave a touching softness to her
eyes even when she was looking quietly at him, but there were times, as he
had noticed already, when a brooding look stole over them, and then they
were the lair for the mysterious loneliness that was the very spirit of
Lonesome Cove. Some day that little nose would be long enough, and some
day, he thought, she would be very beautiful.
</p>
<p>
"Your cousin, Loretta, said she was coming over to see you."
</p>
<p>
June's teeth snapped viciously through the stick of candy and then she
turned on him and behind the long lashes and deep down in the depth of
those wonderful eyes he saw an ageless something that bewildered him more
than her words.
</p>
<p>
"I hate her," she said fiercely.
</p>
<p>
"Why, little girl?" he said gently.
</p>
<p>
"I don't know—" she said—and then the tears came in earnest
and she turned her head, sobbing. Hale helplessly reached over and patted
her on the shoulder, but she shrank away from him.
</p>
<p>
"Go away!" she said, digging her fist into her eyes until her face was
calm again.
</p>
<p>
They had reached the spot on the river where he had seen her first, and
beyond, the smoke of the cabin was rising above the undergrowth.
</p>
<p>
"Lordy!" she said, "but I do git lonesome over hyeh."
</p>
<p>
"Wouldn't you like to go over to the Gap with me sometimes?"
</p>
<p>
Straightway her face was a ray of sunlight.
</p>
<p>
"Would—I like—to—go—over—"
</p>
<p>
She stopped suddenly and pulled in her horse, but Hale had heard nothing.
</p>
<p>
"Hello!" shouted a voice from the bushes, and Devil Judd Tolliver issued
from them with an axe on his shoulder. "I heerd you'd come back an' I'm
glad to see ye." He came down to the road and shook Hale's hand heartily.
</p>
<p>
"Whut you been cryin' about?" he added, turning his hawk-like eyes on the
little girl.
</p>
<p>
"Nothin'," she said sullenly.
</p>
<p>
"Did she git mad with ye 'bout somethin'?" said the old man to Hale. "She
never cries 'cept when she's mad." Hale laughed.
</p>
<p>
"You jes' hush up—both of ye," said the girl with a sharp kick of
her right foot.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you can't stamp the ground that fer away from it," said the old
man dryly. "If you don't git the better of that all-fired temper o' yourn
hit's goin' to git the better of you, an' then I'll have to spank you
agin."
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you ain't goin' to whoop me no more, pap. I'm a-gittin' too
big."
</p>
<p>
The old man opened eyes and mouth with an indulgent roar of laughter.
</p>
<p>
"Come on up to the house," he said to Hale, turning to lead the way, the
little girl following him. The old step-mother was again a-bed; small Bub,
the brother, still unafraid, sat down beside Hale and the old man brought
out a bottle of moonshine.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon I can still trust ye," he said.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you can," laughed Hale.
</p>
<p>
The liquor was as fiery as ever, but it was grateful, and again the old
man took nearly a tumbler full plying Hale, meanwhile, about the
happenings in town the day before—but Hale could tell him nothing
that he seemed not already to know.
</p>
<p>
"It was quar," the old mountaineer said. "I've seed two men with the drap
on each other and both afeerd to shoot, but I never heerd of sech a
ring-around-the-rosy as eight fellers with bead on one another and not a
shoot shot. I'm glad I wasn't thar."
</p>
<p>
He frowned when Hale spoke of the Red Fox.
</p>
<p>
"You can't never tell whether that ole devil is fer ye or agin ye, but
I've been plum' sick o' these doin's a long time now and sometimes I think
I'll just pull up stakes and go West and git out of hit—altogether."
</p>
<p>
"How did you learn so much about yesterday—so soon?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, we hears things purty quick in these mountains. Little Dave Tolliver
come over here last night."
</p>
<p>
"Yes," broke in Bub, "and he tol' us how you carried Loretty from town on
a mule behind ye, and she jest a-sassin' you, an' as how she said she was
a-goin' to git you fer HER sweetheart."
</p>
<p>
Hale glanced by chance at the little girl. Her face was scarlet, and a
light dawned.
</p>
<p>
"An' sis, thar, said he was a-tellin' lies—an' when she growed up
she said she was a-goin' to marry—-"
</p>
<p>
Something snapped like a toy-pistol and Bub howled. A little brown hand
had whacked him across the mouth, and the girl flashed indoors without a
word. Bub got to his feet howling with pain and rage and started after
her, but the old man caught him:
</p>
<p>
"Set down, boy! Sarved you right fer blabbin' things that hain't yo'
business." He shook with laughter.
</p>
<p>
Jealousy! Great heavens—Hale thought—in that child, and for
him!
</p>
<p>
"I knowed she was cryin' 'bout something like that. She sets a great store
by you, an' she's studied them books you sent her plum' to pieces while
you was away. She ain't nothin' but a baby, but in sartain ways she's as
old as her mother was when she died." The amazing secret was out, and the
little girl appeared no more until supper time, when she waited on the
table, but at no time would she look at Hale or speak to him again. For a
while the two men sat on the porch talking of the feud and the Gap and the
coal on the old man's place, and Hale had no trouble getting an option for
a year on the old man's land. Just as dusk was setting he got his horse.
</p>
<p>
"You'd better stay all night."
</p>
<p>
"No, I'll have to get along."
</p>
<p>
The little girl did not appear to tell him goodby, and when he went to his
horse at the gate, he called:
</p>
<p>
"Tell June to come down here. I've got something for her."
</p>
<p>
"Go on, baby," the old man said, and the little girl came shyly down to
the gate. Hale took a brown-paper parcel from his saddle-bags, unwrapped
it and betrayed the usual blue-eyed, flaxen-haired, rosy-cheeked doll.
Only June did not know the like of it was in all the world. And as she
caught it to her breast there were tears once more in her uplifted eyes.
</p>
<p>
"How about going over to the Gap with me, little girl—some day?"
</p>
<p>
He never guessed it, but there were a child and a woman before him now and
both answered:
</p>
<p>
"I'll go with ye anywhar."
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Hale stopped a while to rest his horse at the base of the big pine. He was
practically alone in the world. The little girl back there was born for
something else than slow death in that God-forsaken cove, and whatever it
was—why not help her to it if he could? With this thought in his
brain, he rode down from the luminous upper world of the moon and stars
toward the nether world of drifting mists and black ravines. She belonged
to just such a night—that little girl—she was a part of its
mists, its lights and shadows, its fresh wild beauty and its mystery. Only
once did his mind shift from her to his great purpose, and that was when
the roar of the water through the rocky chasm of the Gap made him think of
the roar of iron wheels, that, rushing through, some day, would drown it
into silence. At the mouth of the Gap he saw the white valley lying at
peace in the moonlight and straightway from it sprang again, as always,
his castle in the air; but before he fell asleep in his cottage on the
edge of the millpond that night he heard quite plainly again:
</p>
<p>
"I'll go with ye—anywhar."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0012" id="link2H_4_0012">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XI
</h2>
<p>
Spring was coming: and, meanwhile, that late autumn and short winter,
things went merrily on at the gap in some ways, and in some ways—not.
</p>
<p>
Within eight miles of the place, for instance, the man fell ill—the
man who was to take up Hale's options—and he had to be taken home.
Still Hale was undaunted: here he was and here he would stay—and he
would try again. Two other young men, Bluegrass Kentuckians, Logan and
Macfarlan, had settled at the gap—both lawyers and both of pioneer,
Indian-fighting blood. The report of the State geologist had been spread
broadcast. A famous magazine writer had come through on horseback and had
gone home and given a fervid account of the riches and the beauty of the
region. Helmeted Englishmen began to prowl prospectively around the gap
sixty miles to the southwest. New surveying parties were directing lines
for the rocky gateway between the iron ore and the coal. Engineers and
coal experts passed in and out. There were rumours of a furnace and a
steel plant when the railroad should reach the place. Capital had flowed
in from the East, and already a Pennsylvanian was starting a main entry
into a ten-foot vein of coal up through the gap and was coking it. His
report was that his own was better than the Connellsville coke, which was
the standard: it was higher in carbon and lower in ash. The Ludlow
brothers, from Eastern Virginia, had started a general store. Two of the
Berkley brothers had come over from Bluegrass Kentucky and their family
was coming in the spring. The bearded Senator up the valley, who was also
a preacher, had got his Methodist brethren interested—and the
community was further enriched by the coming of the Hon. Samuel Budd,
lawyer and budding statesman. As a recreation, the Hon. Sam was an
anthropologist: he knew the mountaineers from Virginia to Alabama and they
were his pet illustrations of his pet theories of the effect of a mountain
environment on human life and character. Hale took a great fancy to him
from the first moment he saw his smooth, ageless, kindly face, surmounted
by a huge pair of spectacles that were hooked behind two large ears, above
which his pale yellow hair, parted in the middle, was drawn back with
plaster-like precision. A mayor and a constable had been appointed, and
the Hon. Sam had just finished his first case—Squire Morton and the
Widow Crane, who ran a boarding-house, each having laid claim to three
pigs that obstructed traffic in the town. The Hon. Sam was sitting by the
stove, deep in thought, when Hale came into the hotel and he lifted his
great glaring lenses and waited for no introduction:
</p>
<p>
"Brother," he said, "do you know twelve reliable witnesses come on the
stand and SWORE them pigs belonged to the squire's sow, and twelve equally
reliable witnesses SWORE them pigs belonged to the Widow Crane's sow? I
shorely was a heap perplexed."
</p>
<p>
"That was curious." The Hon. Sam laughed:
</p>
<p>
"Well, sir, them intelligent pigs used both them sows as mothers, and may
be they had another mother somewhere else. They would breakfast with the
Widow Crane's sow and take supper with the squire's sow. And so them
witnesses, too, was naturally perplexed."
</p>
<p>
Hale waited while the Hon. Sam puffed his pipe into a glow:
</p>
<p>
"Believin', as I do, that the most important principle in law is mutually
forgivin' and a square division o' spoils, I suggested a compromise. The
widow said the squire was an old rascal an' thief and he'd never sink a
tooth into one of them shoats, but that her lawyer was a gentleman—meanin'
me—and the squire said the widow had been blackguardin' him all over
town and he'd see her in heaven before she got one, but that HIS lawyer
was a prince of the realm: so the other lawyer took one and I got the
other."
</p>
<p>
"What became of the third?"
</p>
<p>
The Hon. Sam was an ardent disciple of Sir Walter Scott:
</p>
<p>
"Well, just now the mayor is a-playin' Gurth to that little runt for
costs."
</p>
<p>
Outside, the wheels of the stage rattled, and as half a dozen strangers
trooped in, the Hon. Sam waved his hand: "Things is comin'."
</p>
<p>
Things were coming. The following week "the booming editor" brought in a
printing-press and started a paper. An enterprising Hoosier soon
established a brick-plant. A geologist—Hale's predecessor in
Lonesome Cove—made the Gap his headquarters, and one by one the
vanguard of engineers, surveyors, speculators and coalmen drifted in. The
wings of progress began to sprout, but the new town-constable soon
tendered his resignation with informality and violence. He had arrested a
Falin, whose companions straightway took him from custody and set him
free. Straightway the constable threw his pistol and badge of office to
the ground.
</p>
<p>
"I've fit an' I've hollered fer help," he shouted, almost crying with
rage, "an' I've fit agin. Now this town can go to hell": and he picked up
his pistol but left his symbol of law and order in the dust. Next morning
there was a new constable, and only that afternoon when Hale stepped into
the Ludlow Brothers' store he found the constable already busy. A line of
men with revolver or knife in sight was drawn up inside with their backs
to Hale, and beyond them he could see the new constable with a man under
arrest. Hale had not forgotten his promise to himself and he began now:
</p>
<p>
"Come on," he called quietly, and when the men turned at the sound of his
voice, the constable, who was of sterner stuff than his predecessor,
pushed through them, dragging his man after him.
</p>
<p>
"Look here, boys," said Hale calmly. "Let's not have any row. Let him go
to the mayor's office. If he isn't guilty, the mayor will let him go. If
he is, the mayor will give him bond. I'll go on it myself. But let's not
have a row."
</p>
<p>
Now, to the mountain eye, Hale appeared no more than the ordinary man, and
even a close observer would have seen no more than that his face was
clean-cut and thoughtful, that his eye was blue and singularly clear and
fearless, and that he was calm with a calmness that might come from
anything else than stolidity of temperament—and that, by the way, is
the self-control which counts most against the unruly passions of other
men—but anybody near Hale, at a time when excitement was high and a
crisis was imminent, would have felt the resultant of forces emanating
from him that were beyond analysis. And so it was now—the curious
power he instinctively had over rough men had its way.
</p>
<p>
"Go on," he continued quietly, and the constable went on with his
prisoner, his friends following, still swearing and with their weapons in
their hands. When constable and prisoner passed into the mayor's office,
Hale stepped quickly after them and turned on the threshold with his arm
across the door.
</p>
<p>
"Hold on, boys," he said, still good-naturedly. "The mayor can attend to
this. If you boys want to fight anybody, fight me. I'm unarmed and you can
whip me easily enough," he added with a laugh, "but you mustn't come in
here," he concluded, as though the matter was settled beyond further
discussion. For one instant—the crucial one, of course—the men
hesitated, for the reason that so often makes superior numbers of no avail
among the lawless—the lack of a leader of nerve—and without
another word Hale held the door. But the frightened mayor inside let the
prisoner out at once on bond and Hale, combining law and diplomacy, went
on the bond.
</p>
<p>
Only a day or two later the mountaineers, who worked at the brick-plant
with pistols buckled around them, went on a strike and, that night, shot
out the lights and punctured the chromos in their boarding-house. Then,
armed with sticks, knives, clubs and pistols, they took a triumphant march
through town. That night two knives and two pistols were whipped out by
two of them in the same store. One of the Ludlows promptly blew out the
light and astutely got under the counter. When the combatants scrambled
outside, he locked the door and crawled out the back window. Next morning
the brick-yard malcontents marched triumphantly again and Hale called for
volunteers to arrest them. To his disgust only Logan, Macfarlan, the Hon.
Sam Budd, and two or three others seemed willing to go, but when the few
who would go started, Hale, leading them, looked back and the whole town
seemed to be strung out after him. Below the hill, he saw the mountaineers
drawn up in two bodies for battle and, as he led his followers towards
them, the Hoosier owner of the plant rode out at a gallop, waving his
hands and apparently beside himself with anxiety and terror.
</p>
<p>
"Don't," he shouted; "somebody'll get killed. Wait—they'll give up."
So Hale halted and the Hoosier rode back. After a short parley he came
back to Hale to say that the strikers would give up, but when Logan
started again, they broke and ran, and only three or four were captured.
The Hoosier was delirious over his troubles and straightway closed his
plant.
</p>
<p>
"See," said Hale in disgust. "We've got to do something now."
</p>
<p>
"We have," said the lawyers, and that night on Hale's porch, the three,
with the Hon. Sam Budd, pondered the problem. They could not build a town
without law and order—they could not have law and order without
taking part themselves, and even then they plainly would have their hands
full. And so, that night, on the tiny porch of the little cottage that was
Hale's sleeping-room and office, with the creaking of the one wheel of
their one industry—the old grist-mill—making patient music
through the rhododendron-darkness that hid the steep bank of the stream,
the three pioneers forged their plan. There had been gentlemen-regulators
a plenty, vigilance committees of gentlemen, and the Ku-Klux clan had been
originally composed of gentlemen, as they all knew, but they meant to hew
to the strict line of town-ordinance and common law and do the rough
everyday work of the common policeman. So volunteer policemen they would
be and, in order to extend their authority as much as possible, as county
policemen they would be enrolled. Each man would purchase his own
Winchester, pistol, billy, badge and a whistle—to call for help—and
they would begin drilling and target-shooting at once. The Hon. Sam shook
his head dubiously:
</p>
<p>
"The natives won't understand."
</p>
<p>
"We can't help that," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"I know—I'm with you."
</p>
<p>
Hale was made captain, Logan first lieutenant, Macfarlan second, and the
Hon. Sam third. Two rules, Logan, who, too, knew the mountaineer well,
suggested as inflexible. One was never to draw a pistol at all unless
necessary, never to pretend to draw as a threat or to intimidate, and
never to draw unless one meant to shoot, if need be.
</p>
<p>
"And the other," added Logan, "always go in force to make an arrest—never
alone unless necessary." The Hon. Sam moved his head up and down in hearty
approval.
</p>
<p>
"Why is that?" asked Hale.
</p>
<p>
"To save bloodshed," he said. "These fellows we will have to deal with
have a pride that is morbid. A mountaineer doesn't like to go home and
have to say that one man put him in the calaboose—but he doesn't
mind telling that it took several to arrest him. Moreover, he will give in
to two or three men, when he would look on the coming of one man as a
personal issue and to be met as such."
</p>
<p>
Hale nodded.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, there'll be plenty of chances," Logan added with a smile, "for
everyone to go it alone." Again the Hon. Sam nodded grimly. It was plain
to him that they would have all they could do, but no one of them dreamed
of the far-reaching effect that night's work would bring.
</p>
<p>
They were the vanguard of civilization—"crusaders of the nineteenth
century against the benighted of the Middle Ages," said the Hon. Sam, and
when Logan and Macfarlan left, he lingered and lit his pipe.
</p>
<p>
"The trouble will be," he said slowly, "that they won't understand our
purpose or our methods. They will look on us as a lot of meddlesome
'furriners' who have come in to run their country as we please, when they
have been running it as they please for more than a hundred years. You
see, you mustn't judge them by the standards of to-day—you must go
back to the standards of the Revolution. Practically, they are the
pioneers of that day and hardly a bit have they advanced. They are our
contemporary ancestors." And then the Hon. Sam, having dropped his
vernacular, lounged ponderously into what he was pleased to call his
anthropological drool.
</p>
<p>
"You see, mountains isolate people and the effect of isolation on human
life is to crystallize it. Those people over the line have had no
navigable rivers, no lakes, no wagon roads, except often the beds of
streams. They have been cut off from all communication with the outside
world. They are a perfect example of an arrested civilization and they are
the closest link we have with the Old World. They were Unionists because
of the Revolution, as they were Americans in the beginning because of the
spirit of the Covenanter. They live like the pioneers; the axe and the
rifle are still their weapons and they still have the same fight with
nature. This feud business is a matter of clan-loyalty that goes back to
Scotland. They argue this way: You are my friend or my kinsman, your
quarrel is my quarrel, and whoever hits you hits me. If you are in
trouble, I must not testify against you. If you are an officer, you must
not arrest me; you must send me a kindly request to come into court. If
I'm innocent and it's perfectly convenient—why, maybe I'll come.
Yes, we're the vanguard of civilization, all right, all right—but I
opine we're goin' to have a hell of a merry time."
</p>
<p>
Hale laughed, but he was to remember those words of the Hon. Samuel Budd.
Other members of that vanguard began to drift in now by twos and threes
from the bluegrass region of Kentucky and from the tide-water country of
Virginia and from New England—strong, bold young men with the spirit
of the pioneer and the birth, breeding and education of gentlemen, and the
war between civilization and a lawlessness that was the result of
isolation, and consequent ignorance and idleness started in earnest.
</p>
<p>
"A remarkable array," murmured the Hon. Sam, when he took an inventory one
night with Hale, "I'm proud to be among 'em."
</p>
<p>
Many times Hale went over to Lonesome Cove and with every visit his
interest grew steadily in the little girl and in the curious people over
there, until he actually began to believe in the Hon. Sam Budd's
anthropological theories. In the cabin on Lonesome Cove was a crane
swinging in the big stone fireplace, and he saw the old step-mother and
June putting the spinning wheel and the loom to actual use. Sometimes he
found a cabin of unhewn logs with a puncheon floor, clapboards for
shingles and wooden pin and auger holes for nails; a batten wooden
shutter, the logs filled with mud and stones and holes in the roof for the
wind and the rain. Over a pair of buck antlers sometimes lay the long
heavy home-made rifle of the backwoodsman—sometimes even with a
flintlock and called by some pet feminine name. Once he saw the hominy
block that the mountaineers had borrowed from the Indians, and once a
handmill like the one from which the one woman was taken and the other
left in biblical days. He struck communities where the medium of exchange
was still barter, and he found mountaineers drinking metheglin still as
well as moonshine. Moreover, there were still log-rollings,
house-warmings, corn-shuckings, and quilting parties, and sports were the
same as in pioneer days—wrestling, racing, jumping, and lifting
barrels. Often he saw a cradle of beegum, and old Judd had in his house a
fox-horn made of hickory bark which even June could blow. He ran across
old-world superstitions, too, and met one seventh son of a seventh son who
cured children of rash by blowing into their mouths. And he got June to
singing transatlantic songs, after old Judd said one day that she knowed
the "miserablest song he'd ever heerd"—meaning the most sorrowful.
And, thereupon, with quaint simplicity, June put her heels on the rung of
her chair, and with her elbows on her knees, and her chin on both bent
thumbs, sang him the oldest version of "Barbara Allen" in a voice that
startled Hale by its power and sweetness. She knew lots more
"song-ballets," she said shyly, and the old man had her sing some songs
that were rather rude, but were as innocent as hymns from her lips.
</p>
<p>
Everywhere he found unlimited hospitality.
</p>
<p>
"Take out, stranger," said one old fellow, when there was nothing on the
table but some bread and a few potatoes, "have a tater. Take two of 'em—take
damn nigh ALL of 'em."
</p>
<p>
Moreover, their pride was morbid, and they were very religious. Indeed,
they used religion to cloak their deviltry, as honestly as it was ever
used in history. He had heard old Judd say once, when he was speaking of
the feud:
</p>
<p>
"Well, I've al'ays laid out my enemies. The Lord's been on my side an' I
gits a better Christian every year."
</p>
<p>
Always Hale took some children's book for June when he went to Lonesome
Cove, and she rarely failed to know it almost by heart when he went again.
She was so intelligent that he began to wonder if, in her case, at least,
another of the Hon. Sam's theories might not be true—that the
mountaineers were of the same class as the other westward-sweeping
emigrants of more than a century before, that they had simply lain dormant
in the hills and—a century counting for nothing in the matter of
inheritance—that their possibilities were little changed, and that
the children of that day would, if given the chance, wipe out the handicap
of a century in one generation and take their place abreast with children
of the outside world. The Tollivers were of good blood; they had come from
Eastern Virginia, and the original Tolliver had been a slave-owner. The
very name was, undoubtedly, a corruption of Tagliaferro. So, when the
Widow Crane began to build a brick house for her boarders that winter, and
the foundations of a school-house were laid at the Gap, Hale began to
plead with old Judd to allow June to go over to the Gap and go to school,
but the old man was firm in refusal:
</p>
<p>
"He couldn't git along without her," he said; "he was afeerd he'd lose
her, an' he reckoned June was a-larnin' enough without goin' to school—she
was a-studyin' them leetle books o' hers so hard." But as his confidence
in Hale grew and as Hale stated his intention to take an option on the old
man's coal lands, he could see that Devil Judd, though his answer never
varied, was considering the question seriously.
</p>
<p>
Through the winter, then, Hale made occasional trips to Lonesome Cove and
bided his time. Often he met young Dave Tolliver there, but the boy
usually left when Hale came, and if Hale was already there, he kept
outside the house, until the engineer was gone.
</p>
<p>
Knowing nothing of the ethics of courtship in the mountains—how,
when two men meet at the same girl's house, "they makes the gal say which
one she likes best and t'other one gits"—Hale little dreamed that
the first time Dave stalked out of the room, he threw his hat in the grass
behind the big chimney and executed a war-dance on it, cursing the
blankety-blank "furriner" within from Dan to Beersheba.
</p>
<p>
Indeed, he never suspected the fierce depths of the boy's jealousy at all,
and he would have laughed incredulously, if he had been told how, time
after time as he climbed the mountain homeward, the boy's black eyes
burned from the bushes on him, while his hand twitched at his pistol-butt
and his lips worked with noiseless threats. For Dave had to keep his
heart-burnings to himself or he would have been laughed at through all the
mountains, and not only by his own family, but by June's; so he, too,
bided his time.
</p>
<p>
In late February, old Buck Falin and old Dave Tolliver shot each other
down in the road and the Red Fox, who hated both and whom each thought was
his friend, dressed the wounds of both with equal care. The temporary lull
of peace that Bad Rufe's absence in the West had brought about, gave way
to a threatening storm then, and then it was that old Judd gave his
consent: when the roads got better, June could go to the Gap to school. A
month later the old man sent word that he did not want June in the
mountains while the trouble was going on, and that Hale could come over
for her when he pleased: and Hale sent word back that within three days he
would meet the father and the little girl at the big Pine. That last day
at home June passed in a dream. She went through her daily tasks in a
dream and she hardly noticed young Dave when he came in at mid-day, and
Dave, when he heard the news, left in sullen silence. In the afternoon she
went down to the mill to tell Uncle Billy and ole Hon good-by and the
three sat in the porch a long time and with few words. Ole Hon had been to
the Gap once, but there was "so much bustle over thar it made her head
ache." Uncle Billy shook his head doubtfully over June's going, and the
two old people stood at the gate looking long after the little girl when
she went homeward up the road. Before supper June slipped up to her little
hiding-place at the pool and sat on the old log saying good-by to the
comforting spirit that always brooded for her there, and, when she stood
on the porch at sunset, a new spirit was coming on the wings of the South
wind. Hale felt it as he stepped into the soft night air; he heard it in
the piping of frogs—"Marsh-birds," as he always called them; he
could almost see it in the flying clouds and the moonlight and even the
bare trees seemed tremulously expectant. An indefinable happiness seemed
to pervade the whole earth and Hale stretched his arms lazily. Over in
Lonesome Cove little June felt it more keenly than ever in her life
before. She did not want to go to bed that night, and when the others were
asleep she slipped out to the porch and sat on the steps, her eyes
luminous and her face wistful—looking towards the big Pine which
pointed the way towards the far silence into which she was going at last.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0013" id="link2H_4_0013">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XII
</h2>
<p>
June did not have to be awakened that morning. At the first clarion call
of the old rooster behind the cabin, her eyes opened wide and a happy
thrill tingled her from head to foot—why, she didn't at first quite
realize—and then she stretched her slender round arms to full length
above her head and with a little squeal of joy bounded out of the bed,
dressed as she was when she went into it, and with no changes to make
except to push back her tangled hair. Her father was out feeding the stock
and she could hear her step-mother in the kitchen. Bub still slept
soundly, and she shook him by the shoulder.
</p>
<p>
"Git up, Bub."
</p>
<p>
"Go 'way," said Bub fretfully. Again she started to shake him but stopped—Bub
wasn't going to the Gap, so she let him sleep. For a little while she
looked down at him—at his round rosy face and his frowsy hair from
under which protruded one dirty fist. She was going to leave him, and a
fresh tenderness for him made her breast heave, but she did not kiss him,
for sisterly kisses are hardly known in the hills. Then she went out into
the kitchen to help her step-mother.
</p>
<p>
"Gittin' mighty busy, all of a sudden, ain't ye," said the sour old woman,
"now that ye air goin' away."
</p>
<p>
"'Tain't costin' you nothin'," answered June quietly, and she picked up a
pail and went out into the frosty, shivering daybreak to the old well. The
chain froze her fingers, the cold water splashed her feet, and when she
had tugged her heavy burden back to the kitchen, she held her red, chapped
hands to the fire.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you'll be mighty glad to git shet o' me." The old woman
sniffled, and June looked around with a start.
</p>
<p>
"Pears like I'm goin' to miss ye right smart," she quavered, and June's
face coloured with a new feeling towards her step-mother.
</p>
<p>
"I'm goin' ter have a hard time doin' all the work and me so poorly."
</p>
<p>
"Lorrety is a-comin' over to he'p ye, if ye git sick," said June,
hardening again. "Or, I'll come back myself." She got out the dishes and
set them on the table.
</p>
<p>
"You an' me don't git along very well together," she went on placidly. "I
never heerd o' no step-mother and children as did, an' I reckon you'll be
might glad to git shet o' me."
</p>
<p>
"Pears like I'm going to miss ye a right smart," repeated the old woman
weakly.
</p>
<p>
June went out to the stable with the milking pail. Her father had spread
fodder for the cow and she could hear the rasping of the ears of corn
against each other as he tumbled them into the trough for the old sorrel.
She put her head against the cow's soft flank and under her sinewy fingers
two streams of milk struck the bottom of the tin pail with such thumping
loudness that she did not hear her father's step; but when she rose to
make the beast put back her right leg, she saw him looking at her.
</p>
<p>
"Who's goin' ter milk, pap, atter I'm gone?"
</p>
<p>
"This the fust time you thought o' that?" June put her flushed cheek back
to the flank of the cow. It was not the first time she had thought of that—her
step-mother would milk and if she were ill, her father or Loretta. She had
not meant to ask that question—she was wondering when they would
start. That was what she meant to ask and she was glad that she had
swerved. Breakfast was eaten in the usual silence by the boy and the man—June
and the step-mother serving it, and waiting on the lord that was and the
lord that was to be—and then the two females sat down.
</p>
<p>
"Hurry up, June," said the old man, wiping his mouth and beard with the
back of his hand. "Clear away the dishes an' git ready. Hale said he would
meet us at the Pine an' hour by sun, fer I told him I had to git back to
work. Hurry up, now!"
</p>
<p>
June hurried up. She was too excited to eat anything, so she began to wash
the dishes while her step-mother ate. Then she went into the living-room
to pack her things and it didn't take long. She wrapped the doll Hale had
given her in an extra petticoat, wound one pair of yarn stockings around a
pair of coarse shoes, tied them up into one bundle and she was ready. Her
father appeared with the sorrel horse, caught up his saddle from the
porch, threw it on and stretched the blanket behind it as a pillion for
June to ride on.
</p>
<p>
"Let's go!" he said. There is little or no demonstrativeness in the
domestic relations of mountaineers. The kiss of courtship is the only one
known. There were no good-bys—only that short "Let's go!"
</p>
<p>
June sprang behind her father from the porch. The step-mother handed her
the bundle which she clutched in her lap, and they simply rode away, the
step-mother and Bub silently gazing after them. But June saw the boy's
mouth working, and when she turned the thicket at the creek, she looked
back at the two quiet figures, and a keen pain cut her heart. She shut her
mouth closely, gripped her bundle more tightly and the tears streamed down
her face, but the man did not know. They climbed in silence. Sometimes her
father dismounted where the path was steep, but June sat on the horse to
hold the bundle and thus they mounted through the mist and chill of the
morning. A shout greeted them from the top of the little spur whence the
big Pine was visible, and up there they found Hale waiting. He had reached
the Pine earlier than they and was coming down to meet them.
</p>
<p>
"Hello, little girl," called Hale cheerily, "you didn't fail me, did you?"
</p>
<p>
June shook her head and smiled. Her face was blue and her little legs,
dangling under the bundle, were shrinking from the cold. Her bonnet had
fallen to the back of her neck, and he saw that her hair was parted and
gathered in a Psyche knot at the back of her head, giving her a quaint old
look when she stood on the ground in her crimson gown. Hale had not
forgotten a pillion and there the transfer was made. Hale lifted her
behind his saddle and handed up her bundle.
</p>
<p>
"I'll take good care of her," he said.
</p>
<p>
"All right," said the old man.
</p>
<p>
"And I'm coming over soon to fix up that coal matter, and I'll let you
know how she's getting on."
</p>
<p>
"All right."
</p>
<p>
"Good-by," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"I wish ye well," said the mountaineer. "Be a good girl, Juny, and do what
Mr. Hale thar tells ye."
</p>
<p>
"All right, pap." And thus they parted. June felt the power of Hale's big
black horse with exultation the moment he started.
</p>
<p>
"Now we're off," said Hale gayly, and he patted the little hand that was
about his waist. "Give me that bundle."
</p>
<p>
"I can carry it."
</p>
<p>
"No, you can't—not with me," and when he reached around for it and
put it on the cantle of his saddle, June thrust her left hand into his
overcoat pocket and Hale laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Loretta wouldn't ride with me this way."
</p>
<p>
"Loretty ain't got much sense," drawled June complacently. "'Tain't no
harm. But don't you tell me! I don't want to hear nothin' 'bout Loretty
noway." Again Hale laughed and June laughed, too. Imp that she was, she
was just pretending to be jealous now. She could see the big Pine over his
shoulder.
</p>
<p>
"I've knowed that tree since I was a little girl—since I was a
baby," she said, and the tone of her voice was new to Hale. "Sister Sally
uster tell me lots about that ole tree." Hale waited, but she stopped
again.
</p>
<p>
"What did she tell you?"
</p>
<p>
"She used to say hit was curious that hit should be 'way up here all alone—that
she reckollected it ever since SHE was a baby, and she used to come up
here and talk to it, and she said sometimes she could hear it jus' a
whisperin' to her when she was down home in the cove."
</p>
<p>
"What did she say it said?"
</p>
<p>
"She said it was always a-whisperin' 'come—come—come!'" June
crooned the words, "an' atter she died, I heerd the folks sayin' as how
she riz up in bed with her eyes right wide an' sayin' "I hears it! It's
a-whisperin'—I hears it—come—come—come'!" And
still Hale kept quiet when she stopped again.
</p>
<p>
"The Red Fox said hit was the sperits, but I knowed when they told me that
she was a thinkin' o' that ole tree thar. But I never let on. I reckon
that's ONE reason made me come here that day." They were close to the big
tree now and Hale dismounted to fix his girth for the descent.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'm mighty glad you came, little girl. I might never have seen
you."
</p>
<p>
"That's so," said June. "I saw the print of your foot in the mud right
there."
</p>
<p>
"Did ye?"
</p>
<p>
"And if I hadn't, I might never have gone down into Lonesome Cove." June
laughed.
</p>
<p>
"You ran from me," Hale went on.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, I did: an' that's why you follered me." Hale looked up quickly. Her
face was demure, but her eyes danced. She was an aged little thing.
</p>
<p>
"Why did you run?"
</p>
<p>
"I thought yo' fishin' pole was a rifle-gun an' that you was a raider."
Hale laughed—"I see."
</p>
<p>
"'Member when you let yo' horse drink?" Hale nodded. "Well, I was on a
rock above the creek, lookin' down at ye. An' I seed ye catchin' minners
an' thought you was goin' up the crick lookin' fer a still."
</p>
<p>
"Weren't you afraid of me then?"
</p>
<p>
"Huh!" she said contemptuously. "I wasn't afeared of you at all, 'cept fer
what you mought find out. You couldn't do no harm to nobody without a gun,
and I knowed thar wasn't no still up that crick. I know—I knowed
whar it was." Hale noticed the quick change of tense.
</p>
<p>
"Won't you take me to see it some time?"
</p>
<p>
"No!" she said shortly, and Hale knew he had made a mistake. It was too
steep for both to ride now, so he tied the bundle to the cantle with
leathern strings and started leading the horse. June pointed to the edge
of the cliff.
</p>
<p>
"I was a-layin' flat right thar and I seed you comin' down thar. My, but
you looked funny to me! You don't now," she added hastily. "You look
mighty nice to me now—!"
</p>
<p>
"You're a little rascal," said Hale, "that's what you are." The little
girl bubbled with laughter and then she grew mock-serious.
</p>
<p>
"No, I ain't."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, you are," he repeated, shaking his head, and both were silent for a
while. June was going to begin her education now and it was just as well
for him to begin with it now. So he started vaguely when he was mounted
again:
</p>
<p>
"June, you thought my clothes were funny when you first saw them—didn't
you?"
</p>
<p>
"Uh, huh!" said June.
</p>
<p>
"But you like them now?"
</p>
<p>
"Uh, huh!" she crooned again.
</p>
<p>
"Well, some people who weren't used to clothes that people wear over in
the mountains might think THEM funny for the same reason—mightn't
they?" June was silent for a moment.
</p>
<p>
"Well, mebbe, I like your clothes better, because I like you better," she
said, and Hale laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Well, it's just the same—the way people in the mountains dress and
talk is different from the way people outside dress and talk. It doesn't
make much difference about clothes, though, I guess you will want to be as
much like people over here as you can—"
</p>
<p>
"I don't know," interrupted the little girl shortly, "I ain't seed 'em
yit."
</p>
<p>
"Well," laughed Hale, "you will want to talk like them anyhow, because
everybody who is learning tries to talk the same way." June was silent,
and Hale plunged unconsciously on.
</p>
<p>
"Up at the Pine now you said, 'I SEED you when I was A-LAYIN on the edge
of the cliff'; now you ought to have said, 'I SAW you when I was LYING—'"
</p>
<p>
"I wasn't," she said sharply, "I don't tell lies—" her hand shot
from his waist and she slid suddenly to the ground. He pulled in his horse
and turned a bewildered face. She had lighted on her feet and was poised
back above him like an enraged eaglet—her thin nostrils quivering,
her mouth as tight as a bow-string, and her eyes two points of fire.
</p>
<p>
"Why—June!"
</p>
<p>
"Ef you don't like my clothes an' the way I talk, I reckon I'd better go
back home." With a groan Hale tumbled from his horse. Fool that he was, he
had forgotten the sensitive pride of the mountaineer, even while he was
thinking of that pride. He knew that fun might be made of her speech and
her garb by her schoolmates over at the Gap, and he was trying to prepare
her—to save her mortification, to make her understand.
</p>
<p>
"Why, June, little girl, I didn't mean to hurt your feelings. You don't
understand—you can't now, but you will. Trust me, won't you? <i>I</i>
like you just as you are. I LOVE the way you talk. But other people—forgive
me, won't you?" he pleaded. "I'm sorry. I wouldn't hurt you for the
world."
</p>
<p>
She didn't understand—she hardly heard what he said, but she did
know his distress was genuine and his sorrow: and his voice melted her
fierce little heart. The tears began to come, while she looked, and when
he put his arms about her, she put her face on his breast and sobbed.
</p>
<p>
"There now!" he said soothingly. "It's all right now. I'm so sorry—so
very sorry," and he patted her on the shoulder and laid his hand across
her temple and hair, and pressed her head tight to his breast. Almost as
suddenly she stopped sobbing and loosening herself turned away from him.
</p>
<p>
"I'm a fool—that's what I am," she said hotly.
</p>
<p>
"No, you aren't! Come on, little girl! We're friends again, aren't we?"
June was digging at her eyes with both hands.
</p>
<p>
"Aren't we?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," she said with an angry little catch of her breath, and she turned
submissively to let him lift her to her seat. Then she looked down into
his face.
</p>
<p>
"Jack," she said, and he started again at the frank address, "I ain't
NEVER GOIN' TO DO THAT NO MORE."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, you are, little girl," he said soberly but cheerily. "You're goin'
to do it whenever I'm wrong or whenever you think I'm wrong." She shook
her head seriously.
</p>
<p>
"No, Jack."
</p>
<p>
In a few minutes they were at the foot of the mountain and on a level
road.
</p>
<p>
"Hold tight!" Hale shouted, "I'm going to let him out now." At the touch
of his spur, the big black horse sprang into a gallop, faster and faster,
until he was pounding the hard road in a swift run like thunder. At the
creek Hale pulled in and looked around. June's bonnet was down, her hair
was tossed, her eyes were sparkling fearlessly, and her face was flushed
with joy.
</p>
<p>
"Like it, June?"
</p>
<p>
"I never did know nothing like it."
</p>
<p>
"You weren't scared?"
</p>
<p>
"Skeered o' what?" she asked, and Hale wondered if there was anything of
which she would be afraid.
</p>
<p>
They were entering the Gap now and June's eyes got big with wonder over
the mighty up-shooting peaks and the rushing torrent.
</p>
<p>
"See that big rock yonder, June?" June craned her neck to follow with her
eyes his outstretched finger.
</p>
<p>
"Uh, huh."
</p>
<p>
"Well, that's called Bee Rock, because it's covered with flowers—purple
rhododendrons and laurel—and bears used to go there for wild honey.
They say that once on a time folks around here put whiskey in the honey
and the bears got so drunk that people came and knocked 'em in the head
with clubs."
</p>
<p>
"Well, what do you think o' that!" said June wonderingly.
</p>
<p>
Before them a big mountain loomed, and a few minutes later, at the mouth
of the Gap, Hale stopped and turned his horse sidewise.
</p>
<p>
"There we are, June," he said.
</p>
<p>
June saw the lovely little valley rimmed with big mountains. She could
follow the course of the two rivers that encircled it by the trees that
fringed their banks, and she saw smoke rising here and there and that was
all. She was a little disappointed.
</p>
<p>
"It's mighty purty," she said, "I never seed"—she paused, but went
on without correcting herself—"so much level land in all my life."
</p>
<p>
The morning mail had just come in as they rode by the post-office and
several men hailed her escort, and all stared with some wonder at her.
Hale smiled to himself, drew up for none and put on a face of utter
unconsciousness that he was doing anything unusual. June felt vaguely
uncomfortable. Ahead of them, when they turned the corner of the street,
her eyes fell on a strange tall red house with yellow trimmings, that was
not built of wood and had two sets of windows one above the other, and
before that Hale drew up.
</p>
<p>
"Here we are. Get down, little girl."
</p>
<p>
"Good-morning!" said a voice. Hale looked around and flushed, and June
looked around and stared—transfixed as by a vision from another
world—at the dainty figure behind them in a walking suit, a short
skirt that showed two little feet in laced tan boots and a cap with a
plume, under which was a pair of wide blue eyes with long lashes, and a
mouth that suggested active mischief and gentle mockery.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, good-morning," said Hale, and he added gently, "Get down, June!"
</p>
<p>
The little girl slipped to the ground and began pulling her bonnet on with
both hands—but the newcomer had caught sight of the Psyche knot that
made June look like a little old woman strangely young, and the mockery at
her lips was gently accentuated by a smile. Hale swung from his saddle.
</p>
<p>
"This is the little girl I told you about, Miss Anne," he said. "She's
come over to go to school." Instantly, almost, Miss Anne had been melted
by the forlorn looking little creature who stood before her, shy for the
moment and dumb, and she came forward with her gloved hand outstretched.
But June had seen that smile. She gave her hand, and Miss Anne straightway
was no little surprised; there was no more shyness in the dark eyes that
blazed from the recesses of the sun-bonnet, and Miss Anne was so startled
when she looked into them that all she could say was: "Dear me!" A portly
woman with a kind face appeared at the door of the red brick house and
came to the gate.
</p>
<p>
"Here she is, Mrs. Crane," called Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Howdye, June!" said the Widow Crane kindly. "Come right in!" In her June
knew straightway she had a friend and she picked up her bundle and
followed upstairs—the first real stairs she had ever seen—and
into a room on the floor of which was a rag carpet. There was a bed in one
corner with a white counterpane and a washstand with a bowl and pitcher,
which, too, she had never seen before.
</p>
<p>
"Make yourself at home right now," said the Widow Crane, pulling open a
drawer under a big looking-glass—"and put your things here. That's
your bed," and out she went.
</p>
<p>
How clean it was! There were some flowers in a glass vase on the mantel.
There were white curtains at the big window and a bed to herself—her
own bed. She went over to the window. There was a steep bank, lined with
rhododendrons, right under it. There was a mill-dam below and down the
stream she could hear the creaking of a water-wheel, and she could see it
dripping and shining in the sun—a gristmill! She thought of Uncle
Billy and ole Hon, and in spite of a little pang of home-sickness she felt
no loneliness at all.
</p>
<p>
"I KNEW she would be pretty," said Miss Anne at the gate outside.
</p>
<p>
"I TOLD you she was pretty," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"But not so pretty as THAT," said Miss Anne. "We will be great friends."
</p>
<p>
"I hope so—for her sake," said Hale.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Hale waited till noon-recess was nearly over, and then he went to take
June to the school-house. He was told that she was in her room and he went
up and knocked at the door. There was no answer—for one does not
knock on doors for entrance in the mountains, and, thinking he had made a
mistake, he was about to try another room, when June opened the door to
see what the matter was. She gave him a glad smile.
</p>
<p>
"Come on," he said, and when she went for her bonnet, he stepped into the
room.
</p>
<p>
"How do you like it?" June nodded toward the window and Hale went to it.
</p>
<p>
"That's Uncle Billy's mill out thar."
</p>
<p>
"Why, so it is," said Hale smiling. "That's fine."
</p>
<p>
The school-house, to June's wonder, had shingles on the OUTSIDE around all
the walls from roof to foundation, and a big bell hung on top of it under
a little shingled roof of its own. A pale little man with spectacles and
pale blue eyes met them at the door and he gave June a pale, slender hand
and cleared his throat before he spoke to her.
</p>
<p>
"She's never been to school," said Hale; "she can read and spell, but
she's not very strong on arithmetic."
</p>
<p>
"Very well, I'll turn her over to the primary." The school-bell sounded;
Hale left with a parting prophecy—"You'll be proud of her some day"—at
which June blushed and then, with a beating heart, she followed the little
man into his office. A few minutes later, the assistant came in, and she
was none other than the wonderful young woman whom Hale had called Miss
Anne. There were a few instructions in a halting voice and with much
clearing of the throat from the pale little man; and a moment later June
walked the gauntlet of the eyes of her schoolmates, every one of whom
looked up from his book or hers to watch her as she went to her seat. Miss
Anne pointed out the arithmetic lesson and, without lifting her eyes, June
bent with a flushed face to her task. It reddened with shame when she was
called to the class, for she sat on the bench, taller by a head and more
than any of the boys and girls thereon, except one awkward youth who
caught her eye and grinned with unashamed companionship. The teacher
noticed her look and understood with a sudden keen sympathy, and naturally
she was struck by the fact that the new pupil was the only one who never
missed an answer.
</p>
<p>
"She won't be there long," Miss Anne thought, and she gave June a smile
for which the little girl was almost grateful. June spoke to no one, but
walked through her schoolmates homeward, when school was over, like a
haughty young queen. Miss Anne had gone ahead and was standing at the gate
talking with Mrs. Crane, and the young woman spoke to June most kindly.
</p>
<p>
"Mr. Hale has been called away on business," she said, and June's heart
sank—"and I'm going to take care of you until he comes back."
</p>
<p>
"I'm much obleeged," she said, and while she was not ungracious, her
manner indicated her belief that she could take care of herself. And Miss
Anne felt uncomfortably that this extraordinary young person was steadily
measuring her from head to foot. June saw the smart close-fitting gown,
the dainty little boots, and the carefully brushed hair. She noticed how
white her teeth were and her hands, and she saw that the nails looked
polished and that the tips of them were like little white crescents; and
she could still see every detail when she sat at her window, looting down
at the old mill. She SAW Mr. Hale when he left, the young lady had said;
and she had a headache now and was going home to LIE down. She understood
now what Hale meant, on the mountainside when she was so angry with him.
She was learning fast, and most from the two persons who were not
conscious what they were teaching her. And she would learn in the school,
too, for the slumbering ambition in her suddenly became passionately
definite now. She went to the mirror and looked at her hair—she
would learn how to plait that in two braids down her back, as the other
school-girls did. She looked at her hands and straightway she fell to
scrubbing them with soap as she had never scrubbed them before. As she
worked, she heard her name called and she opened the door.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, mam!" she answered, for already she had picked that up in the
school-room.
</p>
<p>
"Come on, June, and go down the street with me."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, mam," she repeated, and she wiped her hands and hurried down. Mrs.
Crane had looked through the girl's pathetic wardrobe, while she was at
school that afternoon, had told Hale before he left and she had a surprise
for little June. Together they went down the street and into the chief
store in town and, to June's amazement, Mrs. Crane began ordering things
for "this little girl."
</p>
<p>
"Who's a-goin' to pay fer all these things?" whispered June, aghast.
</p>
<p>
"Don't you bother, honey. Mr. Hale said he would fix all that with your
pappy. It's some coal deal or something—don't you bother!" And June
in a quiver of happiness didn't bother. Stockings, petticoats, some soft
stuff for a new dress and TAN shoes that looked like the ones that
wonderful young woman wore and then some long white things.
</p>
<p>
"What's them fer?" she whispered, but the clerk heard her and laughed,
whereat Mrs. Crane gave him such a glance that he retired quickly.
</p>
<p>
"Night-gowns, honey."
</p>
<p>
"You SLEEP in 'em?" said June in an awed voice.
</p>
<p>
"That's just what you do," said the good old woman, hardly less pleased
than June.
</p>
<p>
"My, but you've got pretty feet."
</p>
<p>
"I wish they were half as purty as—"
</p>
<p>
"Well, they are," interrupted Mrs. Crane a little snappishly; apparently
she did not like Miss Anne.
</p>
<p>
"Wrap 'em up and Mr. Hale will attend to the bill."
</p>
<p>
"All right," said the clerk looking much mystified.
</p>
<p>
Outside the door, June looked up into the beaming goggles of the Hon.
Samuel Budd.
</p>
<p>
"Is THIS the little girl? Howdye, June," he said, and June put her hand in
the Hon. Sam's with a sudden trust in his voice.
</p>
<p>
"I'm going to help take care of you, too," said Mr. Budd, and June smiled
at him with shy gratitude. How kind everybody was!
</p>
<p>
"I'm much obleeged," she said, and she and Mrs. Crane went on back with
their bundles.
</p>
<p>
June's hands so trembled when she found herself alone with her treasures
that she could hardly unpack them. When she had folded and laid them away,
she had to unfold them to look at them again. She hurried to bed that
night merely that she might put on one of those wonderful night-gowns, and
again she had to look all her treasures over. She was glad that she had
brought the doll because HE had given it to her, but she said to herself
"I'm a-gittin' too big now fer dolls!" and she put it away. Then she set
the lamp on the mantel-piece so that she could see herself in her
wonderful night-gown. She let her shining hair fall like molten gold
around her shoulders, and she wondered whether she could ever look like
the dainty creature that just now was the model she so passionately wanted
to be like. Then she blew out the lamp and sat a while by the window,
looking down through the rhododendrons, at the shining water and at the
old water-wheel sleepily at rest in the moonlight. She knelt down then at
her bedside to say her prayers—as her dead sister had taught her to
do—and she asked God to bless Jack—wondering as she prayed
that she had heard nobody else call him Jack—and then she lay down
with her breast heaving. She had told him she would never do that again,
but she couldn't help it now—the tears came and from happiness she
cried herself softly to sleep.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0014" id="link2H_4_0014">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XIII
</h2>
<p>
Hale rode that night under a brilliant moon to the worm of a railroad that
had been creeping for many years toward the Gap. The head of it was just
protruding from the Natural Tunnel twenty miles away. There he sent his
horse back, slept in a shanty till morning, and then the train crawled
through a towering bench of rock. The mouth of it on the other side opened
into a mighty amphitheatre with solid rock walls shooting vertically
hundreds of feet upward. Vertically, he thought—with the back of his
head between his shoulders as he looked up—they were more than
vertical—they were actually concave. The Almighty had not only
stored riches immeasurable in the hills behind him—He had driven
this passage Himself to help puny man to reach them, and yet the wretched
road was going toward them like a snail. On the fifth night, thereafter he
was back there at the tunnel again from New York—with a grim mouth
and a happy eye. He had brought success with him this time and there was
no sleep for him that night. He had been delayed by a wreck, it was two
o'clock in the morning, and not a horse was available; so he started those
twenty miles afoot, and day was breaking when he looked down on the little
valley shrouded in mist and just wakening from sleep.
</p>
<p>
Things had been moving while he was away, as he quickly learned. The
English were buying lands right and left at the gap sixty miles southwest.
Two companies had purchased most of the town-site where he was—HIS
town-site—and were going to pool their holdings and form an
improvement company. But a good deal was left, and straightway Hale got a
map from his office and with it in his hand walked down the curve of the
river and over Poplar Hill and beyond. Early breakfast was ready when he
got back to the hotel. He swallowed a cup of coffee so hastily that it
burned him, and June, when she passed his window on her way to school, saw
him busy over his desk. She started to shout to him, but he looked so
haggard and grim that she was afraid, and went on, vaguely hurt by a
preoccupation that seemed quite to have excluded her. For two hours then,
Hale haggled and bargained, and at ten o'clock he went to the telegraph
office. The operator who was speculating in a small way himself smiled
when he read the telegram.
</p>
<p>
"A thousand an acre?" he repeated with a whistle. "You could have got that
at twenty-five per—three months ago."
</p>
<p>
"I know," said Hale, "there's time enough yet." Then he went to his room,
pulled the blinds down and went to sleep, while rumour played with his
name through the town.
</p>
<p>
It was nearly the closing hour of school when, dressed and freshly shaven,
he stepped out into the pale afternoon and walked up toward the
schoolhouse. The children were pouring out of the doors. At the gate there
was a sudden commotion, he saw a crimson figure flash into the group that
had stopped there, and flash out, and then June came swiftly toward him
followed closely by a tall boy with a cap on his head. That far away he
could see that she was angry and he hurried toward her. Her face was white
with rage, her mouth was tight and her dark eyes were aflame. Then from
the group another tall boy darted out and behind him ran a smaller one,
bellowing. Hale heard the boy with the cap call kindly:
</p>
<p>
"Hold on, little girl! I won't let 'em touch you." June stopped with him
and Hale ran to them.
</p>
<p>
"Here," he called, "what's the matter?"
</p>
<p>
June burst into crying when she saw him and leaned over the fence sobbing.
The tall lad with the cap had his back to Hale, and he waited till the
other two boys came up. Then he pointed to the smaller one and spoke to
Hale without looking around.
</p>
<p>
"Why, that little skate there was teasing this little girl and—"
</p>
<p>
"She slapped him," said Hale grimly. The lad with the cap turned. His eyes
were dancing and the shock of curly hair that stuck from his absurd little
cap shook with his laughter.
</p>
<p>
"Slapped him! She knocked him as flat as a pancake."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, an' you said you'd stand fer her," said the other tall boy who was
plainly a mountain lad. He was near bursting with rage.
</p>
<p>
"You bet I will," said the boy with the cap heartily, "right now!" and he
dropped his books to the ground.
</p>
<p>
"Hold on!" said Hale, jumping between them. "You ought to be ashamed of
yourself," he said to the mountain boy.
</p>
<p>
"I wasn't atter the gal," he said indignantly. "I was comin' fer him."
</p>
<p>
The boy with the cap tried to get away from Hale's grasp.
</p>
<p>
"No use, sir," he said coolly. "You'd better let us settle it now. We'll
have to do it some time. I know the breed. He'll fight all right and
there's no use puttin' it off. It's got to come."
</p>
<p>
"You bet it's got to come," said the mountain lad. "You can't call my
brother names."
</p>
<p>
"Well, he IS a skate," said the boy with the cap, with no heat at all in
spite of his indignation, and Hale wondered at his aged calm.
</p>
<p>
"Every one of you little tads," he went on coolly, waving his hand at the
gathered group, "is a skate who teases this little girl. And you older
boys are skates for letting the little ones do it, the whole pack of you—and
I'm going to spank any little tadpole who does it hereafter, and I'm going
to punch the head off any big one who allows it. It's got to stop NOW!"
And as Hale dragged him off he added to the mountain boy, "and I'm going
to begin with you whenever you say the word." Hale was laughing now.
</p>
<p>
"You don't seem to understand," he said, "this is my affair."
</p>
<p>
"I beg your pardon, sir, I don't understand."
</p>
<p>
"Why, I'm taking care of this little girl."
</p>
<p>
"Oh, well, you see I didn't know that. I've only been here two days. But"—his
frank, generous face broke into a winning smile—"you don't go to
school. You'll let me watch out for her there?"
</p>
<p>
"Sure! I'll be very grateful."
</p>
<p>
"Not at all, sir—not at all. It was a great pleasure and I think
I'll have lots of fun." He looked at June, whose grateful eyes had hardly
left his face.
</p>
<p>
"So don't you soil your little fist any more with any of 'em, but just
tell me—er—er—"
</p>
<p>
"June," she said, and a shy smile came through her tears.
</p>
<p>
"June," he finished with a boyish laugh. "Good-by sir."
</p>
<p>
"You haven't told me your name."
</p>
<p>
"I suppose you know my brothers, sir, the Berkleys."
</p>
<p>
"I should say so," and Hale held out his hand. "You're Bob?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, sir."
</p>
<p>
"I knew you were coming, and I'm mighty glad to see you. I hope you and
June will be good friends and I'll be very glad to have you watch over her
when I'm away."
</p>
<p>
"I'd like nothing better, sir," he said cheerfully, and quite impersonally
as far as June was concerned. Then his eyes lighted up.
</p>
<p>
"My brothers don't seem to want me to join the Police Guard. Won't you say
a word for me?"
</p>
<p>
"I certainly will."
</p>
<p>
"Thank you, sir."
</p>
<p>
That "sir" no longer bothered Hale. At first he had thought it a mark of
respect to his superior age, and he was not particularly pleased, but when
he knew now that the lad was another son of the old gentleman whom he saw
riding up the valley every morning on a gray horse, with several dogs
trailing after him—he knew the word was merely a family
characteristic of old-fashioned courtesy.
</p>
<p>
"Isn't he nice, June?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," she said.
</p>
<p>
"Have you missed me, June?"
</p>
<p>
June slid her hand into his. "I'm so glad you come back." They were
approaching the gate now.
</p>
<p>
"June, you said you weren't going to cry any more." June's head drooped.
</p>
<p>
"I know, but I jes' can't help it when I git mad," she said seriously.
"I'd bust if I didn't."
</p>
<p>
"All right," said Hale kindly.
</p>
<p>
"I've cried twice," she said.
</p>
<p>
"What were you mad about the other time?"
</p>
<p>
"I wasn't mad."
</p>
<p>
"Then why did you cry, June?"
</p>
<p>
Her dark eyes looked full at him a moment and then her long lashes hid
them.
</p>
<p>
"Cause you was so good to me."
</p>
<p>
Hale choked suddenly and patted her on the shoulder.
</p>
<p>
"Go in, now, little girl, and study. Then you must take a walk. I've got
some work to do. I'll see you at supper time."
</p>
<p>
"All right," said June. She turned at the gate to watch Hale enter the
hotel, and as she started indoors, she heard a horse coming at a gallop
and she turned again to see her cousin, Dave Tolliver, pull up in front of
the house. She ran back to the gate and then she saw that he was swaying
in his saddle.
</p>
<p>
"Hello, June!" he called thickly.
</p>
<p>
Her face grew hard and she made no answer.
</p>
<p>
"I've come over to take ye back home."
</p>
<p>
She only stared at him rebukingly, and he straightened in his saddle with
an effort at self-control—but his eyes got darker and he looked
ugly.
</p>
<p>
"D'you hear me? I've come over to take ye home."
</p>
<p>
"You oughter be ashamed o' yourself," she said hotly, and she turned to go
back into the house.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, you ain't ready now. Well, git ready an' we'll start in the mornin'.
I'll be aroun' fer ye 'bout the break o' day."
</p>
<p>
He whirled his horse with an oath—June was gone. She saw him ride
swaying down the street and she ran across to the hotel and found Hale
sitting in the office with another man. Hale saw her entering the door
swiftly, he knew something was wrong and he rose to meet her.
</p>
<p>
"Dave's here," she whispered hurriedly, "an' he says he's come to take me
home."
</p>
<p>
"Well," said Hale, "he won't do it, will he?" June shook her head and then
she said significantly:
</p>
<p>
"Dave's drinkin'."
</p>
<p>
Hale's brow clouded. Straightway he foresaw trouble—but he said
cheerily:
</p>
<p>
"All right. You go back and keep in the house and I'll be over by and by
and we'll talk it over." And, without another word, she went. She had
meant to put on her new dress and her new shoes and stockings that night
that Hale might see her—but she was in doubt about doing it when she
got to her room. She tried to study her lessons for the next day, but she
couldn't fix her mind on them. She wondered if Dave might not get into a
fight or, perhaps, he would get so drunk that he would go to sleep
somewhere—she knew that men did that after drinking very much—and,
anyhow, he would not bother her until next morning, and then he would be
sober and would go quietly back home. She was so comforted that she got to
thinking about the hair of the girl who sat in front of her at school. It
was plaited and she had studied just how it was done and she began to
wonder whether she could fix her own that way. So she got in front of the
mirror and loosened hers in a mass about her shoulders—the mass that
was to Hale like the golden bronze of a wild turkey's wing. The other
girl's plaits were the same size, so that the hair had to be equally
divided—thus she argued to herself—but how did that girl
manage to plait it behind her back? She did it in front, of course, so
June divided the bronze heap behind her and pulled one half of it in front
of her and then for a moment she was helpless. Then she laughed—it
must be done like the grass-blades and strings she had plaited for Bub, of
course, so, dividing that half into three parts, she did the plaiting
swiftly and easily. When it was finished she looked at the braid, much
pleased—for it hung below her waist and was much longer than any of
the other girls' at school. The transition was easy now, so interested had
she become. She got out her tan shoes and stockings and the pretty white
dress and put them on. The millpond was dark with shadows now, and she
went down the stairs and out to the gate just as Dave again pulled up in
front of it. He stared at the vision wonderingly and long, and then he
began to laugh with the scorn of soberness and the silliness of drink.
</p>
<p>
"YOU ain't June, air ye?" The girl never moved. As if by a preconcerted
signal three men moved toward the boy, and one of them said sternly:
</p>
<p>
"Drop that pistol. You are under arrest.' The boy glared like a wild thing
trapped, from one to another of the three—a pistol gleamed in the
hand of each—and slowly thrust his own weapon into his pocket.
</p>
<p>
"Get off that horse," added the stern voice. Just then Hale rushed across
the street and the mountain youth saw him.
</p>
<p>
"Ketch his pistol," cried June, in terror for Hale—for she knew what
was coming, and one of the men caught with both hands the wrist of Dave's
arm as it shot behind him.
</p>
<p>
"Take him to the calaboose!"
</p>
<p>
At that June opened the gate—that disgrace she could never stand—but
Hale spoke.
</p>
<p>
"I know him, boys. He doesn't mean any harm. He doesn't know the
regulations yet. Suppose we let him go home."
</p>
<p>
"All right," said Logan. "The calaboose or home. Will you go home?"
</p>
<p>
In the moment, the mountain boy had apparently forgotten his captors—he
was staring at June with wonder, amazement, incredulity struggling through
the fumes in his brain to his flushed face. She—a Tolliver—had
warned a stranger against her own blood-cousin.
</p>
<p>
"Will you go home?" repeated Logan sternly.
</p>
<p>
The boy looked around at the words, as though he were half dazed, and his
baffled face turned sick and white.
</p>
<p>
"Lemme loose!" he said sullenly. "I'll go home." And he rode silently
away, after giving Hale a vindictive look that told him plainer than words
that more was yet to come. Hale had heard June's warning cry, but now when
he looked for her she was gone. He went in to supper and sat down at the
table and still she did not come.
</p>
<p>
"She's got a surprise for you," said Mrs. Crane, smiling mysteriously.
"She's been fixing for you for an hour. My! but she's pretty in them new
clothes—why, June!"
</p>
<p>
June was coming in—she wore her homespun, her scarlet homespun and
the Psyche knot. She did not seem to have heard Mrs. Crane's note of
wonder, and she sat quietly down in her seat. Her face was pale and she
did not look at Hale. Nothing was said of Dave—in fact, June said
nothing at all, and Hale, too, vaguely understanding, kept quiet. Only
when he went out, Hale called her to the gate and put one hand on her
head.
</p>
<p>
"I'm sorry, little girl."
</p>
<p>
The girl lifted her great troubled eyes to him, but no word passed her
lips, and Hale helplessly left her.
</p>
<p>
June did not cry that night. She sat by the window—wretched and
tearless. She had taken sides with "furriners" against her own people.
That was why, instinctively, she had put on her old homespun with a vague
purpose of reparation to them. She knew the story Dave would take back
home—the bitter anger that his people and hers would feel at the
outrage done him—anger against the town, the Guard, against Hale
because he was a part of both and even against her. Dave was merely drunk,
he had simply shot off his pistol—that was no harm in the hills. And
yet everybody had dashed toward him as though he had stolen something—even
Hale. Yes, even that boy with the cap who had stood up for her at school
that afternoon—he had rushed up, his face aflame with excitement,
eager to take part should Dave resist. She had cried out impulsively to
save Hale, but Dave would not understand. No, in his eyes she had been
false to family and friends—to the clan—she had sided with
"furriners." What would her father say? Perhaps she'd better go home next
day—perhaps for good—for there was a deep unrest within her
that she could not fathom, a premonition that she was at the parting of
the ways, a vague fear of the shadows that hung about the strange new path
on which her feet were set. The old mill creaked in the moonlight below
her. Sometimes, when the wind blew up Lonesome Cove, she could hear Uncle
Billy's wheel creaking just that way. A sudden pang of homesickness choked
her, but she did not cry. Yes, she would go home next day. She blew out
the light and undressed in the dark as she did at home and went to bed.
And that night the little night-gown lay apart from her in the drawer—unfolded
and untouched.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0015" id="link2H_4_0015">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XIV
</h2>
<p>
But June did not go home. Hale anticipated that resolution of hers and
forestalled it by being on hand for breakfast and taking June over to the
porch of his little office. There he tried to explain to her that they
were trying to build a town and must have law and order; that they must
have no personal feeling for or against anybody and must treat everybody
exactly alike—no other course was fair—and though June could
not quite understand, she trusted him and she said she would keep on at
school until her father came for her.
</p>
<p>
"Do you think he will come, June?"
</p>
<p>
The little girl hesitated.
</p>
<p>
"I'm afeerd he will," she said, and Hale smiled.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'll try to persuade him to let you stay, if he does come."
</p>
<p>
June was quite right. She had seen the matter the night before just as it
was. For just at that hour young Dave, sobered, but still on the verge of
tears from anger and humiliation, was telling the story of the day in her
father's cabin. The old man's brows drew together and his eyes grew fierce
and sullen, both at the insult to a Tolliver and at the thought of a
certain moonshine still up a ravine not far away and the indirect danger
to it in any finicky growth of law and order. Still he had a keen sense of
justice, and he knew that Dave had not told all the story, and from him
Dave, to his wonder, got scant comfort—for another reason as well:
with a deal pending for the sale of his lands, the shrewd old man would
not risk giving offence to Hale—not until that matter was settled,
anyway. And so June was safer from interference just then than she knew.
But Dave carried the story far and wide, and it spread as a story can only
in the hills. So that the two people most talked about among the Tollivers
and, through Loretta, among the Falins as well, were June and Hale, and at
the Gap similar talk would come. Already Hale's name was on every tongue
in the town, and there, because of his recent purchases of town-site land,
he was already, aside from his personal influence, a man of mysterious
power.
</p>
<p>
Meanwhile, the prescient shadow of the coming "boom" had stolen over the
hills and the work of the Guard had grown rapidly.
</p>
<p>
Every Saturday there had been local lawlessness to deal with. The spirit
of personal liberty that characterized the spot was traditional. Here for
half a century the people of Wise County and of Lee, whose border was but
a few miles down the river, came to get their wool carded, their grist
ground and farming utensils mended. Here, too, elections were held viva
voce under the beeches, at the foot of the wooded spur now known as
Imboden Hill. Here were the muster-days of wartime. Here on Saturdays the
people had come together during half a century for sport and horse-trading
and to talk politics. Here they drank apple-jack and hard cider, chaffed
and quarrelled and fought fist and skull. Here the bullies of the two
counties would come together to decide who was the "best man." Here was
naturally engendered the hostility between the hill-dwellers of Wise and
the valley people of Lee, and here was fought a famous battle between a
famous bully of Wise and a famous bully of Lee. On election days the
country people would bring in gingercakes made of cane-molasses, bread
homemade of Burr flour and moonshine and apple-jack which the candidates
would buy and distribute through the crowd. And always during the
afternoon there were men who would try to prove themselves the best
Democrats in the State of Virginia by resort to tooth, fist and
eye-gouging thumb. Then to these elections sometimes would come the
Kentuckians from over the border to stir up the hostility between state
and state, which makes that border bristle with enmity to this day. For
half a century, then, all wild oats from elsewhere usually sprouted at the
Gap. And thus the Gap had been the shrine of personal freedom—the
place where any one individual had the right to do his pleasure with
bottle and cards and politics and any other the right to prove him wrong
if he were strong enough. Very soon, as the Hon. Sam Budd predicted, they
had the hostility of Lee concentrated on them as siding with the county of
Wise, and they would gain, in addition now, the general hostility of the
Kentuckians, because as a crowd of meddlesome "furriners" they would be
siding with the Virginians in the general enmity already alive. Moreover,
now that the feud threatened activity over in Kentucky, more trouble must
come, too, from that source, as the talk that came through the Gap, after
young Dave Tolliver's arrest, plainly indicated.
</p>
<p>
Town ordinances had been passed. The wild centaurs were no longer allowed
to ride up and down the plank walks of Saturdays with their reins in their
teeth and firing a pistol into the ground with either hand; they could
punctuate the hotel sign no more; they could not ride at a fast gallop
through the streets of the town, and, Lost Spirit of American Liberty!—they
could not even yell. But the lawlessness of the town itself and its close
environment was naturally the first objective point, and the first problem
involved was moonshine and its faithful ally "the blind tiger." The
"tiger" is a little shanty with an ever-open mouth—a hole in the
door like a post-office window. You place your money on the sill and, at
the ring of the coin, a mysterious arm emerges from the hole, sweeps the
money away and leaves a bottle of white whiskey. Thus you see nobody's
face; the owner of the beast is safe, and so are you—which you might
not be, if you saw and told. In every little hollow about the Gap a tiger
had his lair, and these were all bearded at once by a petition to the
county judge for high license saloons, which was granted. This measure
drove the tigers out of business, and concentrated moonshine in the heart
of the town, where its devotees were under easy guard. One "tiger" only
indeed was left, run by a round-shouldered crouching creature whom Bob
Berkley—now at Hale's solicitation a policeman and known as the
Infant of the Guard—dubbed Caliban. His shanty stood midway in the
Gap, high from the road, set against a dark clump of pines and roared at
by the river beneath. Everybody knew he sold whiskey, but he was too
shrewd to be caught, until, late one afternoon, two days after young
Dave's arrest, Hale coming through the Gap into town glimpsed a skulking
figure with a hand-barrel as it slipped from the dark pines into Caliban's
cabin. He pulled in his horse, dismounted and deliberated. If he went on
down the road now, they would see him and suspect. Moreover, the patrons
of the tiger would not appear until after dark, and he wanted a prisoner
or two. So Hale led his horse up into the bushes and came back to a covert
by the roadside to watch and wait. As he sat there, a merry whistle
sounded down the road, and Hale smiled. Soon the Infant of the Guard came
along, his hands in his pockets, his cap on the back of his head, his
pistol bumping his hip in manly fashion and making the ravines echo with
his pursed lips. He stopped in front of Hale, looked toward the river,
drew his revolver and aimed it at a floating piece of wood. The revolver
cracked, the piece of wood skidded on the surface of the water and there
was no splash.
</p>
<p>
"That was a pretty good shot," said Hale in a low voice. The boy whirled
and saw him.
</p>
<p>
"Well-what are you—?"
</p>
<p>
"Easy—easy!" cautioned Hale. "Listen! I've just seen a moonshiner go
into Caliban's cabin." The boy's eager eyes sparkled.
</p>
<p>
"Let's go after him."
</p>
<p>
"No, you go on back. If you don't, they'll be suspicious. Get another man"—Hale
almost laughed at the disappointment in the lad's face at his first words,
and the joy that came after it—"and climb high above the shanty and
come back here to me. Then after dark we'll dash in and cinch Caliban and
his customers."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, sir," said the lad. "Shall I whistle going back?" Hale nodded
approval.
</p>
<p>
"Just the same." And off Bob went, whistling like a calliope and not even
turning his head to look at the cabin. In half an hour Hale thought he
heard something crashing through the bushes high on the mountain side,
and, a little while afterward, the boy crawled through the bushes to him
alone. His cap was gone, there was a bloody scratch across his face and he
was streaming with perspiration.
</p>
<p>
"You'll have to excuse me, sir," he panted, "I didn't see anybody but one
of my brothers, and if I had told him, he wouldn't have let ME come. And I
hurried back for fear—for fear something would happen."
</p>
<p>
"Well, suppose I don't let you go."
</p>
<p>
"Excuse me, sir, but I don't see how you can very well help. You aren't my
brother and you can't go alone."
</p>
<p>
"I was," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, sir, but not now."
</p>
<p>
Hale was worried, but there was nothing else to be done.
</p>
<p>
"All right. I'll let you go if you stop saying 'sir' to me. It makes me
feel so old."
</p>
<p>
"Certainly, sir," said the lad quite unconsciously, and when Hale
smothered a laugh, he looked around to see what had amused him. Darkness
fell quickly, and in the gathering gloom they saw two more figures skulk
into the cabin.
</p>
<p>
"We'll go now—for we want the fellow who's selling the moonshine."
</p>
<p>
Again Hale was beset with doubts about the boy and his own responsibility
to the boy's brothers. The lad's eyes were shining, but his face was more
eager than excited and his hand was as steady as Hale's own.
</p>
<p>
"You slip around and station yourself behind that pine-tree just behind
the cabin"—the boy looked crestfallen—"and if anybody tries to
get out of the back door—you halt him."
</p>
<p>
"Is there a back door?"
</p>
<p>
"I don't know," Hale said rather shortly. "You obey orders. I'm not your
brother, but I'm your captain."
</p>
<p>
"I beg your pardon, sir. Shall I go now?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, you'll hear me at the front door. They won't make any resistance."
The lad stepped away with nimble caution high above the cabin, and he even
took his shoes off before he slid lightly down to his place behind the
pine. There was no back door, only a window, and his disappointment was
bitter. Still, when he heard Hale at the front door, he meant to make a
break for that window, and he waited in the still gloom. He could hear the
rough talk and laughter within and now and then the clink of a tin cup. By
and by there was a faint noise in front of the cabin, and he steadied his
nerves and his beating heart. Then he heard the door pushed violently in
and Hale's cry:
</p>
<p>
"Surrender!"
</p>
<p>
Hale stood on the threshold with his pistol outstretched in his right
hand. The door had struck something soft and he said sharply again:
</p>
<p>
"Come out from behind that door—hands up!"
</p>
<p>
At the same moment, the back window flew open with a bang and Bob's pistol
covered the edge of the opened door. "Caliban" had rolled from his box
like a stupid animal. Two of his patrons sat dazed and staring from Hale
to the boy's face at the window. A mountaineer stood in one corner with
twitching fingers and shifting eyes like a caged wild thing and forth
issued from behind the door, quivering with anger—young Dave
Tolliver. Hale stared at him amazed, and when Dave saw Hale, such a wave
of fury surged over his face that Bob thought it best to attract his
attention again; which he did by gently motioning at him with the barrel
of his pistol.
</p>
<p>
"Hold on, there," he said quietly, and young Dave stood still.
</p>
<p>
"Climb through that window, Bob, and collect the batteries," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Sure, sir," said the lad, and with his pistol still prominently in the
foreground he threw his left leg over the sill and as he climbed in he
quoted with a grunt: "Always go in force to make an arrest." Grim and
serious as it was, with June's cousin glowering at him, Hale could not
help smiling.
</p>
<p>
"You didn't go home, after all," said Hale to young Dave, who clenched his
hands and his lips but answered nothing; "or, if you did, you got back
pretty quick." And still Dave was silent.
</p>
<p>
"Get 'em all, Bob?" In answer the boy went the rounds—feeling the
pocket of each man's right hip and his left breast.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, sir."
</p>
<p>
"Unload 'em!"
</p>
<p>
The lad "broke" each of the four pistols, picked up a piece of twine and
strung them together through each trigger-guard.
</p>
<p>
"Close that window and stand here at the door."
</p>
<p>
With the boy at the door, Hale rolled the hand-barrel to the threshold and
the white liquor gurgled joyously on the steps.
</p>
<p>
"All right, come along," he said to the captives, and at last young Dave
spoke:
</p>
<p>
"Whut you takin' me fer?"
</p>
<p>
Hale pointed to the empty hand-barrel and Dave's answer was a look of
scorn.
</p>
<p>
"I nuvver brought that hyeh."
</p>
<p>
"You were drinking illegal liquor in a blind tiger, and if you didn't
bring it you can prove that later. Anyhow, we'll want you as a witness,"
and Hale looked at the other mountaineer, who had turned his eyes quickly
to Dave. Caliban led the way with young Dave, and Hale walked side by side
with them while Bob was escort for the other two. The road ran along a
high bank, and as Bob was adjusting the jangling weapons on his left arm,
the strange mountaineer darted behind him and leaped headlong into the
tops of thick rhododendron. Before Hale knew what had happened the lad's
pistol flashed.
</p>
<p>
"Stop, boy!" he cried, horrified. "Don't shoot!" and he had to catch the
lad to keep him from leaping after the runaway. The shot had missed; they
heard the runaway splash into the river and go stumbling across it and
then there was silence. Young Dave laughed:
</p>
<p>
"Uncle Judd'll be over hyeh to-morrow to see about this." Hale said
nothing and they went on. At the door of the calaboose Dave balked and had
to be pushed in by main force. They left him weeping and cursing with
rage.
</p>
<p>
"Go to bed, Bob," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, sir," said Bob; "just as soon as I get my lessons."
</p>
<p>
Hale did not go to the boarding-house that night—he feared to face
June. Instead he went to the hotel to scraps of a late supper and then to
bed. He had hardly touched the pillow, it seemed, when somebody shook him
by the shoulder. It was Macfarlan, and daylight was streaming through the
window.
</p>
<p>
"A gang of those Falins are here," Macfarlan said, "and they're after
young Dave Tolliver—about a dozen of 'em. Young Buck is with them,
and the sheriff. They say he shot a man over the mountains yesterday."
</p>
<p>
Hale sprang for his clothes—here was a quandary.
</p>
<p>
"If we turn him over to them—they'll kill him." Macfarlan nodded.
</p>
<p>
"Of course, and if we leave him in that weak old calaboose, they'll get
more help and take him out to-night."
</p>
<p>
"Then we'll take him to the county jail."
</p>
<p>
"They'll take him away from us."
</p>
<p>
"No, they won't. You go out and get as many shotguns as you can find and
load them with buckshot."
</p>
<p>
Macfarlan nodded approvingly and disappeared. Hale plunged his face in a
basin of cold water, soaked his hair and, as he was mopping his face with
a towel, there was a ponderous tread on the porch, the door opened without
the formality of a knock, and Devil Judd Tolliver, with his hat on and
belted with two huge pistols, stepped stooping within. His eyes, red with
anger and loss of sleep, were glaring, and his heavy moustache and beard
showed the twitching of his mouth.
</p>
<p>
"Whar's Dave?" he said shortly.
</p>
<p>
"In the calaboose."
</p>
<p>
"Did you put him in?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale calmly.
</p>
<p>
"Well, by God," the old man said with repressed fury, "you can't git him
out too soon if you want to save trouble."
</p>
<p>
"Look here, Judd," said Hale seriously. "You are one of the last men in
the world I want to have trouble with for many reasons; but I'm an officer
over here and I'm no more afraid of you"—Hale paused to let that
fact sink in and it did—"than you are of me. Dave's been selling
liquor."
</p>
<p>
"He hain't," interrupted the old mountaineer. "He didn't bring that liquor
over hyeh. I know who done it."
</p>
<p>
"All right," said Hale; "I'll take your word for it and I'll let him out,
if you say so, but—-"
</p>
<p>
"Right now," thundered old Judd.
</p>
<p>
"Do you know that young Buck Falin and a dozen of his gang are over here
after him?" The old man looked stunned.
</p>
<p>
"Whut—now?"
</p>
<p>
"They're over there in the woods across the river NOW and they want me to
give him up to them. They say they have the sheriff with them and they
want him for shooting a man on Leatherwood Creek, day before yesterday."
</p>
<p>
"It's all a lie," burst out old Judd. "They want to kill him."
</p>
<p>
"Of course—and I was going to take him up to the county jail right
away for safe-keeping."
</p>
<p>
"D'ye mean to say you'd throw that boy into jail and then fight them
Falins to pertect him?" the old man asked slowly and incredulously. Hale
pointed to a two-store building through his window.
</p>
<p>
"If you get in the back part of that store at a window, you can see
whether I will or not. I can summon you to help, and if a fight comes up
you can do your share from the window."
</p>
<p>
The old man's eyes lighted up like a leaping flame.
</p>
<p>
"Will you let Dave out and give him a Winchester and help us fight 'em?"
he said eagerly. "We three can whip 'em all."
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale shortly. "I'd try to keep both sides from fighting, and
I'd arrest Dave or you as quickly as I would a Falin."
</p>
<p>
The average mountaineer has little conception of duty in the abstract, but
old Judd belonged to the better class—and there are many of them—that
does. He looked into Hale's eyes long and steadily.
</p>
<p>
"All right."
</p>
<p>
Macfarlan came in hurriedly and stopped short—seeing the hatted,
bearded giant.
</p>
<p>
"This is Mr. Tolliver—an uncle of Dave's—Judd Tolliver," said
Hale. "Go ahead."
</p>
<p>
"I've got everything fixed—but I couldn't get but five of the
fellows—two of the Berkley boys. They wouldn't let me tell Bob."
</p>
<p>
"All right. Can I summon Mr. Tolliver here?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Macfarlan doubtfully, "but you know—-"
</p>
<p>
"He won't be seen," interrupted Hale, understandingly. "He'll be at a
window in the back of that store and he won't take part unless a fight
begins, and if it does, we'll need him."
</p>
<p>
An hour later Devil Judd Tolliver was in the store Hale pointed out and
peering cautiously around the edge of an open window at the wooden gate of
the ramshackle calaboose. Several Falins were there—led by young
Buck, whom Hale recognized as the red-headed youth at the head of the
tearing horsemen who had swept by him that late afternoon when he was
coming back from his first trip to Lonesome Cove. The old man gritted his
teeth as he looked and he put one of his huge pistols on a table within
easy reach and kept the other clenched in his right fist. From down the
street came five horsemen, led by John Hale. Every man carried a
double-barrelled shotgun, and the old man smiled and his respect for Hale
rose higher, high as it already was, for nobody—mountaineer or not—has
love for a hostile shotgun. The Falins, armed only with pistols, drew
near.
</p>
<p>
"Keep back!" he heard Hale say calmly, and they stopped—young Buck
alone going on.
</p>
<p>
"We want that feller," said young Buck.
</p>
<p>
"Well, you don't get him," said Hale quietly. "He's our prisoner. Keep
back!" he repeated, motioning with the barrel of his shotgun—and
young Buck moved backward to his own men, The old man saw Hale and another
man—the sergeant—go inside the heavy gate of the stockade. He
saw a boy in a cap, with a pistol in one hand and a strapped set of books
in the other, come running up to the men with the shotguns and he heard
one of them say angrily:
</p>
<p>
"I told you not to come."
</p>
<p>
"I know you did," said the boy imperturbably.
</p>
<p>
"You go on to school," said another of the men, but the boy with the cap
shook his head and dropped his books to the ground. The big gate opened
just then and out came Hale and the sergeant, and between them young Dave—his
eyes blinking in the sunlight.
</p>
<p>
"Damn ye," he heard Dave say to Hale. "I'll get even with you fer this
some day"—and then the prisoner's eyes caught the horses and
shotguns and turned to the group of Falins and he shrank back utterly
dazed. There was a movement among the Falins and Devil Judd caught up his
other pistol and with a grim smile got ready. Young Buck had turned to his
crowd:
</p>
<p>
"Men," he said, "you know I never back down"—Devil Judd knew that,
too, and he was amazed by the words that followed-"an' if you say so,
we'll have him or die; but we ain't in our own state now. They've got the
law and the shotguns on us, an' I reckon we'd better go slow."
</p>
<p>
The rest seemed quite willing to go slow, and, as they put their pistols
up, Devil Judd laughed in his beard. Hale put young Dave on a horse and
the little shotgun cavalcade quietly moved away toward the county-seat.
</p>
<p>
The crestfallen Falins dispersed the other way after they had taken a
parting shot at the Hon. Samuel Budd, who, too, had a pistol in his hand.
Young Buck looked long at him—and then he laughed:
</p>
<p>
"You, too, Sam Budd," he said. "We folks'll rickollect this on election
day." The Hon. Sam deigned no answer.
</p>
<p>
And up in the store Devil Judd lighted his pipe and sat down to think out
the strange code of ethics that governed that police-guard. Hale had told
him to wait there, and it was almost noon before the boy with the cap came
to tell him that the Falins had all left town. The old man looked at him
kindly.
</p>
<p>
"Air you the little feller whut fit fer June?"
</p>
<p>
"Not yet," said Bob; "but it's coming."
</p>
<p>
"Well, you'll whoop him."
</p>
<p>
"I'll do my best."
</p>
<p>
"Whar is she?"
</p>
<p>
"She's waiting for you over at the boarding-house."
</p>
<p>
"Does she know about this trouble?"
</p>
<p>
"Not a thing; she thinks you've come to take her home." The old man made
no answer, and Bob led him back toward Hale's office. June was waiting at
the gate, and the boy, lifting his cap, passed on. June's eyes were dark
with anxiety.
</p>
<p>
"You come to take me home, dad?"
</p>
<p>
"I been thinkin' 'bout it," he said, with a doubtful shake of his head.
</p>
<p>
June took him upstairs to her room and pointed out the old water-wheel
through the window and her new clothes (she had put on her old homespun
again when she heard he was in town), and the old man shook his head.
</p>
<p>
"I'm afeerd 'bout all these fixin's—you won't never be satisfied
agin in Lonesome Cove."
</p>
<p>
"Why, dad," she said reprovingly. "Jack says I can go over whenever I
please, as soon as the weather gits warmer and the roads gits good."
</p>
<p>
"I don't know," said the old man, still shaking his head.
</p>
<p>
All through dinner she was worried. Devil Judd hardly ate anything, so
embarrassed was he by the presence of so many "furriners" and by the white
cloth and table-ware, and so fearful was he that he would be guilty of
some breach of manners. Resolutely he refused butter, and at the third
urging by Mrs. Crane he said firmly, but with a shrewd twinkle in his eye:
</p>
<p>
"No, thank ye. I never eats butter in town. I've kept store myself," and
he was no little pleased with the laugh that went around the table. The
fact was he was generally pleased with June's environment and, after
dinner, he stopped teasing June.
</p>
<p>
"No, honey, I ain't goin' to take you away. I want ye to stay right where
ye air. Be a good girl now and do whatever Jack Hale tells ye and tell
that boy with all that hair to come over and see me." June grew almost
tearful with gratitude, for never had he called her "honey" before that
she could remember, and never had he talked so much to her, nor with so
much kindness.
</p>
<p>
"Air ye comin' over soon?"
</p>
<p>
"Mighty soon, dad."
</p>
<p>
"Well, take keer o' yourself."
</p>
<p>
"I will, dad," she said, and tenderly she watched his great figure slouch
out of sight.
</p>
<p>
An hour after dark, as old Judd sat on the porch of the cabin in Lonesome
Cove, young Dave Tolliver rode up to the gate on a strange horse. He was
in a surly mood.
</p>
<p>
"He lemme go at the head of the valley and give me this hoss to git here,"
the boy grudgingly explained. "I'm goin' over to git mine termorrer."
</p>
<p>
"Seems like you'd better keep away from that Gap," said the old man dryly,
and Dave reddened angrily.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, and fust thing you know he'll be over hyeh atter YOU." The old man
turned on him sternly.
</p>
<p>
"Jack Hale knows that liquer was mine. He knows I've got a still over hyeh
as well as you do—an' he's never axed a question nor peeped an eye.
I reckon he would come if he thought he oughter—but I'm on this side
of the state-line. If I was on his side, mebbe I'd stop."
</p>
<p>
Young Dave stared, for things were surely coming to a pretty pass in
Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
"An' I reckon," the old man went on, "hit 'ud be better grace in you to
stop sayin' things agin' him; fer if it hadn't been fer him, you'd be laid
out by them Falins by this time."
</p>
<p>
It was true, and Dave, silenced, was forced into another channel.
</p>
<p>
"I wonder," he said presently, "how them Falins always know when I go over
thar."
</p>
<p>
"I've been studyin' about that myself," said Devil Judd. Inside, the old
step-mother had heard Dave's query.
</p>
<p>
"I seed the Red Fox this afternoon," she quavered at the door.
</p>
<p>
"Whut was he doin' over hyeh?" asked Dave.
</p>
<p>
"Nothin'," she said, "jus' a-sneakin' aroun' the way he's al'ays a-doin'.
Seemed like he was mighty pertickuler to find out when you was comin'
back."
</p>
<p>
Both men started slightly.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
"We're all Tollivers now all right," said the Hon. Samuel Budd
that night while he sat with Hale on the porch overlooking the
mill-pond—and then he groaned a little.
</pre>
<p>
"Them Falins have got kinsfolks to burn on the Virginia side and they'd
fight me tooth and toenail for this a hundred years hence!"
</p>
<p>
He puffed his pipe, but Hale said nothing.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, sir," he added cheerily, "we're in for a hell of a merry time NOW.
The mountaineer hates as long as he remembers and—he never forgets."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0016" id="link2H_4_0016">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XV
</h2>
<p>
Hand in hand, Hale and June followed the footsteps of spring from the time
June met him at the school-house gate for their first walk into the woods.
Hale pointed to some boys playing marbles.
</p>
<p>
"That's the first sign," he said, and with quick understanding June
smiled.
</p>
<p>
The birdlike piping of hylas came from a marshy strip of woodland that ran
through the centre of the town and a toad was croaking at the foot of
Imboden Hill.
</p>
<p>
"And they come next."
</p>
<p>
They crossed the swinging foot-bridge, which was a miracle to June, and
took the foot-path along the clear stream of South Fork, under the laurel
which June called "ivy," and the rhododendron which was "laurel" in her
speech, and Hale pointed out catkins greening on alders in one swampy
place and willows just blushing into life along the banks of a little
creek. A few yards aside from the path he found, under a patch of snow and
dead leaves, the pink-and-white blossoms and the waxy green leaves of the
trailing arbutus, that fragrant harbinger of the old Mother's awakening,
and June breathed in from it the very breath of spring. Near by were
turkey peas, which she had hunted and eaten many times.
</p>
<p>
"You can't put that arbutus in a garden," said Hale, "it's as wild as a
hawk."
</p>
<p>
Presently he had the little girl listen to a pewee twittering in a
thorn-bush and the lusty call of a robin from an apple-tree. A bluebird
flew over-head with a merry chirp—its wistful note of autumn long
since forgotten. These were the first birds and flowers, he said, and
June, knowing them only by sight, must know the name of each and the
reason for that name. So that Hale found himself walking the woods with an
interrogation point, and that he might not be confounded he had, later, to
dip up much forgotten lore. For every walk became a lesson in botany for
June, such a passion did she betray at once for flowers, and he rarely had
to tell her the same thing twice, since her memory was like a vise—for
everything, as he learned in time.
</p>
<p>
Her eyes were quicker than his, too, and now she pointed to a snowy
blossom with a deeply lobed leaf.
</p>
<p>
"Whut's that?"
</p>
<p>
"Bloodroot," said Hale, and he scratched the stem and forth issued scarlet
drops. "The Indians used to put it on their faces and tomahawks"—she
knew that word and nodded—"and I used to make red ink of it when I
was a little boy."
</p>
<p>
"No!" said June. With the next look she found a tiny bunch of fuzzy
hepaticas.
</p>
<p>
"Liver-leaf."
</p>
<p>
"Whut's liver?"
</p>
<p>
Hale, looking at her glowing face and eyes and her perfect little body,
imagined that she would never know unless told that she had one, and so he
waved one hand vaguely at his chest:
</p>
<p>
"It's an organ—and that herb is supposed to be good for it."
</p>
<p>
"Organ? Whut's that?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, something inside of you."
</p>
<p>
June made the same gesture that Hale had.
</p>
<p>
"Me?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," and then helplessly, "but not there exactly."
</p>
<p>
June's eyes had caught something else now and she ran for it:
</p>
<p>
"Oh! Oh!" It was a bunch of delicate anemones of intermediate shades
between white and red-yellow, pink and purple-blue.
</p>
<p>
"Those are anemones."
</p>
<p>
"A-nem-o-nes," repeated June.
</p>
<p>
"Wind-flowers—because the wind is supposed to open them." And,
almost unconsciously, Hale lapsed into a quotation:
</p>
<p>
"'And where a tear has dropped, a wind-flower blows.'"
</p>
<p>
"Whut's that?" said June quickly.
</p>
<p>
"That's poetry."
</p>
<p>
"Whut's po-e-try?" Hale threw up both hands.
</p>
<p>
"I don't know, but I'll read you some—some day."
</p>
<p>
By that time she was gurgling with delight over a bunch of spring beauties
that came up, root, stalk and all, when she reached for them.
</p>
<p>
"Well, ain't they purty?" While they lay in her hand and she looked, the
rose-veined petals began to close, the leaves to droop and the stem got
limp.
</p>
<p>
"Ah-h!" crooned June. "I won't pull up no more o' THEM."
</p>
<p>
'"These little dream-flowers found in the spring.' More poetry, June."
</p>
<p>
A little later he heard her repeating that line to herself. It was an easy
step to poetry from flowers, and evidently June was groping for it.
</p>
<p>
A few days later the service-berry swung out white stars on the low
hill-sides, but Hale could tell her nothing that she did not know about
the "sarvice-berry." Soon, the dogwood swept in snowy gusts along the
mountains, and from a bank of it one morning a red-bird flamed and sang:
"What cheer! What cheer! What cheer!" And like its scarlet coat the
red-bud had burst into bloom. June knew the red-bud, but she had never
heard it called the Judas tree.
</p>
<p>
"You see, the red-bud was supposed to be poisonous. It shakes in the wind
and says to the bees, 'Come on, little fellows—here's your nice
fresh honey, and when they come, it betrays and poisons them."
</p>
<p>
"Well, what do you think o' that!" said June indignantly, and Hale had to
hedge a bit.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I don't know whether it REALLY does, but that's what they SAY." A
little farther on the white stars of the trillium gleamed at them from the
border of the woods and near by June stooped over some lovely sky-blue
blossoms with yellow eyes.
</p>
<p>
"Forget-me-nots," said Hale. June stooped to gather them with a radiant
face.
</p>
<p>
"Oh," she said, "is that what you call 'em?"
</p>
<p>
"They aren't the real ones—they're false forget-me-nots."
</p>
<p>
"Then I don't want 'em," said June. But they were beautiful and fragrant
and she added gently:
</p>
<p>
"'Tain't their fault. I'm agoin' to call 'em jus' forget-me-nots, an' I'm
givin' 'em to you," she said—"so that you won't."
</p>
<p>
"Thank you," said Hale gravely. "I won't."
</p>
<p>
They found larkspur, too—
</p>
<p>
"'Blue as the heaven it gazes at,'" quoted Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Whut's 'gazes'?"
</p>
<p>
"Looks." June looked up at the sky and down at the flower.
</p>
<p>
"Tain't," she said, "hit's bluer."
</p>
<p>
When they discovered something Hale did not know he would say that it was
one of those—
</p>
<p>
"'Wan flowers without a name.'"
</p>
<p>
"My!" said June at last, "seems like them wan flowers is a mighty big
fambly."
</p>
<p>
"They are," laughed Hale, "for a bachelor like me."
</p>
<p>
"Huh!" said June.
</p>
<p>
Later, they ran upon yellow adder's tongues in a hollow, each blossom
guarded by a pair of ear-like leaves, Dutchman's breeches and wild
bleeding hearts—a name that appealed greatly to the fancy of the
romantic little lady, and thus together they followed the footsteps of
that spring. And while she studied the flowers Hale was studying the
loveliest flower of them all—little June. About ferns, plants and
trees as well, he told her all he knew, and there seemed nothing in the
skies, the green world of the leaves or the under world at her feet to
which she was not magically responsive. Indeed, Hale had never seen a man,
woman or child so eager to learn, and one day, when she had apparently
reached the limit of inquiry, she grew very thoughtful and he watched her
in silence a long while.
</p>
<p>
"What's the matter, June?" he asked finally.
</p>
<p>
"I'm just wonderin' why I'm always axin' why," said little June.
</p>
<p>
She was learning in school, too, and she was happier there now, for there
had been no more open teasing of the new pupil. Bob's championship saved
her from that, and, thereafter, school changed straightway for June.
Before that day she had kept apart from her school-fellows at recess-times
as well as in the school-room. Two or three of the girls had made friendly
advances to her, but she had shyly repelled them—why she hardly knew—and
it was her lonely custom at recess-times to build a play-house at the foot
of a great beech with moss, broken bits of bottles and stones. Once she
found it torn to pieces and from the look on the face of the tall mountain
boy, Cal Heaton, who had grinned at her when she went up for her first
lesson, and who was now Bob's arch-enemy, she knew that he was the guilty
one. Again a day or two later it was destroyed, and when she came down
from the woods almost in tears, Bob happened to meet her in the road and
made her tell the trouble she was in. Straightway he charged the
trespasser with the deed and was lied to for his pains. So after school
that day he slipped up on the hill with the little girl and helped her
rebuild again.
</p>
<p>
"Now I'll lay for him," said Bob, "and catch him at it."
</p>
<p>
"All right," said June, and she looked both her worry and her gratitude so
that Bob understood both; and he answered both with a nonchalant wave of
one hand.
</p>
<p>
"Never you mind—and don't you tell Mr. Hale," and June in dumb
acquiescence crossed heart and body. But the mountain boy was wary, and
for two or three days the play-house was undisturbed and so Bob himself
laid a trap. He mounted his horse immediately after school, rode past the
mountain lad, who was on his way home, crossed the river, made a wide
detour at a gallop and, hitching his horse in the woods, came to the
play-house from the other side of the hill. And half an hour later, when
the pale little teacher came out of the school-house, he heard grunts and
blows and scuffling up in the woods, and when he ran toward the sounds,
the bodies of two of his pupils rolled into sight clenched fiercely, with
torn clothes and bleeding faces—Bob on top with the mountain boy's
thumb in his mouth and his own fingers gripped about his antagonist's
throat. Neither paid any attention to the school-master, who pulled at
Bob's coat unavailingly and with horror at his ferocity. Bob turned his
head, shook it as well as the thumb in his mouth would let him, and went
on gripping the throat under him and pushing the head that belonged to it
into the ground. The mountain boy's tongue showed and his eyes bulged.
</p>
<p>
"'Nough!" he yelled. Bob rose then and told his story and the
school-master from New England gave them a short lecture on gentleness and
Christian charity and fixed on each the awful penalty of "staying in"
after school for an hour every day for a week. Bob grinned:
</p>
<p>
"All right, professor—it was worth it," he said, but the mountain
lad shuffled silently away.
</p>
<p>
An hour later Hale saw the boy with a swollen lip, one eye black and the
other as merry as ever—but after that there was no more trouble for
June. Bob had made his promise good and gradually she came into the games
with her fellows there-after, while Bob stood or sat aside, encouraging
but taking no part—for was he not a member of the Police Force?
Indeed he was already known far and wide as the Infant of the Guard, and
always he carried a whistle and usually, outside the school-house, a
pistol bumped his hip, while a Winchester stood in one corner of his room
and a billy dangled by his mantel-piece.
</p>
<p>
The games were new to June, and often Hale would stroll up to the
school-house to watch them—Prisoner's Base, Skipping the Rope, Antny
Over, Cracking the Whip and Lifting the Gate; and it pleased him to see
how lithe and active his little protege was and more than a match in
strength even for the boys who were near her size. June had to take the
penalty of her greenness, too, when she was "introduced to the King and
Queen" and bumped the ground between the make-believe sovereigns, or got a
cup of water in her face when she was trying to see stars through a pipe.
And the boys pinned her dress to the bench through a crack and once she
walked into school with a placard on her back which read:
</p>
<p>
"June-Bug." But she was so good-natured that she fast became a favourite.
Indeed it was noticeable to Hale as well as Bob that Cal Heaton, the
mountain boy, seemed always to get next to June in the Tugs of War, and
one morning June found an apple on her desk. She swept the room with a
glance and met Cal's guilty flush, and though she ate the apple, she gave
him no thanks—in word, look or manner. It was curious to Hale,
moreover, to observe how June's instinct deftly led her to avoid the
mistakes in dress that characterized the gropings of other girls who, like
her, were in a stage of transition. They wore gaudy combs and green skirts
with red waists, their clothes bunched at the hips, and to their shoes and
hands they paid no attention at all. None of these things for June—and
Hale did not know that the little girl had leaped her fellows with one
bound, had taken Miss Anne Saunders as her model and was climbing upon the
pedestal where that lady justly stood. The two had not become friends as
Hale hoped. June was always silent and reserved when the older girl was
around, but there was never a move of the latter's hand or foot or lip or
eye that the new pupil failed to see. Miss Anne rallied Hale no little
about her, but he laughed good-naturedly, and asked why SHE could not make
friends with June.
</p>
<p>
"She's jealous," said Miss Saunders, and Hale ridiculed the idea, for not
one sign since she came to the Gap had she shown him. It was the jealousy
of a child she had once betrayed and that she had outgrown, he thought;
but he never knew how June stood behind the curtains of her window, with a
hungry suffering in her face and eyes, to watch Hale and Miss Anne ride by
and he never guessed that concealment was but a sign of the dawn of
womanhood that was breaking within her. And she gave no hint of that
breaking dawn until one day early in May, when she heard a woodthrush for
the first time with Hale: for it was the bird she loved best, and always
its silver fluting would stop her in her tracks and send her into
dreamland. Hale had just broken a crimson flower from its stem and held it
out to her.
</p>
<p>
"Here's another of the 'wan ones,' June. Do you know what that is?"
</p>
<p>
"Hit's"—she paused for correction with her lips drawn severely in
for precision—"IT'S a mountain poppy. Pap says it kills goslings"—her
eyes danced, for she was in a merry mood that day, and she put both hands
behind her—"if you air any kin to a goose, you better drap it."
</p>
<p>
"That's a good one," laughed Hale, "but it's so lovely I'll take the risk.
I won't drop it."
</p>
<p>
"Drop it," caught June with a quick upward look, and then to fix the word
in her memory she repeated—"drop it, drop it, DROP it!"
</p>
<p>
"Got it now, June?"
</p>
<p>
"Uh-huh."
</p>
<p>
It was then that a woodthrush voiced the crowning joy of spring, and with
slowly filling eyes she asked its name.
</p>
<p>
"That bird," she said slowly and with a breaking voice, "sung just
that-a-way the mornin' my sister died."
</p>
<p>
She turned to him with a wondering smile.
</p>
<p>
"Somehow it don't make me so miserable, like it useter." Her smile passed
while she looked, she caught both hands to her heaving breast and a wild
intensity burned suddenly in her eyes.
</p>
<p>
"Why, June!"
</p>
<p>
"'Tain't nothin'," she choked out, and she turned hurriedly ahead of him
down the path. Startled, Hale had dropped the crimson flower to his feet.
He saw it and he let it lie.
</p>
<p>
Meanwhile, rumours were brought in that the Falins were coming over from
Kentucky to wipe out the Guard, and so straight were they sometimes that
the Guard was kept perpetually on watch. Once while the members were at
target practice, the shout arose:
</p>
<p>
"The Kentuckians are coming! The Kentuckians are coming!" And, at double
quick, the Guard rushed back to find it a false alarm and to see men
laughing at them in the street. The truth was that, while the Falins had a
general hostility against the Guard, their particular enmity was
concentrated on John Hale, as he discovered when June was to take her
first trip home one Friday afternoon. Hale meant to carry her over, but
the morning they were to leave, old Judd Tolliver came to the Gap himself.
He did not want June to come home at that time, and he didn't think it was
safe over there for Hale just then. Some of the Falins had been seen
hanging around Lonesome Cove for the purpose, Judd believed, of getting a
shot at the man who had kept young Dave from falling into their hands, and
Hale saw that by that act he had, as Budd said, arrayed himself with the
Tollivers in the feud. In other words, he was a Tolliver himself now, and
as such the Falins meant to treat him. Hale rebelled against the
restriction, for he had started some work in Lonesome Cove and was
preparing a surprise over there for June, but old Judd said:
</p>
<p>
"Just wait a while," and he said it so seriously that Hale for a while
took his advice.
</p>
<p>
So June stayed on at the Gap—with little disappointment, apparently,
that she could not visit home. And as spring passed and the summer came
on, the little girl budded and opened like a rose. To the pretty
school-teacher she was a source of endless interest and wonder, for while
the little girl was reticent and aloof, Miss Saunders felt herself watched
and studied in and out of school, and Hale often had to smile at June's
unconscious imitation of her teacher in speech, manners and dress. And all
the time her hero-worship of Hale went on, fed by the talk of the
boardinghouse, her fellow pupils and of the town at large—and it
fairly thrilled her to know that to the Falins he was now a Tolliver
himself.
</p>
<p>
Sometimes Hale would get her a saddle, and then June would usurp Miss
Anne's place on a horseback-ride up through the gap to see the first
blooms of the purple rhododendron on Bee Rock, or up to Morris's farm on
Powell's mountain, from which, with a glass, they could see the Lonesome
Pine. And all the time she worked at her studies tirelessly—and when
she was done with her lessons, she read the fairy books that Hale got for
her—read them until "Paul and Virginia" fell into her hands, and
then there were no more fairy stories for little June. Often, late at
night, Hale, from the porch of his cottage, could see the light of her
lamp sending its beam across the dark water of the mill-pond, and finally
he got worried by the paleness of her face and sent her to the doctor. She
went unwillingly, and when she came back she reported placidly that
"organatically she was all right, the doctor said," but Hale was glad that
vacation would soon come. At the beginning of the last week of school he
brought a little present for her from New York—a slender necklace of
gold with a little reddish stone-pendant that was the shape of a cross.
Hale pulled the trinket from his pocket as they were walking down the
river-bank at sunset and the little girl quivered like an aspen-leaf in a
sudden puff of wind.
</p>
<p>
"Hit's a fairy-stone," she cried excitedly.
</p>
<p>
"Why, where on earth did you—"
</p>
<p>
"Why, sister Sally told me about 'em. She said folks found 'em somewhere
over here in Virginny, an' all her life she was a-wishin' fer one an' she
never could git it"—her eyes filled—"seems like ever'thing she
wanted is a-comin' to me."
</p>
<p>
"Do you know the story of it, too?" asked Hale.
</p>
<p>
June shook her head. "Sister Sally said it was a luck-piece. Nothin' could
happen to ye when ye was carryin' it, but it was awful bad luck if you
lost it." Hale put it around her neck and fastened the clasp and June kept
hold of the little cross with one hand.
</p>
<p>
"Well, you mustn't lose it," he said.
</p>
<p>
"No—no—no," she repeated breathlessly, and Hale told her the
pretty story of the stone as they strolled back to supper. The little
crosses were to be found only in a certain valley in Virginia, so perfect
in shape that they seemed to have been chiselled by hand, and they were a
great mystery to the men who knew all about rocks—the geologists.
</p>
<p>
"The ge-ol-o-gists," repeated June.
</p>
<p>
These men said there was no crystallization—nothing like them,
amended Hale—elsewhere in the world, and that just as crosses were
of different shapes—Roman, Maltese and St. Andrew's—so, too,
these crosses were found in all these different shapes. And the myth—the
story—was that this little valley was once inhabited by fairies—June's
eyes lighted, for it was a fairy story after all—and that when a
strange messenger brought them the news of Christ's crucifixion, they
wept, and their tears, as they fell to the ground, were turned into tiny
crosses of stone. Even the Indians had some queer feeling about them, and
for a long, long time people who found them had used them as charms to
bring good luck and ward off harm.
</p>
<p>
"And that's for you," he said, "because you've been such a good little
girl and have studied so hard. School's most over now and I reckon you'll
be right glad to get home again."
</p>
<p>
June made no answer, but at the gate she looked suddenly up at him.
</p>
<p>
"Have you got one, too?" she asked, and she seemed much disturbed when
Hale shook his head.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'LL git—GET—you one—some day."
</p>
<p>
"All right," laughed Hale.
</p>
<p>
There was again something strange in her manner as she turned suddenly
from him, and what it meant he was soon to learn. It was the last week of
school and Hale had just come down from the woods behind the school-house
at "little recess-time" in the afternoon. The children were playing games
outside the gate, and Bob and Miss Anne and the little Professor were
leaning on the fence watching them. The little man raised his hand to halt
Hale on the plank sidewalk.
</p>
<p>
"I've been wanting to see you," he said in his dreamy, abstracted way.
"You prophesied, you know, that I should be proud of your little protege
some day, and I am indeed. She is the most remarkable pupil I've yet seen
here, and I have about come to the conclusion that there is no quicker
native intelligence in our country than you shall find in the children of
these mountaineers and—"
</p>
<p>
Miss Anne was gazing at the children with an expression that turned Hale's
eyes that way, and the Professor checked his harangue. Something had
happened. They had been playing "Ring Around the Rosy" and June had been
caught. She stood scarlet and tense and the cry was:
</p>
<p>
"Who's your beau—who's your beau?"
</p>
<p>
And still she stood with tight lips—flushing.
</p>
<p>
"You got to tell—you got to tell!"
</p>
<p>
The mountain boy, Cal Heaton, was grinning with fatuous consciousness, and
even Bob put his hands in his pockets and took on an uneasy smile.
</p>
<p>
"Who's your beau?" came the chorus again.
</p>
<p>
The lips opened almost in a whisper, but all could hear:
</p>
<p>
"Jack!"
</p>
<p>
"Jack who?" But June looked around and saw the four at the gate. Almost
staggering, she broke from the crowd and, with one forearm across her
scarlet face, rushed past them into the school-house. Miss Anne looked at
Male's amazed face and she did not smile. Bob turned respectfully away,
ignoring it all, and the little Professor, whose life-purpose was
psychology, murmured in his ignorance:
</p>
<p>
"Very remarkable—very remarkable!"
</p>
<p>
Through that afternoon June kept her hot face close to her books. Bob
never so much as glanced her way—little gentleman that he was—but
the one time she lifted her eyes, she met the mountain lad's bent in a
stupor-like gaze upon her. In spite of her apparent studiousness, however,
she missed her lesson and, automatically, the little Professor told her to
stay in after school and recite to Miss Saunders. And so June and Miss
Anne sat in the school-room alone—the teacher reading a book, and
the pupil—her tears unshed—with her sullen face bent over her
lesson. In a few moments the door opened and the little Professor thrust
in his head. The girl had looked so hurt and tired when he spoke to her
that some strange sympathy moved him, mystified though he was, to say
gently now and with a smile that was rare with him:
</p>
<p>
"You might excuse June, I think, Miss Saunders, and let her recite some
time to-morrow," and gently he closed the door. Miss Anne rose:
</p>
<p>
"Very well, June," she said quietly.
</p>
<p>
June rose, too, gathering up her books, and as she passed the teacher's
platform she stopped and looked her full in the face. She said not a word,
and the tragedy between the woman and the girl was played in silence, for
the woman knew from the searching gaze of the girl and the black defiance
in her eyes, as she stalked out of the room, that her own flush had
betrayed her secret as plainly as the girl's words had told hers.
</p>
<p>
Through his office window, a few minutes later, Hale saw June pass swiftly
into the house. In a few minutes she came swiftly out again and went back
swiftly toward the school-house. He was so worried by the tense look in
her face that he could work no more, and in a few minutes he threw his
papers down and followed her. When he turned the corner, Bob was coming
down the street with his cap on the back of his head and swinging his
books by a strap, and the boy looked a little conscious when he saw Hale
coming.
</p>
<p>
"Have you seen June?" Hale asked.
</p>
<p>
"No, sir," said Bob, immensely relieved.
</p>
<p>
"Did she come up this way?"
</p>
<p>
"I don't know, but—" Bob turned and pointed to the green dome of a
big beech.
</p>
<p>
"I think you'll find her at the foot of that tree," he said. "That's where
her play-house is and that's where she goes when she's—that's where
she usually goes."
</p>
<p>
"Oh, yes," said Hale—"her play-house. Thank you."
</p>
<p>
"Not at all, sir."
</p>
<p>
Hale went on, turned from the path and climbed noiselessly. When he caught
sight of the beech he stopped still. June stood against it like a
wood-nymph just emerged from its sun-dappled trunk—stood stretched
to her full height, her hands behind her, her hair tossed, her throat
tense under the dangling little cross, her face uplifted. At her feet, the
play-house was scattered to pieces. She seemed listening to the love-calls
of a woodthrush that came faintly through the still woods, and then he saw
that she heard nothing, saw nothing—that she was in a dream as deep
as sleep. Hale's heart throbbed as he looked.
</p>
<p>
"June!" he called softly. She did not hear him, and when he called again,
she turned her face—unstartled—and moving her posture not at
all. Hale pointed to the scattered play-house.
</p>
<p>
"I done it!" she said fiercely—"I done it myself." Her eyes burned
steadily into his, even while she lifted her hands to her hair as though
she were only vaguely conscious that it was all undone.
</p>
<p>
"YOU heerd me?" she cried, and before he could answer—"SHE heerd
me," and again, not waiting for a word from him, she cried still more
fiercely:
</p>
<p>
"I don't keer! I don't keer WHO knows."
</p>
<p>
Her hands were trembling, she was biting her quivering lip to keep back
the starting tears, and Hale rushed toward her and took her in his arms.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
"June! June!" he said brokenly. "You mustn't, little girl. I'm
proud—proud—why little sweetheart—" She was clinging to him and
looking up into his eyes and he bent his head slowly. Their lips met and
the man was startled. He knew now it was no child that answered him.
Hale walked long that night in the moonlit woods up and around
Imboden Hill, along a shadow-haunted path, between silvery beech-trunks,
past the big hole in the earth from which dead trees tossed out their
crooked arms as if in torment, and to the top of the ridge under which
the valley slept and above which the dark bulk of Powell's Mountain
rose. It was absurd, but he found himself strangely stirred. She was a
child, he kept repeating to himself, in spite of the fact that he knew
she was no child among her own people, and that mountain girls were even
wives who were younger still. Still, she did not know what she felt—how
could she?—and she would get over it, and then came the sharp stab of
a doubt—would he want her to get over it? Frankly and with wonder he
confessed to himself that he did not know—he did not know. But again,
why bother? He had meant to educate her, anyhow. That was the first
step—no matter what happened. June must go out into the world to
school. He would have plenty of money. Her father would not object, and
June need never know. He could include for her an interest in her own
father's coal lands that he meant to buy, and she could think that it
was her own money that she was using. So, with a sudden rush of gladness
from his brain to his heart, he recklessly yoked himself, then and
there, under all responsibility for that young life and the eager,
sensitive soul that already lighted it so radiantly.
</pre>
<p>
And June? Her nature had opened precisely as had bud and flower that
spring. The Mother of Magicians had touched her as impartially as she had
touched them with fairy wand, and as unconsciously the little girl had
answered as a young dove to any cooing mate. With this Hale did not
reckon, and this June could not know. For a while, that night, she lay in
a delicious tremor, listening to the bird-like chorus of the little frogs
in the marsh, the booming of the big ones in the mill-pond, the water
pouring over the dam with the sound of a low wind, and, as had all the
sleeping things of the earth about her, she, too, sank to happy sleep.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0017" id="link2H_4_0017">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XVI
</h2>
<p>
The in-sweep of the outside world was broadening its current now. The
improvement company had been formed to encourage the growth of the town. A
safe was put in the back part of a furniture store behind a wooden
partition and a bank was started. Up through the Gap and toward Kentucky,
more entries were driven into the coal, and on the Virginia side were
signs of stripping for iron ore. A furnace was coming in just as soon as
the railroad could bring it in, and the railroad was pushing ahead with
genuine vigor. Speculators were trooping in and the town had been divided
off into lots—a few of which had already changed hands. One agent
had brought in a big steel safe and a tent and was buying coal lands right
and left. More young men drifted in from all points of the compass. A
tent-hotel was put at the foot of Imboden Hill, and of nights there were
under it much poker and song. The lilt of a definite optimism was in every
man's step and the light of hope was in every man's eye.
</p>
<p>
And the Guard went to its work in earnest. Every man now had his
Winchester, his revolver, his billy and his whistle. Drilling and
target-shooting became a daily practice. Bob, who had been a year in a
military school, was drill-master for the recruits, and very gravely he
performed his duties and put them through the skirmishers' drill—advancing
in rushes, throwing themselves in the new grass, and very gravely he
commended one enthusiast—none other than the Hon. Samuel Budd—who,
rather than lose his position in line, threw himself into a pool of water:
all to the surprise, scorn and anger of the mountain onlookers, who
dwelled about the town. Many were the comments the members of the Guard
heard from them, even while they were at drill.
</p>
<p>
"I'd like to see one o' them fellers hit me with one of them locust
posts."
</p>
<p>
"Huh! I could take two good men an' run the whole batch out o' the
county."
</p>
<p>
"Look at them dudes and furriners. They come into our country and air
tryin' to larn us how to run it."
</p>
<p>
"Our boys air only tryin' to have their little fun. They don't mean
nothin', but someday some fool young guard'll hurt somebody and then
thar'll be hell to pay."
</p>
<p>
Hale could not help feeling considerable sympathy for their point of view—particularly
when he saw the mountaineers watching the Guard at target-practice—each
volunteer policeman with his back to the target, and at the word of
command wheeling and firing six shots in rapid succession—and he did
not wonder at their snorts of scorn at such bad shooting and their open
anger that the Guard was practising for THEM. But sometimes he got an
unexpected recruit. One bully, who had been conspicuous in the brickyard
trouble, after watching a drill went up to him with a grin:
</p>
<p>
"Hell," he said cheerily, "I believe you fellers air goin' to have more
fun than we air, an' danged if I don't jine you, if you'll let me."
</p>
<p>
"Sure," said Hale. And others, who might have been bad men, became members
and, thus getting a vent for their energies, were as enthusiastic for the
law as they might have been against it.
</p>
<p>
Of course, the antagonistic element in the town lost no opportunity to
plague and harass the Guard, and after the destruction of the "blind
tigers," mischief was naturally concentrated in the high-license saloons—particularly
in the one run by Jack Woods, whose local power for evil and cackling
laugh seemed to mean nothing else than close personal communion with old
Nick himself. Passing the door of his saloon one day, Bob saw one of
Jack's customers trying to play pool with a Winchester in one hand and an
open knife between his teeth, and the boy stepped in and halted. The man
had no weapon concealed and was making no disturbance, and Bob did not
know whether or not he had the legal right to arrest him, so he turned,
and, while he was standing in the door, Jack winked at his customer, who,
with a grin, put the back of his knife-blade between Bob's shoulders and,
pushing, closed it. The boy looked over his shoulder without moving a
muscle, but the Hon. Samuel Budd, who came in at that moment, pinioned the
fellow's arms from behind and Bob took his weapon away.
</p>
<p>
"Hell," said the mountaineer, "I didn't aim to hurt the little feller. I
jes' wanted to see if I could skeer him."
</p>
<p>
"Well, brother, 'tis scarce a merry jest," quoth the Hon. Sam, and he
looked sharply at Jack through his big spectacles as the two led the man
off to the calaboose: for he suspected that the saloon-keeper was at the
bottom of the trick. Jack's time came only the next day. He had regarded
it as the limit of indignity when an ordinance was up that nobody should
blow a whistle except a member of the Guard, and it was great fun for him
to have some drunken customer blow a whistle and then stand in his door
and laugh at the policemen running in from all directions. That day Jack
tried the whistle himself and Hale ran down.
</p>
<p>
"Who did that?" he asked. Jack felt bold that morning.
</p>
<p>
"I blowed it."
</p>
<p>
Hale thought for a moment. The ordinance against blowing a whistle had not
yet been passed, but he made up his mind that, under the circumstances,
Jack's blowing was a breach of the peace, since the Guard had adopted that
signal. So he said:
</p>
<p>
"You mustn't do that again."
</p>
<p>
Jack had doubtless been going through precisely the same mental process,
and, on the nice legal point involved, he seemed to differ.
</p>
<p>
"I'll blow it when I damn please," he said.
</p>
<p>
"Blow it again and I'll arrest you," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
Jack blew. He had his right shoulder against the corner of his door at the
time, and, when he raised the whistle to his lips, Hale drew and covered
him before he could make another move. Woods backed slowly into his saloon
to get behind his counter. Hale saw his purpose, and he closed in, taking
great risk, as he always did, to avoid bloodshed, and there was a
struggle. Jack managed to get his pistol out; but Hale caught him by the
wrist and held the weapon away so that it was harmless as far as he was
concerned; but a crowd was gathering at the door toward which the
saloon-keeper's pistol was pointed, and he feared that somebody out there
might be shot; so he called out:
</p>
<p>
"Drop that pistol!"
</p>
<p>
The order was not obeyed, and Hale raised his right hand high above Jack's
head and dropped the butt of his weapon on Jack's skull—hard. Jack's
head dropped back between his shoulders, his eyes closed and his pistol
clicked on the floor.
</p>
<p>
Hale knew how serious a thing a blow was in that part of the world, and
what excitement it would create, and he was uneasy at Jack's trial, for
fear that the saloon-keeper's friends would take the matter up; but they
didn't, and, to the surprise of everybody, Jack quietly paid his fine, and
thereafter the Guard had little active trouble from the town itself, for
it was quite plain there, at least, that the Guard meant business.
</p>
<p>
Across Black Mountain old Dave Tolliver and old Buck Falin had got well of
their wounds by this time, and though each swore to have vengeance against
the other as soon as he was able to handle a Winchester, both factions
seemed waiting for that time to come. Moreover, the Falins, because of a
rumour that Bad Rufe Tolliver might come back, and because of Devil Judd's
anger at their attempt to capture young Dave, grew wary and rather
pacificatory: and so, beyond a little quarrelling, a little threatening
and the exchange of a harmless shot or two, sometimes in banter, sometimes
in earnest, nothing had been done. Sternly, however, though the Falins did
not know the fact, Devil Judd continued to hold aloof in spite of the
pleadings of young Dave, and so confident was the old man in the balance
of power that lay with him that he sent June word that he was coming to
take her home. And, in truth, with Hale going away again on a business
trip and Bob, too, gone back home to the Bluegrass, and school closed, the
little girl was glad to go, and she waited for her father's coming
eagerly. Miss Anne was still there, to be sure, and if she, too, had gone,
June would have been more content. The quiet smile of that astute young
woman had told Hale plainly, and somewhat to his embarrassment, that she
knew something had happened between the two, but that smile she never gave
to June. Indeed, she never encountered aught else than the same silent
searching gaze from the strangely mature little creature's eyes, and when
those eyes met the teacher's, always June's hand would wander
unconsciously to the little cross at her throat as though to invoke its
aid against anything that could come between her and its giver.
</p>
<p>
The purple rhododendrons on Bee Rock had come and gone and the
pink-flecked laurels were in bloom when June fared forth one sunny morning
of her own birth-month behind old Judd Tolliver—home. Back up
through the wild Gap they rode in silence, past Bee Rock, out of the chasm
and up the little valley toward the Trail of the Lonesome Pine, into which
the father's old sorrel nag, with a switch of her sunburnt tail, turned
leftward. June leaned forward a little, and there was the crest of the big
tree motionless in the blue high above, and sheltered by one big white
cloud. It was the first time she had seen the pine since she had first
left it, and little tremblings went through her from her bare feet to her
bonneted head. Thus was she unclad, for Hale had told her that, to avoid
criticism, she must go home clothed just as she was when she left Lonesome
Cove. She did not quite understand that, and she carried her new clothes
in a bundle in her lap, but she took Hale's word unquestioned. So she wore
her crimson homespun and her bonnet, with her bronze-gold hair gathered
under it in the same old Psyche knot. She must wear her shoes, she told
Hale, until she got out of town, else someone might see her, but Hale had
said she would be leaving too early for that: and so she had gone from the
Gap as she had come into it, with unmittened hands and bare feet. The soft
wind was very good to those dangling feet, and she itched to have them on
the green grass or in the cool waters through which the old horse
splashed. Yes, she was going home again, the same June as far as mountain
eyes could see, though she had grown perceptibly, and her little face had
blossomed from her heart almost into a woman's, but she knew that while
her clothes were the same, they covered quite another girl. Time wings
slowly for the young, and when the sensations are many and the experiences
are new, slowly even for all—and thus there was a double reason why
it seemed an age to June since her eyes had last rested on the big Pine.
</p>
<p>
Here was the place where Hale had put his big black horse into a dead run,
and as vivid a thrill of it came back to her now as had been the thrill of
the race. Then they began to climb laboriously up the rocky creek—the
water singing a joyous welcome to her along the path, ferns and flowers
nodding to her from dead leaves and rich mould and peeping at her from
crevices between the rocks on the creek-banks as high up as the level of
her eyes—up under bending branches full-leafed, with the warm
sunshine darting down through them upon her as she passed, and making a
playfellow of her sunny hair. Here was the place where she had got angry
with Hale, had slid from his horse and stormed with tears. What a little
fool she had been when Hale had meant only to be kind! He was never
anything but kind—Jack was—dear, dear Jack! That wouldn't
happen NO more, she thought, and straightway she corrected that thought.
</p>
<p>
"It won't happen ANY more," she said aloud.
</p>
<p>
"Whut'd you say, June?"
</p>
<p>
The old man lifted his bushy beard from his chest and turned his head.
</p>
<p>
"Nothin', dad," she said, and old Judd, himself in a deep study, dropped
back into it again. How often she had said that to herself—that it
would happen no more—she had stopped saying it to Hale, because he
laughed and forgave her, and seemed to love her mood, whether she cried
from joy or anger—and yet she kept on doing both just the same.
</p>
<p>
Several times Devil Judd stopped to let his horse rest, and each time, of
course, the wooded slopes of the mountains stretched downward in longer
sweeps of summer green, and across the widening valley the tops of the
mountains beyond dropped nearer to the straight level of her eyes, while
beyond them vaster blue bulks became visible and ran on and on, as they
always seemed, to the farthest limits of the world. Even out there, Hale
had told her, she would go some day. The last curving up-sweep came
finally, and there stood the big Pine, majestic, unchanged and murmuring
in the wind like the undertone of a far-off sea. As they passed the base
of it, she reached out her hand and let the tips of her fingers brush
caressingly across its trunk, turned quickly for a last look at the sunlit
valley and the hills of the outer world and then the two passed into a
green gloom of shadow and thick leaves that shut her heart in as suddenly
as though some human hand had clutched it. She was going home—to see
Bub and Loretta and Uncle Billy and "old Hon" and her step-mother and
Dave, and yet she felt vaguely troubled. The valley on the other side was
in dazzling sunshine—she had seen that. The sun must still be
shining over there—it must be shining above her over here, for here
and there shot a sunbeam message from that outer world down through the
leaves, and yet it seemed that black night had suddenly fallen about her,
and helplessly she wondered about it all, with her hands gripped tight and
her eyes wide. But the mood was gone when they emerged at the "deadening"
on the last spur and she saw Lonesome Cove and the roof of her little home
peacefully asleep in the same sun that shone on the valley over the
mountain. Colour came to her face and her heart beat faster. At the foot
of the spur the road had been widened and showed signs of heavy hauling.
There was sawdust in the mouth of the creek and, from coal-dust, the water
was black. The ring of axes and the shouts of ox-drivers came from the
mountain side. Up the creek above her father's cabin three or four houses
were being built of fresh boards, and there in front of her was a new
store. To a fence one side of it two horses were hitched and on one horse
was a side-saddle. Before the door stood the Red Fox and Uncle Billy, the
miller, who peered at her for a moment through his big spectacles and gave
her a wondering shout of welcome that brought her cousin Loretta to the
door, where she stopped a moment, anchored with surprise. Over her
shoulder peered her cousin Dave, and June saw his face darken while she
looked.
</p>
<p>
"Why, Honey," said the old miller, "have ye really come home agin?" While
Loretta simply said:
</p>
<p>
"My Lord!" and came out and stood with her hands on her hips looking at
June.
</p>
<p>
"Why, ye ain't a bit changed! I knowed ye wasn't goin' to put on no airs
like Dave thar said "—she turned on Dave, who, with a surly shrug,
wheeled and went back into the store. Uncle Billy was going home.
</p>
<p>
"Come down to see us right away now," he called back. "Ole Hon's might
nigh crazy to git her eyes on ye."
</p>
<p>
"All right, Uncle Billy," said June, "early termorrer." The Red Fox did
not open his lips, but his pale eyes searched the girl from head to foot.
</p>
<p>
"Git down, June," said Loretta, "and I'll walk up to the house with ye."
</p>
<p>
June slid down, Devil Judd started the old horse, and as the two girls,
with their arms about each other's waists, followed, the wolfish side of
the Red Fox's face lifted in an ironical snarl. Bub was standing at the
gate, and when he saw his father riding home alone, his wistful eyes
filled and his cry of disappointment brought the step-mother to the door.
</p>
<p>
"Whar's June?" he cried, and June heard him, and loosening herself from
Loretta, she ran round the horse and had Bub in her arms. Then she looked
up into the eyes of her step-mother. The old woman's face looked kind—so
kind that for the first time in her life June did what her father could
never get her to do: she called her "Mammy," and then she gave that old
woman the surprise of her life—she kissed her. Right away she must
see everything, and Bub, in ecstasy, wanted to pilot her around to see the
new calf and the new pigs and the new chickens, but dumbly June looked to
a miracle that had come to pass to the left of the cabin—a
flower-garden, the like of which she had seen only in her dreams.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0018" id="link2H_4_0018">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XVII
</h2>
<p>
Twice her lips opened soundlessly and, dazed, she could only point dumbly.
The old step-mother laughed:
</p>
<p>
"Jack Hale done that. He pestered yo' pap to let him do it fer ye, an'
anything Jack Hale wants from yo' pap, he gits. I thought hit was plum'
foolishness, but he's got things to eat planted thar, too, an' I declar
hit's right purty."
</p>
<p>
That wonderful garden! June started for it on a run. There was a broad
grass-walk down through the middle of it and there were narrow grass-walks
running sidewise, just as they did in the gardens which Hale told her he
had seen in the outer world. The flowers were planted in raised beds, and
all the ones that she had learned to know and love at the Gap were there,
and many more besides. The hollyhocks, bachelor's buttons and marigolds
she had known all her life. The lilacs, touch-me-nots, tulips and
narcissus she had learned to know in gardens at the Gap. Two rose-bushes
were in bloom, and there were strange grasses and plants and flowers that
Jack would tell her about when he came. One side was sentinelled by
sun-flowers and another side by transplanted laurel and rhododendron
shrubs, and hidden in the plant-and-flower-bordered squares were the
vegetables that won her step-mother's tolerance of Hale's plan. Through
and through June walked, her dark eyes flashing joyously here and there
when they were not a little dimmed with tears, with Loretta following her,
unsympathetic in appreciation, wondering that June should be making such a
fuss about a lot of flowers, but envious withal when she half guessed the
reason, and impatient Bub eager to show her other births and changes. And,
over and over all the while, June was whispering to herself:
</p>
<p>
"My garden—MY garden!"
</p>
<p>
When she came back to the porch, after a tour through all that was new or
had changed, Dave had brought his horse and Loretta's to the gate. No, he
wouldn't come in and "rest a spell"—"they must be gittin' along
home," he said shortly. But old Judd Tolliver insisted that he should stay
to dinner, and Dave tied the horses to the fence and walked to the porch,
not lifting his eyes to June. Straightway the girl went into the house co
help her step-mother with dinner, but the old woman told her she "reckoned
she needn't start in yit"—adding in the querulous tone June knew so
well:
</p>
<p>
"I've been mighty po'ly, an' thar'll be a mighty lot fer you to do now."
So with this direful prophecy in her ears the girl hesitated. The old
woman looked at her closely.
</p>
<p>
"Ye ain't a bit changed," she said.
</p>
<p>
They were the words Loretta had used, and in the voice of each was the
same strange tone of disappointment. June wondered: were they sorry she
had not come back putting on airs and fussed up with ribbons and feathers
that they might hear her picked to pieces and perhaps do some of the
picking themselves? Not Loretta, surely—but the old step-mother!
June left the kitchen and sat down just inside the door. The Red Fox and
two other men had sauntered up from the store and all were listening to
his quavering chat:
</p>
<p>
"I seed a vision last night, and thar's trouble a-comin' in these
mountains. The Lord told me so straight from the clouds. These railroads
and coal-mines is a-goin' to raise taxes, so that a pore man'll have to
sell his hogs and his corn to pay 'em an' have nothin' left to keep him
from starvin' to death. Them police-fellers over thar at the Gap is
a-stirrin' up strife and a-runnin' things over thar as though the earth
was made fer 'em, an' the citizens ain't goin' to stand it. An' this war's
a-comin' on an' thar'll be shootin' an' killin' over thar an' over hyeh. I
seed all this devilment in a vision last night, as shore as I'm settin'
hyeh."
</p>
<p>
Old Judd grunted, shifted his huge shoulders, parted his mustache and
beard with two fingers and spat through them.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I reckon you didn't see no devilment. Red, that you won't take a
hand in, if it comes."
</p>
<p>
The other men laughed, but the Red Fox looked meek and lowly.
</p>
<p>
"I'm a servant of the Lord. He says do this, an' I does it the best I know
how. I goes about a-preachin' the word in the wilderness an' a-healin' the
sick with soothin' yarbs and sech."
</p>
<p>
"An' a-makin' compacts with the devil," said old Judd shortly, "when the
eye of man is a-lookin' t'other way." The left side of the Red Fox's face
twitched into the faintest shadow of a snarl, but, shaking his head, he
kept still.
</p>
<p>
"Well," said Sam Barth, who was thin and long and sandy, "I don't keer
what them fellers do on t'other side o' the mountain, but what air they
a-comin' over here fer?"
</p>
<p>
Old Judd spoke again.
</p>
<p>
"To give you a job, if you wasn't too durned lazy to work."
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said the other man, who was dark, swarthy and whose black eyebrows
met across the bridge of his nose—"and that damned Hale, who's
a-tearin' up Hellfire here in the cove." The old man lifted his eyes.
Young Dave's face wore a sudden malignant sympathy which made June clench
her hands a little more tightly.
</p>
<p>
"What about him? You must have been over to the Gap lately—like Dave
thar—did you git board in the calaboose?" It was a random thrust,
but it was accurate and it went home, and there was silence for a while.
Presently old Judd went on:
</p>
<p>
"Taxes hain't goin' to be raised, and if they are, folks will be better
able to pay 'em. Them police-fellers at the Gap don't bother nobody if he
behaves himself. This war will start when it does start, an' as for Hale,
he's as square an' clever a feller as I've ever seed. His word is just as
good as his bond. I'm a-goin' to sell him this land. It'll be his'n, an'
he can do what he wants to with it. I'm his friend, and I'm goin' to stay
his friend as long as he goes on as he's goin' now, an' I'm not goin' to
see him bothered as long as he tends to his own business."
</p>
<p>
The words fell slowly and the weight of them rested heavily on all except
on June. Her fingers loosened and she smiled.
</p>
<p>
The Red Fox rose, shaking his head.
</p>
<p>
"All right, Judd Tolliver," he said warningly.
</p>
<p>
"Come in and git something to eat, Red."
</p>
<p>
"No," he said, "I'll be gittin' along"—and he went, still shaking
his head.
</p>
<p>
The table was covered with an oil-cloth spotted with drippings from a
candle. The plates and cups were thick and the spoons were of pewter. The
bread was soggy and the bacon was thick and floating in grease. The men
ate and the women served, as in ancient days. They gobbled their food like
wolves, and when they drank their coffee, the noise they made was painful
to June's ears. There were no napkins and when her father pushed his chair
back, he wiped his dripping mouth with the back of his sleeve. And Loretta
and the step-mother—they, too, ate with their knives and used their
fingers. Poor June quivered with a vague newborn disgust. Ah, had she not
changed—in ways they could not see!
</p>
<p>
June helped clear away the dishes—the old woman did not object to
that—listening to the gossip of the mountains—courtships,
marriages, births, deaths, the growing hostility in the feud, the random
killing of this man or that—Hale's doings in Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
"He's comin' over hyeh agin next Saturday," said the old woman.
</p>
<p>
"Is he?" said Loretta in a way that made June turn sharply from her dishes
toward her. She knew Hale was not coming, but she said nothing. The old
woman was lighting her pipe.
</p>
<p>
"Yes—you better be over hyeh in yo' best bib and tucker."
</p>
<p>
"Pshaw," said Loretta, but June saw two bright spots come into her pretty
cheeks, and she herself burned inwardly. The old woman was looking at her.
</p>
<p>
"'Pears like you air mighty quiet, June."
</p>
<p>
"That's so," said Loretta, looking at her, too.
</p>
<p>
June, still silent, turned back to her dishes. They were beginning to take
notice after all, for the girl hardly knew that she had not opened her
lips.
</p>
<p>
Once only Dave spoke to her, and that was when Loretta said she must go.
June was out in the porch looking at the already beloved garden, and
hearing his step she turned. He looked her steadily in the eyes. She saw
his gaze drop to the fairy-stone at her throat, and a faint sneer appeared
at his set mouth—a sneer for June's folly and what he thought was
uppishness in "furriners" like Hale.
</p>
<p>
"So you ain't good enough fer him jest as ye air—air ye?" he said
slowly. "He's got to make ye all over agin—so's you'll be fitten fer
him."
</p>
<p>
He turned away without looking to see how deep his barbed shaft went and,
startled, June flushed to her hair. In a few minutes they were gone—Dave
without the exchange of another word with June, and Loretta with a parting
cry that she would come back on Saturday. The old man went to the
cornfield high above the cabin, the old woman, groaning with pains real
and fancied, lay down on a creaking bed, and June, with Dave's wound
rankling, went out with Bub to see the new doings in Lonesome Cove. The
geese cackled before her, the hog-fish darted like submarine arrows from
rock to rock and the willows bent in the same wistful way toward their
shadows in the little stream, but its crystal depths were there no longer—floating
sawdust whirled in eddies on the surface and the water was black as soot.
Here and there the white belly of a fish lay upturned to the sun, for the
cruel, deadly work of civilization had already begun. Farther up the creek
was a buzzing monster that, creaking and snorting, sent a flashing disk,
rimmed with sharp teeth, biting a savage way through a log, that screamed
with pain as the brutal thing tore through its vitals, and gave up its
life each time with a ghost-like cry of agony. Farther on little houses
were being built of fresh boards, and farther on the water of the creek
got blacker still. June suddenly clutched Bud's arms. Two demons had
appeared on a pile of fresh dirt above them—sooty, begrimed, with
black faces and black hands, and in the cap of each was a smoking little
lamp.
</p>
<p>
"Huh," said Bub, "that ain't nothin'! Hello, Bill," he called bravely.
</p>
<p>
"Hello, Bub," answered one of the two demons, and both stared at the
lovely little apparition who was staring with such naive horror at them.
It was all very wonderful, though, and it was all happening in Lonesome
Cove, but Jack Hale was doing it all and, therefore, it was all right,
thought June—no matter what Dave said. Moreover, the ugly spot on
the great, beautiful breast of the Mother was such a little one after all
and June had no idea how it must spread. Above the opening for the mines,
the creek was crystal-clear as ever, the great hills were the same, and
the sky and the clouds, and the cabin and the fields of corn. Nothing
could happen to them, but if even they were wiped out by Hale's hand she
would have made no complaint. A wood-thrush flitted from a ravine as she
and Bub went back down the creek—and she stopped with uplifted face
to listen. All her life she had loved its song, and this was the first
time she had heard it in Lonesome Cove since she had learned its name from
Hale. She had never heard it thereafter without thinking of him, and she
thought of him now while it was breathing out the very spirit of the
hills, and she drew a long sigh for already she was lonely and hungering
for him. The song ceased and a long wavering cry came from the cabin.
</p>
<p>
"So-o-o-cow! S-o-o-kee! S-o-o-kee!"
</p>
<p>
The old mother was calling the cows. It was near milking-time, and with a
vague uneasiness she hurried Bub home. She saw her father coming down from
the cornfield. She saw the two cows come from the woods into the path that
led to the barn, switching their tails and snatching mouthfuls from the
bushes as they swung down the hill and, when she reached the gate, her
step-mother was standing on the porch with one hand on her hip and the
other shading her eyes from the slanting sun—waiting for her.
Already kindness and consideration were gone.
</p>
<p>
"Whar you been, June? Hurry up, now. You've had a long restin'-spell while
I've been a-workin' myself to death."
</p>
<p>
It was the old tone, and the old fierce rebellion rose within June, but
Hale had told her to be patient. She could not check the flash from her
eyes, but she shut her lips tight on the answer that sprang to them, and
without a word she went to the kitchen for the milking-pails. The cows had
forgotten her. They eyed her with suspicion and were restive. The first
one kicked at her when she put her beautiful head against its soft flank.
Her muscles had been in disuse and her hands were cramped and her forearms
ached before she was through—but she kept doggedly at her task. When
she finished, her father had fed the horses and was standing behind her.
</p>
<p>
"Hit's mighty good to have you back agin, little gal."
</p>
<p>
It was not often that he smiled or showed tenderness, much less spoke it
thus openly, and June was doubly glad that she had held her tongue. Then
she helped her step-mother get supper. The fire scorched her face, that
had grown unaccustomed to such heat, and she burned one hand, but she did
not let her step-mother see even that. Again she noticed with aversion the
heavy thick dishes and the pewter spoons and the candle-grease on the
oil-cloth, and she put the dishes down and, while the old woman was out of
the room, attacked the spots viciously. Again she saw her father and Bub
ravenously gobbling their coarse food while she and her step-mother served
and waited, and she began to wonder. The women sat at the table with the
men over in the Gap—why not here? Then her father went silently to
his pipe and Bub to playing with the kitten at the kitchen-door, while she
and her mother ate with never a word. Something began to stifle her, but
she choked it down. There were the dishes to be cleared away and washed,
and the pans and kettles to be cleaned. Her back ached, her arms were
tired to the shoulders and her burned hand quivered with pain when all was
done. The old woman had left her to do the last few little things alone
and had gone to her pipe. Both she and her father were sitting in silence
on the porch when June went out there. Neither spoke to each other, nor to
her, and both seemed to be part of the awful stillness that engulfed the
world. Bub fell asleep in the soft air, and June sat and sat and sat. That
was all except for the stars that came out over the mountains and were
slowly being sprayed over the sky, and the pipings of frogs from the
little creek. Once the wind came with a sudden sweep up the river and she
thought she could hear the creak of Uncle Billy's water-wheel. It smote
her with sudden gladness, not so much because it was a relief and because
she loved the old miller, but—such is the power of association—because
she now loved the mill more, loved it because the mill over in the Gap had
made her think more of the mill at the mouth of Lonesome Cove. A tapping
vibrated through the railing of the porch on which her cheek lay. Her
father was knocking the ashes from his pipe. A similar tapping sounded
inside at the fireplace. The old woman had gone and Bub was in bed, and
she had heard neither move. The old man rose with a yawn.
</p>
<p>
"Time to lay down, June."
</p>
<p>
The girl rose. They all slept in one room. She did not dare to put on her
night-gown—her mother would see it in the morning. So she slipped
off her dress, as she had done all her life, and crawled into bed with
Bub, who lay in the middle of it and who grunted peevishly when she pushed
him with some difficulty over to his side. There were no sheets—not
even one—and the coarse blankets, which had a close acrid odour that
she had never noticed before, seemed almost to scratch her flesh. She had
hardly been to bed that early since she had left home, and she lay
sleepless, watching the firelight play hide and seek with the shadows
among the aged, smoky rafters and flicker over the strings of dried things
that hung from the ceiling. In the other corner her father and stepmother
snored heartily, and Bub, beside her, was in a nerveless slumber that
would not come to her that night-tired and aching as she was. So, quietly,
by and by, she slipped out of bed and out the door to the porch. The moon
was rising and the radiant sheen of it had dropped down over the mountain
side like a golden veil and was lighting up the white rising mists that
trailed the curves of the river. It sank below the still crests of the
pines beyond the garden and dropped on until it illumined, one by one, the
dewy heads of the flowers. She rose and walked down the grassy path in her
bare feet through the silent fragrant emblems of the planter's thought of
her—touching this flower and that with the tips of her fingers. And
when she went back, she bent to kiss one lovely rose and, as she lifted
her head with a start of fear, the dew from it shining on her lips made
her red mouth as flower-like and no less beautiful. A yell had shattered
the quiet of the world—not the high fox-hunting yell of the
mountains, but something new and strange. Up the creek were strange
lights. A loud laugh shattered the succeeding stillness—a laugh she
had never heard before in Lonesome Cove. Swiftly she ran back to the
porch. Surely strange things were happening there. A strange spirit
pervaded the Cove and the very air throbbed with premonitions. What was
the matter with everything—what was the matter with her? She knew
that she was lonely and that she wanted Hale—but what else was it?
She shivered—and not alone from the chill night-air—and
puzzled and wondering and stricken at heart, she crept back to bed.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0019" id="link2H_4_0019">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XVIII
</h2>
<p>
Pausing at the Pine to let his big black horse blow a while, Hale mounted
and rode slowly down the green-and-gold gloom of the ravine. In his pocket
was a quaint little letter from June to "John Hail"; thanking him for the
beautiful garden, saying she was lonely, and wanting him to come soon.
From the low flank of the mountain he stopped, looking down on the cabin
in Lonesome Cove. It was a dreaming summer day. Trees, air, blue sky and
white cloud were all in a dream, and even the smoke lazing from the
chimney seemed drifting away like the spirit of something human that cared
little whither it might be borne. Something crimson emerged from the door
and stopped in indecision on the steps of the porch. It moved again,
stopped at the corner of the house, and then, moving on with a purpose,
stopped once more and began to flicker slowly to and fro like a flame.
June was working in her garden. Hale thought he would halloo to her, and
then he decided to surprise her, and he went on down, hitched his horse
and stole up to the garden fence. On the way he pulled up a bunch of weeds
by the roots and with them in his arms he noiselessly climbed the fence.
June neither heard nor saw him. Her underlip was clenched tight between
her teeth, the little cross swung violently at her throat and she was so
savagely wielding the light hoe he had given her that he thought at first
she must be killing a snake; but she was only fighting to death every weed
that dared to show its head. Her feet and her head were bare, her face was
moist and flushed and her hair was a tumbled heap of what was to him the
rarest gold under the sun. The wind was still, the leaves were heavy with
the richness of full growth, bees were busy about June's head and not
another soul was in sight.
</p>
<p>
"Good morning, little girl!" he called cheerily.
</p>
<p>
The hoe was arrested at the height of a vicious stroke and the little girl
whirled without a cry, but the blood from her pumping heart crimsoned her
face and made her eyes shine with gladness. Her eyes went to her feet and
her hands to her hair.
</p>
<p>
"You oughtn't to slip up an' s-startle a lady that-a-way," she said with
grave rebuke, and Hale looked humbled. "Now you just set there and wait
till I come back."
</p>
<p>
"No—no—I want you to stay just as you are."
</p>
<p>
"Honest?"
</p>
<p>
Hale gravely crossed heart and body and June gave out a happy little laugh—for
he had caught that gesture—a favourite one—from her. Then
suddenly:
</p>
<p>
"How long?" She was thinking of what Dave said, but the subtle twist in
her meaning passed Hale by. He raised his eyes to the sun and June shook
her head.
</p>
<p>
"You got to go home 'fore sundown."
</p>
<p>
She dropped her hoe and came over toward him.
</p>
<p>
"Whut you doin' with them—those weeds?"
</p>
<p>
"Going to plant 'em in our garden." Hale had got a theory from a
garden-book that the humble burdock, pig-weed and other lowly plants were
good for ornamental effect, and he wanted to experiment, but June gave a
shrill whoop and fell to scornful laughter. Then she snatched the weeds
from him and threw them over the fence.
</p>
<p>
"Why, June!"
</p>
<p>
"Not in MY garden. Them's stagger-weeds—they kill cows," and she
went off again.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you better c-consult me 'bout weeds next time. I don't know much
'bout flowers, but I've knowed all my life 'bout WEEDS." She laid so much
emphasis on the word that Hale wondered for the moment if her words had a
deeper meaning—but she went on:
</p>
<p>
"Ever' spring I have to watch the cows fer two weeks to keep 'em from
eatin'—those weeds." Her self-corrections were always made gravely
now, and Hale consciously ignored them except when he had something to
tell her that she ought to know. Everything, it seemed, she wanted to
know.
</p>
<p>
"Do they really kill cows?"
</p>
<p>
June snapped her fingers: "Like that. But you just come on here," she
added with pretty imperiousness. "I want to axe—ask you some things—what's
that?"
</p>
<p>
"Scarlet sage."
</p>
<p>
"Scarlet sage," repeated June. "An' that?"
</p>
<p>
"Nasturtium, and that's Oriental grass."
</p>
<p>
"Nas-tur-tium, Oriental. An' what's that vine?"
</p>
<p>
"That comes from North Africa—they call it 'matrimonial vine.'"
</p>
<p>
"Whut fer?" asked June quickly.
</p>
<p>
"Because it clings so." Hale smiled, but June saw none of his humour—the
married people she knew clung till the finger of death unclasped them. She
pointed to a bunch of tall tropical-looking plants with great spreading
leaves and big green-white stalks.
</p>
<p>
"They're called Palmae Christi."
</p>
<p>
"Whut?"
</p>
<p>
"That's Latin. It means 'Hands of Christ,'" said Hale with reverence. "You
see how the leaves are spread out—don't they look like hands?'
</p>
<p>
"Not much," said June frankly. "What's Latin?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, that's a dead language that some people used a long, long time ago."
</p>
<p>
"What do folks use it nowadays fer? Why don't they just say 'Hands o'
Christ'?"
</p>
<p>
"I don't know," he said helplessly, "but maybe you'll study Latin some of
these days." June shook her head.
</p>
<p>
"Gettin' YOUR language is a big enough job fer me," she said with such
quaint seriousness that Hale could not laugh. She looked up suddenly. "You
been a long time git—gettin' over here."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, and now you want to send me home before sundown."
</p>
<p>
"I'm afeer—I'm afraid for you. Have you got a gun?" Hale tapped his
breast-pocket.
</p>
<p>
"Always. What are you afraid of?"
</p>
<p>
"The Falins." She clenched her hands.
</p>
<p>
"I'd like to SEE one o' them Falins tech ye," she added fiercely, and then
she gave a quick look at the sun.
</p>
<p>
"You better go now, Jack. I'm afraid fer you. Where's your horse?" Hale
waved his hand.
</p>
<p>
"Down there. All right, little girl," he said. "I ought to go, anyway."
And, to humour her, he started for the gate. There he bent to kiss her,
but she drew back.
</p>
<p>
"I'm afraid of Dave," she said, but she leaned on the gate and looked long
at him with wistful eyes.
</p>
<p>
"Jack," she said, and her eyes swam suddenly, "it'll most kill me—but
I reckon you better not come over here much." Hale made light of it all.
</p>
<p>
"Nonsense, I'm coming just as often as I can." June smiled then.
</p>
<p>
"All right. I'll watch out fer ye."
</p>
<p>
He went down the path, her eyes following him, and when he looked back
from the spur he saw her sitting in the porch and watching that she might
wave him farewell.
</p>
<p>
Hale could not go over to Lonesome Cove much that summer, for he was away
from the mountains a good part of the time, and it was a weary, racking
summer for June when he was not there. The step-mother was a stern
taskmistress, and the girl worked hard, but no night passed that she did
not spend an hour or more on her books, and by degrees she bribed and
stormed Bub into learning his A, B, C's and digging at a blue-back
spelling book. But all through the day there were times when she could
play with the boy in the garden, and every afternoon, when it was not
raining, she would slip away to a little ravine behind the cabin, where a
log had fallen across a little brook, and there in the cool, sun-pierced
shadows she would study, read and dream—with the water bubbling
underneath and wood-thrushes singing overhead. For Hale kept her well
supplied with books. He had given her children's books at first, but she
outgrew them when the first love-story fell into her hands, and then he
gave her novels—good, old ones and the best of the new ones, and
they were to her what water is to a thing athirst. But the happy days were
when Hale was there. She had a thousand questions for him to answer,
whenever he came, about birds, trees and flowers and the things she read
in her books. The words she could not understand in them she marked, so
that she could ask their meaning, and it was amazing how her vocabulary
increased. Moreover, she was always trying to use the new words she
learned, and her speech was thus a quaint mixture of vernacular,
self-corrections and unexpected words. Happening once to have a volume of
Keats in his pocket, he read some of it to her, and while she could not
understand, the music of the lines fascinated her and she had him leave
that with her, too. She never tired hearing him tell of the places where
he had been and the people he knew and the music and plays he had heard
and seen. And when he told her that she, too, should see all those
wonderful things some day, her deep eyes took fire and she dropped her
head far back between her shoulders and looked long at the stars that held
but little more wonder for her than the world of which he told. But each
time he was there she grew noticeably shyer with him and never once was
the love-theme between them taken up in open words. Hale was reluctant, if
only because she was still such a child, and if he took her hand or put
his own on her wonderful head or his arm around her as they stood in the
garden under the stars—he did it as to a child, though the leap in
her eyes and the quickening of his own heart told him the lie that he was
acting, rightly, to her and to himself. And no more now were there any
breaking-downs within her—there was only a calm faith that staggered
him and gave him an ever-mounting sense of his responsibility for whatever
might, through the part he had taken in moulding her life, be in store for
her.
</p>
<p>
When he was not there, life grew a little easier for her in time, because
of her dreams, the patience that was built from them and Hale's kindly
words, the comfort of her garden and her books, and the blessed force of
habit. For as time went on, she got consciously used to the rough life,
the coarse food and the rude ways of her own people and her own home. And
though she relaxed not a bit in her own dainty cleanliness, the shrinking
that she felt when she first arrived home, came to her at longer and
longer intervals. Once a week she went down to Uncle Billy's, where she
watched the water-wheel dripping sun-jewels into the sluice, the
kingfisher darting like a blue bolt upon his prey, and listening to the
lullaby that the water played to the sleepy old mill—and stopping,
both ways, to gossip with old Hon in her porch under the honeysuckle
vines. Uncle Billy saw the change in her and he grew vaguely uneasy about
her—she dreamed so much, she was at times so restless, she asked so
many questions he could not answer, and she failed to ask so many that
were on the tip of her tongue. He saw that while her body was at home, her
thoughts rarely were; and it all haunted him with a vague sense that he
was losing her. But old Hon laughed at him and told him he was an old fool
and to "git another pair o' specs" and maybe he could see that the "little
gal" was in love. This startled Uncle Billy, for he was so like a father
to June that he was as slow as a father in recognizing that his child has
grown to such absurd maturity. But looking back to the beginning—how
the little girl had talked of the "furriner" who had come into Lonesome
Cove all during the six months he was gone; how gladly she had gone away
to the Gap to school, how anxious she was to go still farther away again,
and, remembering all the strange questions she asked him about things in
the outside world of which he knew nothing—Uncle Billy shook his
head in confirmation of his own conclusion, and with all his soul he
wondered about Hale—what kind of a man he was and what his purpose
was with June—and of every man who passed his mill he never failed
to ask if he knew "that ar man Hale" and what he knew. All he had heard
had been in Hale's favour, except from young Dave Tolliver, the Red Fox or
from any Falin of the crowd, which Hale had prevented from capturing Dave.
Their statements bothered him—especially the Red Fox's evil hints
and insinuations about Hale's purposes one day at the mill. The miller
thought of them all the afternoon and all the way home, and when he sat
down at his fire his eyes very naturally and simply rose to his old rifle
over the door—and then he laughed to himself so loudly that old Hon
heard him.
</p>
<p>
"Air you goin' crazy, Billy?" she asked. "Whut you studyin' 'bout?"
</p>
<p>
"Nothin'; I was jest a-thinkin' Devil Judd wouldn't leave a grease-spot of
him."
</p>
<p>
"You AIR goin' crazy—who's him?"
</p>
<p>
"Uh—nobody," said Uncle Billy, and old Hon turned with a shrug of
her shoulders—she was tired of all this talk about the feud.
</p>
<p>
All that summer young Dave Tolliver hung around Lonesome Cove. He would
sit for hours in Devil Judd's cabin, rarely saying anything to June or to
anybody, though the girl felt that she hardly made a move that he did not
see, and while he disappeared when Hale came, after a surly grunt of
acknowledgment to Hale's cheerful greeting, his perpetual espionage began
to anger June. Never, however, did he put himself into words until Hale's
last visit, when the summer had waned and it was nearly time for June to
go away again to school. As usual, Dave had left the house when Hale came,
and an hour after Hale was gone she went to the little ravine with a book
in her hand, and there the boy was sitting on her log, his elbows dug into
his legs midway between thigh and knee, his chin in his hands, his
slouched hat over his black eyes—every line of him picturing angry,
sullen dejection. She would have slipped away, but he heard her and lifted
his head and stared at her without speaking. Then he slowly got off the
log and sat down on a moss-covered stone.
</p>
<p>
"'Scuse me," he said with elaborate sarcasm. "This bein' yo' school-house
over hyeh, an' me not bein' a scholar, I reckon I'm in your way."
</p>
<p>
"How do you happen to know hit's my school-house?" asked June quietly.
</p>
<p>
"I've seed you hyeh."
</p>
<p>
"Jus' as I s'posed."
</p>
<p>
"You an' HIM."
</p>
<p>
"Jus' as I s'posed," she repeated, and a spot of red came into each cheek.
"But we didn't see YOU." Young Dave laughed.
</p>
<p>
"Well, everybody don't always see me when I'm seein' them."
</p>
<p>
"No," she said unsteadily. "So, you've been sneakin' around through the
woods a-spyin' on me—SNEAKIN' AN' SPYIN'," she repeated so searingly
that Dave looked at the ground suddenly, picked up a pebble confusedly and
shot it in the water.
</p>
<p>
"I had a mighty good reason," he said doggedly. "Ef he'd been up to some
of his furrin' tricks—-" June stamped the ground.
</p>
<p>
"Don't you think I kin take keer o' myself?"
</p>
<p>
"No, I don't. I never seed a gal that could—with one o' them
furriners."
</p>
<p>
"Huh!" she said scornfully. "You seem to set a mighty big store by the
decency of yo' own kin." Dave was silent. "He ain't up to no tricks. An'
whut do you reckon Dad 'ud be doin' while you was pertecting me?"
</p>
<p>
"Air ye goin' away to school?" he asked suddenly. June hesitated.
</p>
<p>
"Well, seein' as hit's none o' yo' business—I am."
</p>
<p>
"Air ye goin' to marry him?"
</p>
<p>
"He ain't axed me." The boy's face turned red as a flame.
</p>
<p>
"Ye air honest with me, an' now I'm goin' to be honest with you. You
hain't never goin' to marry him."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0004" id="linkimage-0004">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/0242.jpg"
alt="You Hain't Never Goin' to Marry Him.', 0242 " width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
"Mebbe you think I'm goin' to marry YOU." A mist of rage swept before the
lad's eyes so that he could hardly see, but he repeated steadily:
</p>
<p>
"You hain't goin' to marry HIM." June looked at the boy long and steadily,
but his black eyes never wavered—she knew what he meant.
</p>
<p>
"An' he kept the Falins from killin' you," she said, quivering with
indignation at the shame of him, but Dave went on unheeding:
</p>
<p>
"You pore little fool! Do ye reckon as how he's EVER goin' to axe ye to
marry him? Whut's he sendin' you away fer? Because you hain't good enough
fer him! Whar's yo' pride? You hain't good enough fer him," he repeated
scathingly. June had grown calm now.
</p>
<p>
"I know it," she said quietly, "but I'm goin' to try to be."
</p>
<p>
Dave rose then in impotent fury and pointed one finger at her. His black
eyes gleamed like a demon's and his voice was hoarse with resolution and
rage, but it was Tolliver against Tolliver now, and June answered him with
contemptuous fearlessness.
</p>
<p>
"YOU HAIN'T NEVER GOIN' TO MARRY HIM."
</p>
<p>
"An' he kept the Falins from killin' ye."
</p>
<p>
"Yes," he retorted savagely at last, "an' I kept the Falins from killin'
HIM," and he stalked away, leaving June blanched and wondering.
</p>
<p>
It was true. Only an hour before, as Hale turned up the mountain that very
afternoon at the mouth of Lonesome Cove, young Dave had called to him from
the bushes and stepped into the road.
</p>
<p>
"You air goin' to court Monday?" he said.
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Well, you better take another road this time," he said quietly. "Three o'
the Falins will be waitin' in the lorrel somewhar on the road to lay-way
ye."
</p>
<p>
Hale was dumfounded, but he knew the boy spoke the truth.
</p>
<p>
"Look here," he said impulsively, "I've got nothing against you, and I
hope you've got nothing against me. I'm much obliged—let's shake
hands!"
</p>
<p>
The boy turned sullenly away with a dogged shake of his head.
</p>
<p>
"I was beholden to you," he said with dignity, "an' I warned you 'bout
them Falins to git even with you. We're quits now."
</p>
<p>
Hale started to speak—to say that the lad was not beholden to him—that
he would as quickly have protected a Falin, but it would have only made
matters worse. Moreover, he knew precisely what Dave had against him, and
that, too, was no matter for discussion. So he said simply and sincerely:
</p>
<p>
"I'm sorry we can't be friends."
</p>
<p>
"No," Dave gritted out, "not this side o' Heaven—or Hell."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0020" id="link2H_4_0020">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XIX
</h2>
<p>
And still farther into that far silence about which she used to dream at
the base of the big Pine, went little June. At dusk, weary and
travel-stained, she sat in the parlours of a hotel—a great gray
columned structure of stone. She was confused and bewildered and her head
ached. The journey had been long and tiresome. The swift motion of the
train had made her dizzy and faint. The dust and smoke had almost stifled
her, and even now the dismal parlours, rich and wonderful as they were to
her unaccustomed eyes, oppressed her deeply. If she could have one more
breath of mountain air!
</p>
<p>
The day had been too full of wonders. Impressions had crowded on her
sensitive brain so thick and fast that the recollection of them was as
through a haze. She had never been on a train before and when, as it
crashed ahead, she clutched Hale's arm in fear and asked how they stopped
it, Hale hearing the whistle blow for a station, said:
</p>
<p>
"I'll show you," and he waved one hand out the window. And he repeated
this trick twice before she saw that it was a joke. All day he had soothed
her uneasiness in some such way and all day he watched her with an amused
smile that was puzzling to her. She remembered sadly watching the
mountains dwindle and disappear, and when several of her own people who
were on the train were left at way-stations, it seemed as though all links
that bound her to her home were broken. The face of the country changed,
the people changed in looks, manners and dress, and she shrank closer to
Hale with an increasing sense of painful loneliness. These level fields
and these farm-houses so strangely built, so varied in colour were the
"settlemints," and these people so nicely dressed, so clean and
fresh-looking were "furriners." At one station a crowd of school-girls had
got on board and she had watched them with keen interest, mystified by
their incessant chatter and gayety. And at last had come the big city,
with more smoke, more dust, more noise, more confusion—and she was
in HIS world. That was the thought that comforted her—it was his
world, and now she sat alone in the dismal parlours while Hale was gone to
find his sister—waiting and trembling at the ordeal, close upon her,
of meeting Helen Hale.
</p>
<p>
Below, Hale found his sister and her maid registered, and a few minutes
later he led Miss Hale into the parlour. As they entered June rose without
advancing, and for a moment the two stood facing each other—the
still roughly clad, primitive mountain girl and the exquisite modern woman—in
an embarrassment equally painful to both.
</p>
<p>
"June, this is my sister."
</p>
<p>
At a loss what to do, Helen Hale simply stretched out her hand, but drawn
by June's timidity and the quick admiration and fear in her eyes, she
leaned suddenly forward and kissed her. A grateful flush overspread the
little girl's features and the pallor that instantly succeeded went
straight-way to the sister's heart.
</p>
<p>
"You are not well," she said quickly and kindly. "You must go to your room
at once. I am going to take care of you—you are MY little sister
now."
</p>
<p>
June lost the subtlety in Miss Hale's emphasis, but she fell with instant
submission under such gentle authority, and though she could say nothing,
her eyes glistened and her lips quivered, and without looking to Hale, she
followed his sister out of the room. Hale stood still. He had watched the
meeting with apprehension and now, surprised and grateful, he went to
Helen's parlour and waited with a hopeful heart. When his sister entered,
he rose eagerly:
</p>
<p>
"Well—" he said, stopping suddenly, for there were tears of
vexation, dismay and genuine distress on his sister's face.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, Jack," she cried, "how could you! How could you!"
</p>
<p>
Hale bit his lips, turned and paced the room. He had hoped too much and
yet what else could he have expected? His sister and June knew as little
about each other and each other's lives as though they had occupied
different planets. He had forgotten that Helen must be shocked by June's
inaccuracies of speech and in a hundred other ways to which he had become
accustomed. With him, moreover, the process had been gradual and,
moreover, he had seen beneath it all. And yet he had foolishly expected
Helen to understand everything at once. He was unjust, so very wisely he
held himself in silence.
</p>
<p>
"Where is her baggage, Jack?" Helen had opened her trunk and was lifting
out the lid. "She ought to change those dusty clothes at once. You'd
better ring and have it sent right up."
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale, "I will go down and see about it myself."
</p>
<p>
He returned presently—his face aflame—with June's carpet-bag.
</p>
<p>
"I believe this is all she has," he said quietly.
</p>
<p>
In spite of herself Helen's grief changed to a fit of helpless laughter
and, afraid to trust himself further, Hale rose to leave the room. At the
door he was met by the negro maid.
</p>
<p>
"Miss Helen," she said with an open smile, "Miss June say she don't want
NUTTIN'." Hale gave her a fiery look and hurried out. June was seated at a
window when he went into her room with her face buried in her arms. She
lifted her head, dropped it, and he saw that her eyes were red with
weeping. "Are you sick, little girl?" he asked anxiously. June shook her
head helplessly.
</p>
<p>
"You aren't homesick, are you?"
</p>
<p>
"No." The answer came very faintly.
</p>
<p>
"Don't you like my sister?" The head bowed an emphatic "Yes—yes."
</p>
<p>
"Then what is the matter?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh," she said despairingly, between her sobs, "she—won't—like—me.
I never—can—be—like HER."
</p>
<p>
Hale smiled, but her grief was so sincere that he leaned over her and with
a tender hand soothed her into quiet. Then he went to Helen again and he
found her overhauling dresses.
</p>
<p>
"I brought along several things of different sizes and I am going to try
at any rate. Oh," she added hastily, "only of course until she can get
some clothes of her own."
</p>
<p>
"Sure," said Hale, "but—" His sister waved one hand and again Hale
kept still.
</p>
<p>
June had bathed her eyes and was lying down when Helen entered, and she
made not the slightest objection to anything the latter proposed.
Straightway she fell under as complete subjection to her as she had done
to Hale. Without a moment's hesitation she drew off her rudely fashioned
dress and stood before Helen with the utmost simplicity—her
beautiful arms and throat bare and her hair falling about them with the
rich gold of a cloud at an autumn sunset. Dressed, she could hardly
breathe, but when she looked at herself in the mirror, she trembled. Magic
transformation! Apparently the chasm between the two had been bridged in a
single instant. Helen herself was astonished and again her heart warmed
toward the girl, when a little later, she stood timidly under Hale's
scrutiny, eagerly watching his face and flushing rosy with happiness under
his brightening look. Her brother had not exaggerated—the little
girl was really beautiful. When they went down to the dining-room, there
was another surprise for Helen Hale, for June's timidity was gone and to
the wonder of the woman, she was clothed with an impassive reserve that in
herself would have been little less than haughtiness and was astounding in
a child. She saw, too, that the change in the girl's bearing was
unconscious and that the presence of strangers had caused it. It was plain
that June's timidity sprang from her love of Hale—her fear of not
pleasing him and not pleasing her, his sister, and plain, too, that
remarkable self-poise was little June's to command. At the table June kept
her eyes fastened on Helen Hale. Not a movement escaped her and she did
nothing that was not done by one of the others first. She said nothing,
but if she had to answer a question, she spoke with such care and
precision that she almost seemed to be using a foreign language. Miss Hale
smiled but with inward approval, and that night she was in better spirits.
</p>
<p>
"Jack," she said, when he came to bid her good-night, "I think we'd better
stay here a few days. I thought of course you were exaggerating, but she
is very, very lovely. And that manner of hers—well, it passes my
understanding. Just leave everything to me."
</p>
<p>
Hale was very willing to do that. He had all trust in his sister's
judgment, he knew her dislike of interference, her love of autocratic
supervision, so he asked no questions, but in grateful relief kissed her
good-night.
</p>
<p>
The sister sat for a long time at her window after he was gone. Her
brother had been long away from civilization; he had become infatuated,
the girl loved him, he was honourable and in his heart he meant to marry
her—that was to her the whole story. She had been mortified by the
misstep, but the misstep made, only one thought had occurred to her—to
help him all she could. She had been appalled when she first saw the dusty
shrinking mountain girl, but the helplessness and the loneliness of the
tired little face touched her, and she was straightway responsive to the
mute appeal in the dark eyes that were lifted to her own with such modest
fear and wonder. Now her surprise at her brother's infatuation was abating
rapidly. The girl's adoration of him, her wild beauty, her strange winning
personality—as rare and as independent of birth and circumstances as
genius—had soon made that phenomenon plain. And now what was to be
done? The girl was quick, observant, imitative, docile, and in the
presence of strangers, her gravity of manner gave the impression of
uncanny self-possession. It really seemed as though anything might be
possible. At Helen's suggestion, then, the three stayed where they were
for a week, for June's wardrobe was sadly in need of attention. So the
week was spent in shopping, driving, and walking, and rapidly as it passed
for Helen and Hale it was to June the longest of her life, so filled was
it with a thousand sensations unfelt by them. The city had been stirred by
the spirit of the new South, but the charm of the old was distinct
everywhere. Architectural eccentricities had startled the sleepy
maple-shaded rows of comfortable uniform dwellings here and there, and in
some streets the life was brisk; but it was still possible to see
pedestrians strolling with unconscious good-humour around piles of goods
on the sidewalk, business men stopping for a social chat on the streets,
street-cars moving independent of time, men invariably giving up their
seats to women, and, strangers or not, depositing their fare for them; the
drivers at the courteous personal service of each patron of the road—now
holding a car and placidly whistling while some lady who had signalled
from her doorway went back indoors for some forgotten article, now
twisting the reins around the brakes and leaving a parcel in some yard—and
no one grumbling! But what was to Hale an atmosphere of amusing leisure
was to June bewildering confusion. To her his amusement was
unintelligible, but though in constant wonder at everything she saw, no
one would ever have suspected that she was making her first acquaintance
with city scenes. At first the calm unconcern of her companions had
puzzled her. She could not understand how they could walk along, heedless
of the wonderful visions that beckoned to her from the shop-windows;
fearless of the strange noises about them and scarcely noticing the great
crowds of people, or the strange shining vehicles that thronged the
streets. But she had quickly concluded that it was one of the demands of
that new life to see little and be astonished at nothing, and Helen and
Hale surprised in turn at her unconcern, little suspected the effort her
self-suppression cost her. And when over some wonder she did lose herself,
Hale would say:
</p>
<p>
"Just wait till you see New York!" and June would turn her dark eyes to
Helen for confirmation and to see if Hale could be joking with her.
</p>
<p>
"It's all true, June," Helen would say. "You must go there some day. It's
true." But that town was enough and too much for June. Her head buzzed
continuously and she could hardly sleep, and she was glad when one
afternoon they took her into the country again—the Bluegrass country—and
to the little town near which Hale had been born, and which was a
dream-city to June, and to a school of which an old friend of his mother
was principal, and in which Helen herself was a temporary teacher. And
Rumour had gone ahead of June. Hale had found her dashing about the
mountains on the back of a wild bull, said rumour. She was as beautiful as
Europa, was of pure English descent and spoke the language of Shakespeare—the
Hon. Sam Budd's hand was patent in this. She had saved Hale's life from
moonshiners and while he was really in love with her, he was pretending to
educate her out of gratitude—and here doubtless was the faint
tracery of Miss Anne Saunder's natural suspicions. And there Hale left her
under the eye of his sister—left her to absorb another new life like
a thirsty plant and come back to the mountains to make his head swim with
new witcheries.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0021" id="link2H_4_0021">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XX
</h2>
<p>
The boom started after its shadow through the hills now, and Hale watched
it sweep toward him with grim satisfaction at the fulfilment of his own
prophecy and with disgust that, by the irony of fate, it should come from
the very quarters where years before he had played the maddening part of
lunatic at large. The avalanche was sweeping southward; Pennsylvania was
creeping down the Alleghanies, emissaries of New York capital were pouring
into the hills, the tide-water of Virginia and the Bluegrass region of
Kentucky were sending in their best blood and youth, and friends of the
helmeted Englishmen were hurrying over the seas. Eastern companies were
taking up principalities, and at Cumberland Gap, those helmeted Englishmen
had acquired a kingdom. They were building a town there, too, with huge
steel plants, broad avenues and business blocks that would have graced
Broadway; and they were pouring out a million for every thousand that it
would have cost Hale to acquire the land on which the work was going on.
Moreover they were doing it there, as Hale heard, because they were too
late to get control of his gap through the Cumberland. At his gap, too,
the same movement was starting. In stage and wagon, on mule and horse,
"riding and tying" sometimes, and even afoot came the rush of madmen.
Horses and mules were drowned in the mud holes along the road, such was
the traffic and such were the floods. The incomers slept eight in a room,
burned oil at one dollar a gallon, and ate potatoes at ten cents apiece.
The Grand Central Hotel was a humming Real-Estate Exchange, and, night and
day, the occupants of any room could hear, through the thin partitions,
lots booming to right, left, behind and in front of them. The labour and
capital question was instantly solved, for everybody became a
capitalist-carpenter, brick-layer, blacksmith, singing teacher and
preacher. There is no difference between the shrewdest business man and a
fool in a boom, for the boom levels all grades of intelligence and
produces as distinct a form of insanity as you can find within the walls
of an asylum. Lots took wings sky-ward. Hale bought one for June for
thirty dollars and sold it for a thousand. Before the autumn was gone, he
found himself on the way to ridiculous opulence and, when spring came, he
had the world in a sling and, if he wished, he could toss it playfully at
the sun and have it drop back into his hand again. And the boom spread
down the valley and into the hills. The police guard had little to do and,
over in the mountains, the feud miraculously came to a sudden close.
</p>
<p>
So pervasive, indeed, was the spirit of the times that the Hon. Sam Budd
actually got old Buck Falin and old Dave Tolliver to sign a truce,
agreeing to a complete cessation of hostilities until he carried through a
land deal in which both were interested. And after that was concluded,
nobody had time, even the Red Fox, for deviltry and private vengeance—so
busy was everybody picking up the manna which was dropping straight from
the clouds. Hale bought all of old Judd's land, formed a stock company and
in the trade gave June a bonus of the stock. Money was plentiful as grains
of sand, and the cashier of the bank in the back of the furniture store at
the Gap chuckled to his beardless directors as he locked the wooden door
on the day before the great land sale:
</p>
<p>
"Capital stock paid in—thirteen thousand dollars;
</p>
<p>
"Deposits—three hundred thousand;
</p>
<p>
"Loans—two hundred and sixty thousand—interest from eight to
twelve per cent." And, beardless though those directors were, that
statement made them reel.
</p>
<p>
A club was formed and the like of it was not below Mason and Dixon's line
in the way of furniture, periodicals, liquors and cigars. Poker ceased—it
was too tame in competition with this new game of town-lots. On the top of
High Knob a kingdom was bought. The young bloods of the town would build a
lake up there, run a road up and build a Swiss chalet on the very top for
a country club. The "booming" editor was discharged. A new paper was
started, and the ex-editor of a New York Daily was got to run it. If
anybody wanted anything, he got it from no matter where, nor at what cost.
Nor were the arts wholly neglected. One man, who was proud of his voice,
thought he would like to take singing lessons. An emissary was sent to
Boston to bring back the best teacher he could find. The teacher came with
a method of placing the voice by trying to say "Come!" at the base of the
nose and between the eyes. This was with the lips closed. He charged two
dollars per half hour for this effort, he had each pupil try it twice for
half an hour each day, and for six weeks the town was humming like a
beehive. At the end of that period, the teacher fell ill and went his way
with a fat pocket-book and not a warbling soul had got the chance to open
his mouth. The experience dampened nobody. Generosity was limitless. It
was equally easy to raise money for a roulette wheel, a cathedral or an
expedition to Africa. And even yet the railroad was miles away and even
yet in February, the Improvement Company had a great land sale. The day
before it, competing purchasers had deposited cheques aggregating three
times the sum asked for by the company for the land. So the buyers spent
the night organizing a pool to keep down competition and drawing lots for
the privilege of bidding. For fairness, the sale was an auction, and one
old farmer who had sold some of the land originally for a hundred dollars
an acre, bought back some of that land at a thousand dollars a lot.
</p>
<p>
That sale was the climax and, that early, Hale got a warning word from
England, but he paid no heed even though, after the sale, the boom
slackened, poised and stayed still; for optimism was unquenchable and
another tide would come with another sale in May, and so the spring passed
in the same joyous recklessness and the same perfect hope.
</p>
<p>
In April, the first railroad reached the Gap at last, and families came in
rapidly. Money was still plentiful and right royally was it spent, for was
not just as much more coming when the second road arrived in May? Life was
easier, too—supplies came from New York, eight o'clock dinners were
in vogue and everybody was happy. Every man had two or three good horses
and nothing to do. The place was full of visiting girls. They rode in
parties to High Knob, and the ring of hoof and the laughter of youth and
maid made every dusk resonant with joy. On Poplar Hill houses sprang up
like magic and weddings came. The passing stranger was stunned to find out
in the wilderness such a spot; gayety, prodigal hospitality, a police
force of gentlemen—nearly all of whom were college graduates—and
a club, where poker flourished in the smoke of Havana cigars, and a barrel
of whiskey stood in one corner with a faucet waiting for the turn of any
hand. And still the foundation of the new hotel was not started and the
coming of the new railroad in May did not make a marked change. For some
reason the May sale was postponed by the Improvement Company, but what did
it matter? Perhaps it was better to wait for the fall, and so the summer
went on unchanged. Every man still had a bank account and in the autumn,
the boom would come again. At such a time June came home for her vacation,
and Bob Berkley came back from college for his. All through the school
year Hale had got the best reports of June. His sister's letters were
steadily encouraging. June had been very homesick for the mountains and
for Hale at first, but the homesickness had quickly worn off—apparently
for both. She had studied hard, had become a favourite among the girls,
and had held her own among them in a surprising way. But it was on June's
musical talent that Hale's sister always laid most stress, and on her
voice which, she said, was really unusual. June wrote, too, at longer and
longer intervals and in her letters, Hale could see the progress she was
making—the change in her handwriting, the increasing formality of
expression, and the increasing shrewdness of her comments on her
fellow-pupils, her teachers and the life about her. She did not write home
for a reason Hale knew, though June never mentioned it—because there
was no one at home who could read her letters—but she always sent
messages to her father and Bub and to the old miller and old Hon, and Hale
faithfully delivered them when he could.
</p>
<p>
From her people, as Hale learned from his sister, only one messenger had
come during the year to June, and he came but once. One morning, a tall,
black-haired, uncouth young man, in a slouch hat and a Prince Albert coat,
had strode up to the school with a big paper box under his arm and asked
for June. As he handed the box to the maid at the door, it broke and red
apples burst from it and rolled down the steps. There was a shriek of
laughter from the girls, and the young man, flushing red as the apples,
turned, without giving his name, and strode back with no little majesty,
looking neither to right nor left. Hale knew and June knew that the
visitor was her cousin Dave, but she never mentioned the incident to him,
though as the end of the session drew nigh, her letters became more
frequent and more full of messages to the people in Lonesome Cove, and she
seemed eager to get back home. Over there about this time, old Judd
concluded suddenly to go West, taking Bud with him, and when Hale wrote
the fact, an answer came from June that showed the blot of tears. However,
she seemed none the less in a hurry to get back, and when Hale met her at
the station, he was startled; for she came back in dresses that were below
her shoe-tops, with her wonderful hair massed in a golden glory on the top
of her head and the little fairy-cross dangling at a woman's throat. Her
figure had rounded, her voice had softened. She held herself as straight
as a young poplar and she walked the earth as though she had come straight
from Olympus. And still, in spite of her new feathers and airs and graces,
there was in her eye and in her laugh and in her moods all the subtle wild
charm of the child in Lonesome Cove. It was fairy-time for June that
summer, though her father and Bud had gone West, for her step-mother was
living with a sister, the cabin in Lonesome Cove was closed and June
stayed at the Gap, not at the Widow Crane's boarding-house, but with one
of Hale's married friends on Poplar Hill. And always was she, young as she
was, one of the merry parties of that happy summer—even at the
dances, for the dance, too, June had learned. Moreover she had picked up
the guitar, and many times when Hale had been out in the hills, he would
hear her silver-clear voice floating out into the moonlight as he made his
way toward Poplar Hill, and he would stop under the beeches and listen
with ears of growing love to the wonder of it all. For it was he who was
the ardent one of the two now.
</p>
<p>
June was no longer the frank, impulsive child who stood at the foot of the
beech, doggedly reckless if all the world knew her love for him. She had
taken flight to some inner recess where it was difficult for Hale to
follow, and right puzzled he was to discover that he must now win again
what, unasked, she had once so freely given.
</p>
<p>
Bob Berkley, too, had developed amazingly. He no longer said "Sir" to Hale—that
was bad form at Harvard—he called him by his first name and looked
him in the eye as man to man: just as June—Hale observed—no
longer seemed in any awe of Miss Anne Saunders and to have lost all
jealousy of her, or of anybody else—so swiftly had her instinct
taught her she now had nothing to fear. And Bob and June seemed mightily
pleased with each other, and sometimes Hale, watching them as they
galloped past him on horseback laughing and bantering, felt foolish to
think of their perfect fitness—the one for the other—and the
incongruity of himself in a relationship that would so naturally be
theirs. At one thing he wondered: she had made an extraordinary record at
school and it seemed to him that it was partly through the consciousness
that her brain would take care of itself that she could pay such heed to
what hitherto she had had no chance to learn—dress, manners,
deportment and speech. Indeed, it was curious that she seemed to lay most
stress on the very things to which he, because of his long rough life in
the mountains, was growing more and more indifferent. It was quite plain
that Bob, with his extreme gallantry of manner, his smart clothes, his
high ways and his unconquerable gayety, had supplanted him on the pedestal
where he had been the year before, just as somebody, somewhere—his
sister, perhaps—had supplanted Miss Anne. Several times indeed June
had corrected Hale's slips of tongue with mischievous triumph, and once
when he came back late from a long trip in the mountains and walked in to
dinner without changing his clothes, Hale saw her look from himself to the
immaculate Bob with an unconscious comparison that half amused, half
worried him. The truth was he was building a lovely Frankenstein and from
wondering what he was going to do with it, he was beginning to wonder now
what it might some day do with him. And though he sometimes joked with
Miss Anne, who had withdrawn now to the level plane of friendship with
him, about the transformation that was going on, he worried in a way that
did neither his heart nor his brain good. Still he fought both to little
purpose all that summer, and it was not till the time was nigh when June
must go away again, that he spoke both. For Hale's sister was going to
marry, and it was her advice that he should take June to New York if only
for the sake of her music and her voice. That very day June had for the
first time seen her cousin Dave. He was on horseback, he had been drinking
and he pulled in and, without an answer to her greeting, stared her over
from head to foot. Colouring angrily, she started on and then he spoke
thickly and with a sneer:
</p>
<p>
"'Bout fryin' size, now, ain't ye? I reckon maybe, if you keep on, you'll
be good enough fer him in a year or two more."
</p>
<p>
"I'm much obliged for those apples, Dave," said June quietly—and
Dave flushed a darker red and sat still, forgetting to renew the old
threat that was on his tongue.
</p>
<p>
But his taunt rankled in the girl—rankled more now than when Dave
first made it, for she better saw the truth of it and the hurt was the
greater to her unconquerable pride that kept her from betraying the hurt
to Dave long ago, and now, when he was making an old wound bleed afresh.
But the pain was with her at dinner that night and through the evening.
She avoided Hale's eyes though she knew that he was watching her all the
time, and her instinct told her that something was going to happen that
night and what that something was. Hale was the last to go and when he
called to her from the porch, she went out trembling and stood at the head
of the steps in the moonlight.
</p>
<p>
"I love you, little girl," he said simply, "and I want you to marry me
some day—will you, June?" She was unsurprised but she flushed under
his hungry eyes, and the little cross throbbed at her throat.
</p>
<p>
"SOME day-not NOW," she thought, and then with equal simplicity: "Yes,
Jack."
</p>
<p>
"And if you should love somebody else more, you'll tell me right away—won't
you, June?" She shrank a little and her eyes fell, but straight-way she
raised them steadily:
</p>
<p>
"Yes, Jack."
</p>
<p>
"Thank you, little girl—good-night."
</p>
<p>
"Good-night, Jack."
</p>
<p>
Hale saw the little shrinking movement she made, and, as he went down the
hill, he thought she seemed to be in a hurry to be alone, and that she had
caught her breath sharply as she turned away. And brooding he walked the
woods long that night.
</p>
<p>
Only a few days later, they started for New York and, with all her
dreaming, June had never dreamed that the world could be so large.
Mountains and vast stretches of rolling hills and level land melted away
from her wondering eyes; towns and cities sank behind them, swift streams
swollen by freshets were outstripped and left behind, darkness came on
and, through it, they still sped on. Once during the night she woke from a
troubled dream in her berth and for a moment she thought she was at home
again. They were running through mountains again and there they lay in the
moonlight, the great calm dark faces that she knew and loved, and she
seemed to catch the odour of the earth and feel the cool air on her face,
but there was no pang of homesickness now—she was too eager for the
world into which she was going. Next morning the air was cooler, the skies
lower and grayer—the big city was close at hand. Then came the
water, shaking and sparkling in the early light like a great cauldron of
quicksilver, and the wonderful Brooklyn Bridge—a ribbon of twinkling
lights tossed out through the mist from the mighty city that rose from
that mist as from a fantastic dream; then the picking of a way through
screeching little boats and noiseless big ones and white bird-like
floating things and then they disappeared like two tiny grains in a
shifting human tide of sand. But Hale was happy now, for on that trip June
had come back to herself, and to him, once more—and now, awed but
unafraid, eager, bubbling, uplooking, full of quaint questions about
everything she saw, she was once more sitting with affectionate reverence
at his feet. When he left her in a great low house that fronted on the
majestic Hudson, June clung to him with tears and of her own accord kissed
him for the first time since she had torn her little playhouse to pieces
at the foot of the beech down in the mountains far away. And Hale went
back with peace in his heart, but to trouble in the hills.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Not suddenly did the boom drop down there, not like a falling star, but on
the wings of hope—wings that ever fluttering upward, yet sank
inexorably and slowly closed. The first crash came over the waters when
certain big men over there went to pieces—men on whose shoulders
rested the colossal figure of progress that the English were carving from
the hills at Cumberland Gap. Still nobody saw why a hurt to the Lion
should make the Eagle sore and so the American spirit at the other gaps
and all up the Virginia valleys that skirt the Cumberland held faithful
and dauntless—for a while. But in time as the huge steel plants grew
noiseless, and the flaming throats of the furnaces were throttled, a
sympathetic fire of dissolution spread slowly North and South and it was
plain only to the wise outsider as merely a matter of time until, all up
and down the Cumberland, the fox and the coon and the quail could come
back to their old homes on corner lots, marked each by a pathetic little
whitewashed post—a tombstone over the graves of a myriad of buried
human hopes. But it was the gap where Hale was that died last and hardest—and
of the brave spirits there, his was the last and hardest to die.
</p>
<p>
In the autumn, while June was in New York, the signs were sure but every
soul refused to see them. Slowly, however, the vexed question of labour
and capital was born again, for slowly each local capitalist went slowly
back to his own trade: the blacksmith to his forge, but the carpenter not
to his plane nor the mason to his brick—there was no more building
going on. The engineer took up his transit, the preacher-politician was
oftener in his pulpit, and the singing teacher started on his round of
raucous do-mi-sol-dos through the mountains again. It was curious to see
how each man slowly, reluctantly and perforce sank back again to his old
occupation—and the town, with the luxuries of electricity,
water-works, bath-tubs and a street railway, was having a hard fight for
the plain necessities of life. The following spring, notes for the second
payment on the lots that had been bought at the great land sale fell due,
and but very few were paid. As no suits were brought by the company,
however, hope did not quite die. June did not come home for the summer,
and Hale did not encourage her to come—she visited some of her
school-mates in the North and took a trip West to see her father who had
gone out there again and bought a farm. In the early autumn, Devil Judd
came back to the mountains and announced his intention to leave them for
good. But that autumn, the effects of the dead boom became perceptible in
the hills. There were no more coal lands bought, logging ceased, the
factions were idle once more, moonshine stills flourished, quarrelling
started, and at the county seat, one Court day, Devil Judd whipped three
Falins with his bare fists. In the early spring a Tolliver was shot from
ambush and old Judd was so furious at the outrage that he openly announced
that he would stay at home until he had settled the old scores for good.
So that, as the summer came on, matters between the Falins and the
Tollivers were worse than they had been for years and everybody knew that,
with old Judd at the head of his clan again, the fight would be fought to
the finish. At the Gap, one institution only had suffered in spirit not at
all and that was the Volunteer Police Guard. Indeed, as the excitement of
the boom had died down, the members of that force, as a vent for their
energies, went with more enthusiasm than ever into their work. Local
lawlessness had been subdued by this time, the Guard had been extending
its work into the hills, and it was only a question of time until it must
take a part in the Falin-Tolliver troubles. Indeed, that time, Hale
believed, was not far away, for Election Day was at hand, and always on
that day the feudists came to the Gap in a search for trouble. Meanwhile,
not long afterward, there was a pitched battle between the factions at the
county seat, and several of each would fight no more. Next day a Falin
whistled a bullet through Devil Judd's beard from ambush, and it was at
such a crisis of all the warring elements in her mountain life that June's
school-days were coming to a close. Hale had had a frank talk with old
Judd and the old man agreed that the two had best be married at once and
live at the Gap until things were quieter in the mountains, though the old
man still clung to his resolution to go West for good when he was done
with the Falins. At such a time, then, June was coming home.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0022" id="link2H_4_0022">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXI
</h2>
<p>
Hale was beyond Black Mountain when her letter reached him. His work over
there had to be finished and so he kept in his saddle the greater part of
two days and nights and on the third day rode his big black horse forty
miles in little more than half a day that he might meet her at the train.
The last two years had wrought their change in him. Deterioration is easy
in the hills—superficial deterioration in habits, manners, personal
appearance and the practices of all the little niceties of life. The
morning bath is impossible because of the crowded domestic conditions of a
mountain cabin and, if possible, might if practised, excite wonder and
comment, if not vague suspicion. Sleeping garments are practically barred
for the same reason. Shaving becomes a rare luxury. A lost tooth-brush may
not be replaced for a month. In time one may bring himself to eat with a
knife for the reason that it is hard for a hungry man to feed himself with
a fork that has but two tines. The finger tips cease to be the culminating
standard of the gentleman. It is hard to keep a supply of fresh linen when
one is constantly in the saddle, and a constant weariness of body and a
ravenous appetite make a man indifferent to things like a bad bed and
worse food, particularly as he must philosophically put up with them,
anyhow. Of all these things the man himself may be quite unconscious and
yet they affect him more deeply than he knows and show to a woman even in
his voice, his walk, his mouth—everywhere save in his eyes, which
change only in severity, or in kindliness or when there has been some
serious break-down of soul or character within. And the woman will not
look to his eyes for the truth—which makes its way slowly—particularly
when the woman has striven for the very things that the man has so
recklessly let go. She would never suffer herself to let down in such a
way and she does not understand how a man can.
</p>
<p>
Hale's life, since his college doors had closed behind him, had always
been a rough one. He had dropped from civilization and had gone back into
it many times. And each time he had dropped, he dropped the deeper, and
for that reason had come back into his own life each time with more
difficulty and with more indifference. The last had been his roughest year
and he had sunk a little more deeply just at the time when June had been
pluming herself for flight from such depths forever. Moreover, Hale had
been dominant in every matter that his hand or his brain had touched. His
habit had been to say "do this" and it was done. Though he was no longer
acting captain of the Police Guard, he always acted as captain whenever he
was on hand, and always he was the undisputed leader in all questions of
business, politics or the maintenance of order and law. The success he had
forged had hardened and strengthened his mouth, steeled his eyes and made
him more masterful in manner, speech and point of view, and naturally had
added nothing to his gentleness, his unselfishness, his refinement or the
nice consideration of little things on which women lay such stress. It was
an hour by sun when he clattered through the gap and pushed his tired
black horse into a gallop across the valley toward the town. He saw the
smoke of the little dummy and, as he thundered over the bridge of the
North Fork, he saw that it was just about to pull out and he waved his hat
and shouted imperiously for it to wait. With his hand on the bell-rope,
the conductor, autocrat that he, too, was, did wait and Hale threw his
reins to the man who was nearest, hardly seeing who he was, and climbed
aboard. He wore a slouched hat spotted by contact with the roof of the
mines which he had hastily visited on his way through Lonesome Cove. The
growth of three days' beard was on his face. He wore a gray woollen shirt,
and a blue handkerchief—none too clean—was loosely tied about
his sun-scorched column of a throat; he was spotted with mud from his
waist to the soles of his rough riding boots and his hands were rough and
grimy. But his eye was bright and keen and his heart thumped eagerly.
Again it was the middle of June and the town was a naked island in a sea
of leaves whose breakers literally had run mountain high and stopped for
all time motionless. Purple lights thick as mist veiled Powell's Mountain.
Below, the valley was still flooded with yellow sunlight which lay along
the mountain sides and was streaked here and there with the long shadow of
a deep ravine. The beech trunks on Imboden Hill gleamed in it like white
bodies scantily draped with green, and the yawning Gap held the yellow
light as a bowl holds wine. He had long ago come to look upon the hills
merely as storehouses for iron and coal, put there for his special
purpose, but now the long submerged sense of the beauty of it all stirred
within him again, for June was the incarnate spirit of it all and June was
coming back to those mountains and—to him.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
And June—June had seen the change in Hale. The first year he had
come often to New York to see her and they had gone to the theatre and the
opera, and June was pleased to play the part of heroine in what was such a
real romance to the other girls in school and she was proud of Hale. But
each time he came, he seemed less interested in the diversions that meant
so much to her, more absorbed in his affairs in the mountains and less
particular about his looks. His visits came at longer intervals, with each
visit he stayed less long, and each time he seemed more eager to get away.
She had been shy about appearing before him for the first time in evening
dress, and when he entered the drawing-room she stood under a chandelier
in blushing and resplendent confusion, but he seemed not to recognize that
he had never seen her that way before, and for another reason June
remained confused, disappointed and hurt, for he was not only unobserving,
and seemingly unappreciative, but he was more silent than ever that night
and he looked gloomy. But if he had grown accustomed to her beauty, there
were others who had not, and smart, dapper college youths gathered about
her like bees around a flower—a triumphant fact to which he also
seemed indifferent. Moreover, he was not in evening clothes that night and
she did not know whether he had forgotten or was indifferent to them, and
the contrast that he was made her that night almost ashamed for him. She
never guessed what the matter was, for Hale kept his troubles to himself.
He was always gentle and kind, he was as lavish with her as though he were
a king, and she was as lavish and prodigally generous as though she were a
princess. There seemed no limit to the wizard income from the investments
that Hale had made for her when, as he said, he sold a part of her stock
in the Lonesome Cove mine, and what she wanted Hale always sent her
without question. Only, as the end was coming on at the Gap, he wrote once
to know if a certain amount would carry her through until she was ready to
come home, but even that question aroused no suspicion in thoughtless
June. And then that last year he had come no more—always, always he
was too busy. Not even on her triumphal night at the end of the session
was he there, when she had stood before the guests and patrons of the
school like a goddess, and had thrilled them into startling applause, her
teachers into open glowing pride, the other girls into bright-eyed envy
and herself into still another new world. Now she was going home and she
was glad to go.
</p>
<p>
She had awakened that morning with the keen air of the mountains in her
nostrils—the air she had breathed in when she was born, and her eyes
shone happily when she saw through her window the loved blue hills along
which raced the train. They were only a little way from the town where she
must change, the porter said; she had overslept and she had no time even
to wash her face and hands, and that worried her a good deal. The porter
nearly lost his equilibrium when she gave him half a dollar—for
women are not profuse in the way of tipping—and instead of putting
her bag down on the station platform, he held it in his hand waiting to do
her further service. At the head of the steps she searched about for Hale
and her lovely face looked vexed and a little hurt when she did not see
him.
</p>
<p>
"Hotel, Miss?" said the porter.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, please, Harvey!" she called.
</p>
<p>
An astonished darky sprang from the line of calling hotel-porters and took
her bag. Then every tooth in his head flashed.
</p>
<p>
"Lordy, Miss June—I never knowed you at all."
</p>
<p>
June smiled—it was the tribute she was looking for.
</p>
<p>
"Have you seen Mr. Hale?"
</p>
<p>
"No'm. Mr. Hale ain't been here for mos' six months. I reckon he aint in
this country now. I aint heard nothin' 'bout him for a long time."
</p>
<p>
June knew better than that—but she said nothing. She would rather
have had even Harvey think that he was away. So she hurried to the hotel—she
would have four hours to wait—and asked for the one room that had a
bath attached—the room to which Hale had sent her when she had
passed through on her way to New York. She almost winced when she looked
in the mirror and saw the smoke stains about her pretty throat and ears,
and she wondered if anybody could have noticed them on her way from the
train. Her hands, too, were dreadful to look at and she hurried to take
off her things.
</p>
<p>
In an hour she emerged freshened, immaculate from her crown of lovely hair
to her smartly booted feet, and at once she went downstairs. She heard the
man, whom she passed, stop at the head of them and turn to look down at
her, and she saw necks craned within the hotel office when she passed the
door. On the street not a man and hardly a woman failed to look at her
with wonder and open admiration, for she was an apparition in that little
town and it all pleased her so much that she became flushed and conscious
and felt like a queen who, unknown, moved among her subjects and blessed
them just with her gracious presence. For she was unknown even by several
people whom she knew and that, too, pleased her—to have bloomed so
quite beyond their ken. She was like a meteor coming back to dazzle the
very world from which it had flown for a while into space. When she went
into the dining-room for the midday dinner, there was a movement in almost
every part of the room as though there were many there who were on the
lookout for her entrance. The head waiter, a portly darky, lost his
imperturbable majesty for a moment in surprise at the vision and then with
a lordly yet obsequious wave of his hand, led her to a table over in a
corner where no one was sitting. Four young men came in rather
boisterously and made for her table. She lifted her calm eyes at them so
haughtily that the one in front halted with sudden embarrassment and they
all swerved to another table from which they stared at her
surreptitiously. Perhaps she was mistaken for the comic-opera star whose
brilliant picture she had seen on a bill board in front of the "opera
house." Well, she had the voice and she might have been and she might yet
be—and if she were, this would be the distinction that would be
shown her. And, still as it was she was greatly pleased.
</p>
<p>
At four o'clock she started for the hills. In half an hour she was
dropping down a winding ravine along a rock-lashing stream with those
hills so close to the car on either side that only now and then could she
see the tops of them. Through the window the keen air came from the very
lungs of them, freighted with the coolness of shadows, the scent of damp
earth and the faint fragrance of wild flowers, and her soul leaped to meet
them. The mountain sides were showered with pink and white laurel (she
used to call it "ivy") and the rhododendrons (she used to call them
"laurel") were just beginning to blossom—they were her old and fast
friends—mountain, shadow, the wet earth and its pure breath, and
tree, plant and flower; she had not forgotten them, and it was good to
come back to them. Once she saw an overshot water-wheel on the bank of the
rushing little stream and she thought of Uncle Billy; she smiled and the
smile stopped short—she was going back to other things as well. The
train had creaked by a log-cabin set in the hillside and then past another
and another; and always there were two or three ragged children in the
door and a haggard unkempt woman peering over their shoulders. How lonely
those cabins looked and how desolate the life they suggested to her now—NOW!
The first station she came to after the train had wound down the long
ravine to the valley level again was crowded with mountaineers. There a
wedding party got aboard with a great deal of laughter, chaffing and
noise, and all three went on within and without the train while it was
waiting. A sudden thought stunned her like a lightning stroke. They were
HER people out there on the platform and inside the car ahead—those
rough men in slouch hats, jeans and cowhide boots, their mouths stained
with tobacco juice, their cheeks and eyes on fire with moonshine, and
those women in poke-bonnets with their sad, worn, patient faces on which
the sympathetic good cheer and joy of the moment sat so strangely. She
noticed their rough shoes and their homespun gowns that made their figures
all alike and shapeless, with a vivid awakening of early memories. She
might have been one of those narrow-lived girls outside, or that bride
within had it not been for Jack—Hale. She finished the name in her
own mind and she was conscious that she had. Ah, well, that was a long
time ago and she was nothing but a child and she had thrown herself at his
head. Perhaps it was different with him now and if it was, she would give
him the chance to withdraw from everything. It would be right and fair and
then life was so full for her now. She was dependent on nobody—on
nothing. A rainbow spanned the heaven above her and the other end of it
was not in the hills. But one end was and to that end she was on her way.
She was going to just such people as she had seen at the station. Her
father and her kinsmen were just such men—her step-mother and
kinswomen were just such women. Her home was little more than just such a
cabin as the desolate ones that stirred her pity when she swept by them.
She thought of how she felt when she had first gone to Lonesome Cove after
a few months at the Gap, and she shuddered to think how she would feel
now. She was getting restless by this time and aimlessly she got up and
walked to the front of the car and back again to her seat, hardly noticing
that the other occupants were staring at her with some wonder. She sat
down for a few minutes and then she went to the rear and stood outside on
the platform, clutching a brass rod of the railing and looking back on the
dropping darkness in which the hills seemed to be rushing together far
behind as the train crashed on with its wake of spark-lit rolling smoke. A
cinder stung her face, and when she lifted her hand to the spot, she saw
that her glove was black with grime. With a little shiver of disgust she
went back to her seat and with her face to the blackness rushing past her
window she sat brooding—brooding. Why had Hale not met her? He had
said he would and she had written him when she was coming and had
telegraphed him at the station in New York when she started. Perhaps he
HAD changed. She recalled that even his letters had grown less frequent,
shorter, more hurried the past year—well, he should have his chance.
Always, however, her mind kept going back to the people at the station and
to her people in the mountains. They were the same, she kept repeating to
herself—the very same and she was one of them. And always she kept
thinking of her first trip to Lonesome Cove after her awakening and of
what her next would be. That first time Hale had made her go back as she
had left, in home-spun, sun-bonnet and brogans. There was the same reason
why she should go back that way now as then—would Hale insist that
she should now? She almost laughed aloud at the thought. She knew that she
would refuse and she knew that his reason would not appeal to her now—she
no longer cared what her neighbours and kinspeople might think and say.
The porter paused at her seat.
</p>
<p>
"How much longer is it?" she asked.
</p>
<p>
"Half an hour, Miss."
</p>
<p>
June went to wash her face and hands, and when she came back to her seat a
great glare shone through the windows on the other side of the car. It was
the furnace, a "run" was on and she could see the streams of white molten
metal racing down the narrow channels of sand to their narrow beds on
either side. The whistle shrieked ahead for the Gap and she nerved herself
with a prophetic sense of vague trouble at hand.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
At the station Hale had paced the platform. He looked at his watch to see
whether he might have time to run up to the furnace, half a mile away, and
board the train there. He thought he had and he was about to start when
the shriek of the coming engine rose beyond the low hills in Wild Cat
Valley, echoed along Powell's Mountain and broke against the wrinkled
breast of the Cumberland. On it came, and in plain sight it stopped
suddenly to take water, and Hale cursed it silently and recalled viciously
that when he was in a hurry to arrive anywhere, the water-tower was always
on the wrong side of the station. He got so restless that he started for
it on a run and he had gone hardly fifty yards before the train came on
again and he had to run back to beat it to the station—where he
sprang to the steps of the Pullman before it stopped—pushing the
porter aside to find himself checked by the crowded passengers at the
door. June was not among them and straightway he ran for the rear of the
car.
</p>
<p>
June had risen. The other occupants of the car had crowded forward and she
was the last of them. She had stood, during an irritating wait, at the
water-tower, and now as she moved slowly forward again she heard the hurry
of feet behind her and she turned to look into the eager, wondering eyes
of John Hale.
</p>
<p>
"June!" he cried in amazement, but his face lighted with joy and he
impulsively stretched out his arms as though he meant to take her in them,
but as suddenly he dropped them before the startled look in her eyes,
which, with one swift glance, searched him from head to foot. They shook
hands almost gravely.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0023" id="link2H_4_0023">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXII
</h2>
<p>
June sat in the little dummy, the focus of curious eyes, while Hale was
busy seeing that her baggage was got aboard. The checks that she gave him
jingled in his hands like a bunch of keys, and he could hardly help
grinning when he saw the huge trunks and the smart bags that were tumbled
from the baggage car—all marked with her initials. There had been
days when he had laid considerable emphasis on pieces like those, and when
he thought of them overwhelming with opulent suggestions that
debt-stricken little town, and, later, piled incongruously on the porch of
the cabin on Lonesome Cove, he could have laughed aloud but for a nameless
something that was gnawing savagely at his heart.
</p>
<p>
He felt almost shy when he went back into the car, and though June greeted
him with a smile, her immaculate daintiness made him unconsciously sit
quite far away from her. The little fairy-cross was still at her throat,
but a tiny diamond gleamed from each end of it and from the centre, as
from a tiny heart, pulsated the light of a little blood-red ruby. To him
it meant the loss of June's simplicity and was the symbol of her new
estate, but he smiled and forced himself into hearty cheerfulness of
manner and asked her questions about her trip. But June answered in
halting monosyllables, and talk was not easy between them. All the while
he was watching her closely and not a movement of her eye, ear, mouth or
hand—not an inflection of her voice—escaped him. He saw her
sweep the car and its occupants with a glance, and he saw the results of
that glance in her face and the down-dropping of her eyes to the dainty
point of one boot. He saw her beautiful mouth close suddenly tight and her
thin nostrils quiver disdainfully when a swirl of black smoke, heavy with
cinders, came in with an entering passenger through the front door of the
car. Two half-drunken men were laughing boisterously near that door and
even her ears seemed trying to shut out their half-smothered rough talk.
The car started with a bump that swayed her toward him, and when she
caught the seat with one hand, it checked as suddenly, throwing her the
other way, and then with a leap it sprang ahead again, giving a nagging
snap to her head. Her whole face grew red with vexation and shrinking
distaste, and all the while, when the little train steadied into its
creaking, puffing, jostling way, one gloved hand on the chased silver
handle of her smart little umbrella kept nervously swaying it to and fro
on its steel-shod point, until she saw that the point was in a tiny pool
of tobacco juice, and then she laid it across her lap with shuddering
swiftness.
</p>
<p>
At first Hale thought that she had shrunk from kissing him in the car
because other people were around. He knew better now. At that moment he
was as rough and dirty as the chain-carrier opposite him, who was just in
from a surveying expedition in the mountains, as the sooty brakeman who
came through to gather up the fares—as one of those good-natured,
profane inebriates up in the corner. No, it was not publicity—she
had shrunk from him as she was shrinking now from black smoke, rough men,
the shaking of the train—the little pool of tobacco juice at her
feet. The truth began to glimmer through his brain. He understood, even
when she leaned forward suddenly to look into the mouth of the gap, that
was now dark with shadows. Through that gap lay her way and she thought
him now more a part of what was beyond than she who had been born of it
was, and dazed by the thought, he wondered if he might not really be. At
once he straightened in his seat, and his mind made up, as he always made
it up—swiftly. He had not explained why he had not met her that
morning, nor had he apologized for his rough garb, because he was so glad
to see her and because there were so many other things he wanted to say;
and when he saw her, conscious and resentful, perhaps, that he had not
done these things at once—he deliberately declined to do them now.
He became silent, but he grew more courteous, more thoughtful—watchful.
She was very tired, poor child; there were deep shadows under her eyes
which looked weary and almost mournful. So, when with a clanging of the
engine bell they stopped at the brilliantly lit hotel, he led her at once
upstairs to the parlour, and from there sent her up to her room, which was
ready for her.
</p>
<p>
"You must get a good sleep," he said kindly, and with his usual firmness
that was wont to preclude argument. "You are worn to death. I'll have your
supper sent to your room." The girl felt the subtle change in his manner
and her lip quivered for a vague reason that neither knew, but, without a
word, she obeyed him like a child. He did not try again to kiss her. He
merely took her hand, placed his left over it, and with a gentle pressure,
said:
</p>
<p>
"Good-night, little girl."
</p>
<p>
"Good-night," she faltered.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Resolutely, relentlessly, first, Hale cast up his accounts, liabilities,
resources, that night, to see what, under the least favourable outcome,
the balance left to him would be. Nearly all was gone. His securities were
already sold. His lots would not bring at public sale one-half of the
deferred payments yet to be made on them, and if the company brought suit,
as it was threatening to do, he would be left fathoms deep in debt. The
branch railroad had not come up the river toward Lonesome Cove, and now he
meant to build barges and float his cannel coal down to the main line, for
his sole hope was in the mine in Lonesome Cove. The means that he could
command were meagre, but they would carry his purpose with June for a year
at least and then—who knew?—he might, through that mine, be on
his feet again.
</p>
<p>
The little town was dark and asleep when he stepped into the cool
night-air and made his way past the old school-house and up Imboden Hill.
He could see—all shining silver in the moonlight—the still
crest of the big beech at the blessed roots of which his lips had met
June's in the first kiss that had passed between them. On he went through
the shadowy aisle that the path made between other beech-trunks, harnessed
by the moonlight with silver armour and motionless as sentinels on watch
till dawn, out past the amphitheatre of darkness from which the dead trees
tossed out their crooked arms as though voicing silently now his own
soul's torment, and then on to the point of the spur of foot-hills where,
with the mighty mountains encircling him and the world, a dreamland
lighted only by stars, he stripped his soul before the Maker of it and of
him and fought his fight out alone.
</p>
<p>
His was the responsibility for all—his alone. No one else was to
blame—June not at all. He had taken her from her own life—had
swerved her from the way to which God pointed when she was born. He had
given her everything she wanted, had allowed her to do what she pleased
and had let her think that, through his miraculous handling of her
resources, she was doing it all herself. And the result was natural. For
the past two years he had been harassed with debt, racked with worries,
writhing this way and that, concerned only with the soul-tormenting
catastrophe that had overtaken him. About all else he had grown careless.
He had not been to see her the last year, he had written seldom, and it
appalled him to look back now on his own self-absorption and to think how
he must have appeared to June. And he had gone on in that self-absorption
to the very end. He had got his license to marry, had asked Uncle Billy,
who was magistrate as well as miller, to marry them, and, a rough
mountaineer himself to the outward eye, he had appeared to lead a child
like a lamb to the sacrifice and had found a woman with a mind, heart and
purpose of her own. It was all his work. He had sent her away to fit her
for his station in life—to make her fit to marry him. She had risen
above and now HE WAS NOT FIT TO MARRY HER. That was the brutal truth—a
truth that was enough to make a wise man laugh or a fool weep, and Hale
did neither. He simply went on working to make out how he could best
discharge the obligations that he had voluntarily, willingly, gladly,
selfishly even, assumed. In his mind he treated conditions only as he saw
and felt them and believed them at that moment true: and into the problem
he went no deeper than to find his simple duty, and that, while the
morning stars were sinking, he found. And it was a duty the harder to find
because everything had reawakened within him, and the starting-point of
that awakening was the proud glow in Uncle Billy's kind old face, when he
knew the part he was to play in the happiness of Hale and June. All the
way over the mountain that day his heart had gathered fuel from memories
at the big Pine, and down the mountain and through the gap, to be set
aflame by the yellow sunlight in the valley and the throbbing life in
everything that was alive, for the month was June and the spirit of that
month was on her way to him. So when he rose now, with back-thrown head,
he stretched his arms suddenly out toward those far-seeing stars, and as
suddenly dropped them with an angry shake of his head and one quick
gritting of his teeth that such a thought should have mastered him even
for one swift second—the thought of how lonesome would be the trail
that would be his to follow after that day.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0024" id="link2H_4_0024">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXIII
</h2>
<p>
June, tired though she was, tossed restlessly that night. The one look she
had seen in Hale's face when she met him in the car, told her the truth as
far as he was concerned. He was unchanged, she could give him no chance to
withdraw from their long understanding, for it was plain to her quick
instinct that he wanted none. And so she had asked him no question about
his failure to meet her, for she knew now that his reason, no matter what,
was good. He had startled her in the car, for her mind was heavy with
memories of the poor little cabins she had passed on the train, of the
mountain men and women in the wedding-party, and Hale himself was to the
eye so much like one of them—had so startled her that, though she
knew that his instinct, too, was at work, she could not gather herself
together to combat her own feelings, for every little happening in the
dummy but drew her back to her previous train of painful thought. And in
that helplessness she had told Hale good-night. She remembered now how she
had looked upon Lonesome Cove after she went to the Gap; how she had
looked upon the Gap after her year in the Bluegrass, and how she had
looked back even on the first big city she had seen there from the lofty
vantage ground of New York. What was the use of it all? Why laboriously
climb a hill merely to see and yearn for things that you cannot have, if
you must go back and live in the hollow again? Well, she thought
rebelliously, she would not go back to the hollow again—that was
all. She knew what was coming and her cousin Dave's perpetual sneer sprang
suddenly from the past to cut through her again and the old pride rose
within her once more. She was good enough now for Hale, oh, yes, she
thought bitterly, good enough NOW; and then, remembering his life-long
kindness and thinking what she might have been but for him, she burst into
tears at the unworthiness of her own thought. Ah, what should she do—what
should she do? Repeating that question over and over again, she fell
toward morning into troubled sleep. She did not wake until nearly noon,
for already she had formed the habit of sleeping late—late at least,
for that part of the world—and she was glad when the negro boy
brought her word that Mr. Hale had been called up the valley and would not
be back until the afternoon. She dreaded to meet him, for she knew that he
had seen the trouble within her and she knew he was not the kind of man to
let matters drag vaguely, if they could be cleared up and settled by open
frankness of discussion, no matter how blunt he must be. She had to wait
until mid-day dinner time for something to eat, so she lay abed, picked a
breakfast from the menu, which was spotted, dirty and meagre in offerings,
and had it brought to her room. Early in the afternoon she issued forth
into the sunlight, and started toward Imboden Hill. It was very beautiful
and soul-comforting—the warm air, the luxuriantly wooded hills, with
their shades of green that told her where poplar and oak and beech and
maple grew, the delicate haze of blue that overlay them and deepened as
her eyes followed the still mountain piles north-eastward to meet the big
range that shut her in from the outer world. The changes had been many.
One part of the town had been wiped out by fire and a few buildings of
stone had risen up. On the street she saw strange faces, but now and then
she stopped to shake hands with somebody whom she knew, and who recognized
her always with surprise and spoke but few words, and then, as she
thought, with some embarrassment. Half unconsciously she turned toward the
old mill. There it was, dusty and gray, and the dripping old wheel creaked
with its weight of shining water, and the muffled roar of the unseen dam
started an answering stream of memories surging within her. She could see
the window of her room in the old brick boarding-house, and as she passed
the gate, she almost stopped to go in, but the face of a strange man who
stood in the door with a proprietary air deterred her. There was Hale's
little frame cottage and his name, half washed out, was over the wing that
was still his office. Past that she went, with a passing temptation to
look within, and toward the old school-house. A massive new one was half
built, of gray stone, to the left, but the old one, with its shingles on
the outside that had once caused her such wonder, still lay warm in the
sun, but closed and deserted. There was the playground where she had been
caught in "Ring around the Rosy," and Hale and that girl teacher had heard
her confession. She flushed again when she thought of that day, but the
flush was now for another reason. Over the roof of the schoolhouse she
could see the beech tree where she had built her playhouse, and memory led
her from the path toward it. She had not climbed a hill for a long time
and she was panting when she reached it. There was the scattered playhouse—it
might have lain there untouched for a quarter of a century—just as
her angry feet had kicked it to pieces. On a root of the beech she sat
down and the broad rim of her hat scratched the trunk of it and annoyed
her, so she took it off and leaned her head against the tree, looking up
into the underworld of leaves through which a sunbeam filtered here and
there—one striking her hair which had darkened to a duller gold—striking
it eagerly, unerringly, as though it had started for just such a shining
mark. Below her was outspread the little town—the straggling,
wretched little town—crude, lonely, lifeless! She could not be happy
in Lonesome Cove after she had known the Gap, and now her horizon had so
broadened that she felt now toward the Gap and its people as she had then
felt toward the mountaineers: for the standards of living in the Cove—so
it seemed—were no farther below the standards in the Gap than they
in turn were lower than the new standards to which she had adapted herself
while away. Indeed, even that Bluegrass world where she had spent a year
was too narrow now for her vaulting ambition, and with that thought she
looked down again on the little town, a lonely island in a sea of
mountains and as far from the world for which she had been training
herself as though it were in mid-ocean. Live down there? She shuddered at
the thought and straightway was very miserable. The clear piping of a
wood-thrush rose far away, a tear started between her half-closed lashes
and she might have gone to weeping silently, had her ear not caught the
sound of something moving below her. Some one was coming that way, so she
brushed her eyes swiftly with her handkerchief and stood upright against
the tree. And there again Hale found her, tense, upright, bareheaded again
and her hands behind her; only her face was not uplifted and dreaming—it
was turned toward him, unstartled and expectant. He stopped below her and
leaned one shoulder against a tree.
</p>
<p>
"I saw you pass the office," he said, "and I thought I should find you
here."
</p>
<p>
His eyes dropped to the scattered playhouse of long ago—and a faint
smile that was full of submerged sadness passed over his face. It was his
playhouse, after all, that she had kicked to pieces. But he did not
mention it—nor her attitude—nor did he try, in any way, to
arouse her memories of that other time at this same place.
</p>
<p>
"I want to talk with you, June—and I want to talk now."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, Jack," she said tremulously.
</p>
<p>
For a moment he stood in silence, his face half-turned, his teeth hard on
his indrawn lip—thinking. There was nothing of the mountaineer about
him now. He was clean-shaven and dressed with care—June saw that—but
he looked quite old, his face seemed harried with worries and ravaged by
suffering, and June had suddenly to swallow a quick surging of pity for
him. He spoke slowly and without looking at her:
</p>
<p>
"June, if it hadn't been for me, you would be over in Lonesome Cove and
happily married by this time, or at least contented with your life, for
you wouldn't have known any other."
</p>
<p>
"I don't know, Jack."
</p>
<p>
"I took you out—and it rests with you whether I shall be sorry I did—sorry
wholly on your account, I mean," he added hastily.
</p>
<p>
She knew what he meant and she said nothing—she only turned her head
away slightly, with her eyes upturned a little toward the leaves that were
shaking like her own heart.
</p>
<p>
"I think I see it all very clearly," he went on, in a low and perfectly
even voice. "You can't be happy over there now—you can't be happy
over here now. You've got other wishes, ambitions, dreams, now, and I want
you to realize them, and I want to help you to realize them all I can—that's
all."
</p>
<p>
"Jack!—" she helplessly, protestingly spoke his name in a whisper,
but that was all she could do, and he went on:
</p>
<p>
"It isn't so strange. What is strange is that I—that I didn't
foresee it all. But if I had," he added firmly, "I'd have done it just the
same—unless by doing it I've really done you more harm than good."
</p>
<p>
"No—no—Jack!"
</p>
<p>
"I came into your world—you went into mine. What I had grown
indifferent about—you grew to care about. You grew sensitive while I
was growing callous to certain—" he was about to say "surface
things," but he checked himself—"certain things in life that mean
more to a woman than to a man. I would not have married you as you were—I've
got to be honest now—at least I thought it necessary that you should
be otherwise—and now you have gone beyond me, and now you do not
want to marry me as I am. And it is all very natural and very just." Very
slowly her head had dropped until her chin rested hard above the little
jewelled cross on her breast.
</p>
<p>
"You must tell me if I am wrong. You don't love me now—well enough
to be happy with me here"—he waved one hand toward the straggling
little town below them and then toward the lonely mountains—"I did
not know that we would have to live here—but I know it now—"
he checked himself, and afterward she recalled the tone of those last
words, but then they had no especial significance.
</p>
<p>
"Am I wrong?" he repeated, and then he said hurriedly, for her face was so
piteous—"No, you needn't give yourself the pain of saying it in
words. I want you to know that I understand that there is nothing in the
world I blame you for—nothing—nothing. If there is any blame
at all, it rests on me alone." She broke toward him with a cry then.
</p>
<p>
"No—no, Jack," she said brokenly, and she caught his hand in both
her own and tried to raise it to her lips, but he held her back and she
put her face on his breast and sobbed heart-brokenly. He waited for the
paroxysm to pass, stroking her hair gently.
</p>
<p>
"You mustn't feel that way, little girl. You can't help it—I can't
help it—and these things happen all the time, everywhere. You don't
have to stay here. You can go away and study, and when I can, I'll come to
see you and cheer you up; and when you are a great singer, I'll send you
flowers and be so proud of you, and I'll say to myself, 'I helped do
that.' Dry your eyes, now. You must go back to the hotel. Your father will
be there by this time and you'll have to be starting home pretty soon."
</p>
<p>
Like a child she obeyed him, but she was so weak and trembling that he put
his arm about her to help her down the hill. At the edge of the woods she
stopped and turned full toward him.
</p>
<p>
"You are so good," she said tremulously, "so GOOD. Why, you haven't even
asked me if there was another—"
</p>
<p>
Hale interrupted her, shaking his head.
</p>
<p>
"If there is, I don't want to know."
</p>
<p>
"But there isn't, there isn't!" she cried, "I don't know what is the
matter with me. I hate—" the tears started again, and again she was
on the point of breaking down, but Hale checked her.
</p>
<p>
"Now, now," he said soothingly, "you mustn't, now—that's all right.
You mustn't." Her anger at herself helped now.
</p>
<p>
"Why, I stood like a silly fool, tongue-tied, and I wanted to say so much.
I—"
</p>
<p>
"You don't need to," Hale said gently, "I understand it all. I
understand."
</p>
<p>
"I believe you do," she said with a sob, "better than I do."
</p>
<p>
"Well, it's all right, little girl. Come on."
</p>
<p>
They issued forth into the sunlight and Hale walked rapidly. The strain
was getting too much for him and he was anxious to be alone. Without a
word more they passed the old school-house, the massive new one, and went
on, in silence, down the street. Hitched to a post, near the hotel, were
two gaunt horses with drooping heads, and on one of them was a
side-saddle. Sitting on the steps of the hotel, with a pipe in his mouth,
was the mighty figure of Devil Judd Tolliver. He saw them coming—at
least he saw Hale coming, and that far away Hale saw his bushy eyebrows
lift in wonder at June. A moment later he rose to his great height without
a word.
</p>
<p>
"Dad," said June in a trembling voice, "don't you know me?" The old man
stared at her silently and a doubtful smile played about his bearded lips.
</p>
<p>
"Hardly, but I reckon hit's June."
</p>
<p>
She knew that the world to which Hale belonged would expect her to kiss
him, and she made a movement as though she would, but the habit of a
lifetime is not broken so easily. She held out her hand, and with the
other patted him on the arm as she looked up into his face.
</p>
<p>
"Time to be goin', June, if we want to get home afore dark!"
</p>
<p>
"All right, Dad."
</p>
<p>
The old man turned to his horse.
</p>
<p>
"Hurry up, little gal."
</p>
<p>
In a few minutes they were ready, and the girl looked long into Hale's
face when he took her hand.
</p>
<p>
"You are coming over soon?"
</p>
<p>
"Just as soon as I can." Her lips trembled.
</p>
<p>
"Good-by," she faltered.
</p>
<p>
"Good-by, June," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
From the steps he watched them—the giant father slouching in his
saddle and the trim figure of the now sadly misplaced girl, erect on the
awkward-pacing mountain beast—as incongruous, the two, as a fairy on
some prehistoric monster. A horseman was coming up the street behind him
and a voice called:
</p>
<p>
"Who's that?" Hale turned—it was the Honourable Samuel Budd, coming
home from Court.
</p>
<p>
"June Tolliver."
</p>
<p>
"June Taliaferro," corrected the Hon. Sam with emphasis.
</p>
<p>
"The same." The Hon. Sam silently followed the pair for a moment through
his big goggles.
</p>
<p>
"What do you think of my theory of the latent possibilities of the
mountaineer—now?"
</p>
<p>
"I think I know how true it is better than you do," said Hale calmly, and
with a grunt the Hon. Sam rode on. Hale watched them as they rode across
the plateau—watched them until the Gap swallowed them up and his
heart ached for June. Then he went to his room and there, stretched out on
his bed and with his hands clenched behind his head, he lay staring
upward.
</p>
<p>
Devil Judd Tolliver had lost none of his taciturnity. Stolidly, silently,
he went ahead, as is the custom of lordly man in the mountains—horseback
or afoot—asking no questions, answering June's in the fewest words
possible. Uncle Billy, the miller, had been complaining a good deal that
spring, and old Hon had rheumatism. Uncle Billy's old-maid sister, who
lived on Devil's Fork, had been cooking for him at home since the last
taking to bed of June's step-mother. Bub had "growed up" like a hickory
sapling. Her cousin Loretta hadn't married, and some folks allowed she'd
run away some day yet with young Buck Falin. Her cousin Dave had gone off
to school that year, had come back a month before, and been shot through
the shoulder. He was in Lonesome Cove now.
</p>
<p>
This fact was mentioned in the same matter-of-fact way as the other
happenings. Hale had been raising Cain in Lonesome Cove—"A-cuttin'
things down an' tearin' 'em up an' playin' hell ginerally."
</p>
<p>
The feud had broken out again and maybe June couldn't stay at home long.
He didn't want her there with the fighting going on—whereat June's
heart gave a start of gladness that the way would be easy for her to leave
when she wished to leave. Things over at the Gap "was agoin' to
perdition," the old man had been told, while he was waiting for June and
Hale that day, and Hale had not only lost a lot of money, but if things
didn't take a rise, he would be left head over heels in debt, if that mine
over in Lonesome Cove didn't pull him out.
</p>
<p>
They were approaching the big Pine now, and June was beginning to ache and
get sore from the climb. So Hale was in trouble—that was what he
meant when he said that, though she could leave the mountains when she
pleased, he must stay there, perhaps for good.
</p>
<p>
"I'm mighty glad you come home, gal," said the old man, "an' that ye air
goin' to put an end to all this spendin' o' so much money. Jack says you
got some money left, but I don't understand it. He says he made a
'investment' fer ye and tribbled the money. I haint never axed him no
questions. Hit was betwixt you an' him, an' 'twant none o' my business
long as you an' him air goin' to marry. He said you was goin' to marry
this summer an' I wish you'd git tied up right away whilst I'm livin', fer
I don't know when a Winchester might take me off an' I'd die a sight
easier if I knowed you was tied up with a good man like him."
</p>
<p>
"Yes, Dad," was all she said, for she had not the heart to tell him the
truth, and she knew that Hale never would until the last moment he must,
when he learned that she had failed.
</p>
<p>
Half an hour later, she could see the stone chimney of the little cabin in
Lonesome Cove. A little farther down several spirals of smoke were visible—rising
from unseen houses which were more miners' shacks, her father said, that
Hale had put up while she was gone. The water of the creek was jet black
now. A row of rough wooden houses ran along its edge. The geese cackled a
doubtful welcome. A new dog leaped barking from the porch and a tall boy
sprang after him—both running for the gate.
</p>
<p>
"Why, Bub," cried June, sliding from her horse and kissing him, and then
holding him off at arms' length to look into his steady gray eyes and his
blushing face.
</p>
<p>
"Take the horses, Bub," said old Judd, and June entered the gate while Bub
stood with the reins in his hand, still speechlessly staring her over from
head to foot. There was her garden, thank God—with all her flowers
planted, a new bed of pansies and one of violets and the border of laurel
in bloom—unchanged and weedless.
</p>
<p>
"One o' Jack Hale's men takes keer of it," explained old Judd, and again,
with shame, June felt the hurt of her lover's thoughtfulness. When she
entered the cabin, the same old rasping petulant voice called her from a
bed in one corner, and when June took the shrivelled old hand that was
limply thrust from the bed-clothes, the old hag's keen eyes swept her from
head to foot with disapproval.
</p>
<p>
"My, but you air wearin' mighty fine clothes," she croaked enviously. "I
ain't had a new dress fer more'n five year;" and that was the welcome she
got.
</p>
<p>
"No?" said June appeasingly. "Well, I'll get one for you myself."
</p>
<p>
"I'm much obleeged," she whined, "but I reckon I can git along."
</p>
<p>
A cough came from the bed in the other corner of the room.
</p>
<p>
"That's Dave," said the old woman, and June walked over to where her
cousin's black eyes shone hostile at her from the dark.
</p>
<p>
"I'm sorry, Dave," she said, but Dave answered nothing but a sullen
"howdye" and did not put out a hand—he only stared at her in sulky
bewilderment, and June went back to listen to the torrent of the old
woman's plaints until Bub came in. Then as she turned, she noticed for the
first time that a new door had been cut in one side of the cabin, and Bub
was following the direction of her eyes.
</p>
<p>
"Why, haint nobody told ye?" he said delightedly.
</p>
<p>
"Told me what, Bub?"
</p>
<p>
With a whoop Bud leaped for the side of the door and, reaching up, pulled
a shining key from between the logs and thrust it into her hands.
</p>
<p>
"Go ahead," he said. "Hit's yourn."
</p>
<p>
"Some more o' Jack Hale's fool doin's," said the old woman. "Go on, gal,
and see whut he's done."
</p>
<p>
With eager hands she put the key in the lock and when she pushed open the
door, she gasped. Another room had been added to the cabin—and the
fragrant smell of cedar made her nostrils dilate. Bub pushed by her and
threw open the shutters of a window to the low sunlight, and June stood
with both hands to her head. It was a room for her—with a dresser, a
long mirror, a modern bed in one corner, a work-table with a student's
lamp on it, a wash-stand and a chest of drawers and a piano! On the walls
were pictures and over the mantel stood the one she had first learned to
love—two lovers clasped in each other's arms and under them the
words "Enfin Seul."
</p>
<p>
"Oh-oh," was all she could say, and choking, she motioned Bub from the
room. When the door closed, she threw herself sobbing across the bed.
</p>
<p>
Over at the Gap that night Hale sat in his office with a piece of white
paper and a lump of black coal on the table in front of him. His foreman
had brought the coal to him that day at dusk. He lifted the lump to the
light of his lamp, and from the centre of it a mocking evil eye leered
back at him. The eye was a piece of shining black flint and told him that
his mine in Lonesome Cove was but a pocket of cannel coal and worth no
more than the smouldering lumps in his grate. Then he lifted the piece of
white paper—it was his license to marry June.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0025" id="link2H_4_0025">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXIV
</h2>
<p>
Very slowly June walked up the little creek to the old log where she had
lain so many happy hours. There was no change in leaf, shrub or tree, and
not a stone in the brook had been disturbed. The sun dropped the same
arrows down through the leaves—blunting their shining points into
tremulous circles on the ground, the water sang the same happy tune under
her dangling feet and a wood-thrush piped the old lay overhead.
</p>
<p>
Wood-thrush! June smiled as she suddenly rechristened the bird for herself
now. That bird henceforth would be the Magic Flute to musical June—and
she leaned back with ears, eyes and soul awake and her brain busy.
</p>
<p>
All the way over the mountain, on that second home-going, she had thought
of the first, and even memories of the memories aroused by that first
home-going came back to her—the place where Hale had put his horse
into a dead run and had given her that never-to-be-forgotten thrill, and
where she had slid from behind to the ground and stormed with tears. When
they dropped down into the green gloom of shadow and green leaves toward
Lonesome Cove, she had the same feeling that her heart was being clutched
by a human hand and that black night had suddenly fallen about her, but
this time she knew what it meant. She thought then of the crowded
sleeping-room, the rough beds and coarse blankets at home; the oil-cloth,
spotted with drippings from a candle, that covered the table; the thick
plates and cups; the soggy bread and the thick bacon floating in grease;
the absence of napkins, the eating with knives and fingers and the noise
Bub and her father made drinking their coffee. But then she knew all these
things in advance, and the memories of them on her way over had prepared
her for Lonesome Cove. The conditions were definite there: she knew what
it would be to face them again—she was facing them all the way, and
to her surprise the realities had hurt her less even than they had before.
Then had come the same thrill over the garden, and now with that garden
and her new room and her piano and her books, with Uncle Billy's sister to
help do the work, and with the little changes that June was daily making
in the household, she could live her own life even over there as long as
she pleased, and then she would go out into the world again.
</p>
<p>
But all the time when she was coming over from the Gap, the way had
bristled with accusing memories of Hale—even from the chattering
creeks, the turns in the road, the sun-dappled bushes and trees and
flowers; and when she passed the big Pine that rose with such friendly
solemnity above her, the pang of it all hurt her heart and kept on hurting
her. When she walked in the garden, the flowers seemed not to have the
same spirit of gladness. It had been a dry season and they drooped for
that reason, but the melancholy of them had a sympathetic human quality
that depressed her. If she saw a bass shoot arrow-like into deep water, if
she heard a bird or saw a tree or a flower whose name she had to recall,
she thought of Hale. Do what she would, she could not escape the ghost
that stalked at her side everywhere, so like a human presence that she
felt sometimes a strange desire to turn and speak to it. And in her room
that presence was all-pervasive. The piano, the furniture, the bits of
bric-a-brac, the pictures and books—all were eloquent with his
thought of her—and every night before she turned out her light she
could not help lifting her eyes to her once-favourite picture—even
that Hale had remembered—the lovers clasped in each other's arms—"At
Last Alone"—only to see it now as a mocking symbol of his beaten
hopes. She had written to thank him for it all, and not yet had he
answered her letter. He had said that he was coming over to Lonesome Cove
and he had not come—why should he, on her account? Between them all
was over—why should he? The question was absurd in her mind, and yet
the fact that she had expected him, that she so WANTED him, was so
illogical and incongruous and vividly true that it raised her to a sitting
posture on the log, and she ran her fingers over her forehead and down her
dazed face until her chin was in the hollow of her hand, and her startled
eyes were fixed unwaveringly on the running water and yet not seeing it at
all. A call—her step-mother's cry—rang up the ravine and she
did not hear it. She did not even hear Bub coming through the underbrush a
few minutes later, and when he half angrily shouted her name at the end of
the vista, down-stream, whence he could see her, she lifted her head from
a dream so deep that in it all her senses had for the moment been wholly
lost.
</p>
<p>
"Come on," he shouted.
</p>
<p>
She had forgotten—there was a "bean-stringing" at the house that day—and
she slipped slowly off the log and went down the path, gathering herself
together as she went, and making no answer to the indignant Bub who turned
and stalked ahead of her back to the house. At the barnyard gate her
father stopped her—he looked worried.
</p>
<p>
"Jack Hale's jus' been over hyeh." June caught her breath sharply.
</p>
<p>
"Has he gone?" The old man was watching her and she felt it.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, he was in a hurry an' nobody knowed whar you was. He jus' come over,
he said, to tell me to tell you that you could go back to New York and
keep on with yo' singin' doin's whenever you please. He knowed I didn't
want you hyeh when this war starts fer a finish as hit's goin' to, mighty
soon now. He says he ain't quite ready to git married yit. I'm afeerd he's
in trouble."
</p>
<p>
"Trouble?"
</p>
<p>
"I tol' you t'other day—he's lost all his money; but he says you've
got enough to keep you goin' fer some time. I don't see why you don't git
married right now and live over at the Gap."
</p>
<p>
June coloured and was silent.
</p>
<p>
"Oh," said the old man quickly, "you ain't ready nuther,"—he studied
her with narrowing eyes and through a puzzled frown—"but I reckon
hit's all right, if you air goin' to git married some time."
</p>
<p>
"What's all right, Dad?" The old man checked himself:
</p>
<p>
"Ever' thing," he said shortly, "but don't you make a fool of yo'self with
a good man like Jack Hale." And, wondering, June was silent. The truth was
that the old man had wormed out of Hale an admission of the kindly
duplicity the latter had practised on him and on June, and he had given
his word to Hale that he would not tell June. He did not understand why
Hale should have so insisted on that promise, for it was all right that
Hale should openly do what he pleased for the girl he was going to marry—but
he had given his word: so he turned away, but his frown stayed where it
was.
</p>
<p>
June went on, puzzled, for she knew that her father was withholding
something, and she knew, too, that he would tell her only in his own good
time. But she could go away when she pleased—that was the comfort—and
with the thought she stopped suddenly at the corner of the garden. She
could see Hale on his big black horse climbing the spur. Once it had
always been his custom to stop on top of it to rest his horse and turn to
look back at her, and she always waited to wave him good-by. She wondered
if he would do it now, and while she looked and waited, the beating of her
heart quickened nervously; but he rode straight on, without stopping or
turning his head, and June felt strangely bereft and resentful, and the
comfort of the moment before was suddenly gone. She could hear the voices
of the guests in the porch around the corner of the house—there was
an ordeal for her around there, and she went on. Loretta and Loretta's
mother were there, and old Hon and several wives and daughters of Tolliver
adherents from up Deadwood Creek and below Uncle Billy's mill. June knew
that the "bean-stringing" was simply an excuse for them to be there, for
she could not remember that so many had ever gathered there before—at
that function in the spring, at corn-cutting in the autumn, or
sorghum-making time or at log-raisings or quilting parties, and she well
knew the motive of these many and the curiosity of all save, perhaps,
Loretta and the old miller's wife: and June was prepared for them. She had
borrowed a gown from her step-mother—a purple creation of home-spun—she
had shaken down her beautiful hair and drawn it low over her brows, and
arranged it behind after the fashion of mountain women, and when she went
up the steps of the porch she was outwardly to the eye one of them except
for the leathern belt about her slenderly full waist, her black silk
stockings and the little "furrin" shoes on her dainty feet. She smiled
inwardly when she saw the same old wave of disappointment sweep across the
faces of them all. It was not necessary to shake hands, but unthinkingly
she did, and the women sat in their chairs as she went from one to the
other and each gave her a limp hand and a grave "howdye," though each paid
an unconscious tribute to a vague something about her, by wiping that hand
on an apron first. Very quietly and naturally she took a low chair, piled
beans in her lap and, as one of them, went to work. Nobody looked at her
at first until old Hon broke the silence.
</p>
<p>
"You haint lost a spec o' yo' good looks, Juny."
</p>
<p>
June laughed without a flush—she would have reddened to the roots of
her hair two years before.
</p>
<p>
"I'm feelin' right peart, thank ye," she said, dropping consciously into
the vernacular; but there was a something in her voice that was vaguely
felt by all as a part of the universal strangeness that was in her erect
bearing, her proud head, her deep eyes that looked so straight into their
own—a strangeness that was in that belt and those stockings and
those shoes, inconspicuous as they were, to which she saw every eye in
time covertly wandering as to tangible symbols of a mystery that was
beyond their ken. Old Hon and the step-mother alone talked at first, and
the others, even Loretta, said never a word.
</p>
<p>
"Jack Hale must have been in a mighty big hurry," quavered the old
step-mother. "June ain't goin' to be with us long, I'm afeerd:" and,
without looking up, June knew the wireless significance of the speech was
going around from eye to eye, but calmly she pulled her thread through a
green pod and said calmly, with a little enigmatical shake of her head:
</p>
<p>
"I—don't know—I don't know."
</p>
<p>
Young Dave's mother was encouraged and all her efforts at good-humour
could not quite draw the sting of a spiteful plaint from her voice.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon she'd never git away, if my boy Dave had the sayin' of it."
There was a subdued titter at this, but Bub had come in from the stable
and had dropped on the edge of the porch. He broke in hotly:
</p>
<p>
"You jest let June alone, Aunt Tilly, you'll have yo' hands full if you
keep yo' eye on Loretty thar."
</p>
<p>
Already when somebody was saying something about the feud, as June came
around the corner, her quick eye had seen Loretta bend her head swiftly
over her work to hide the flush of her face. Now Loretta turned scarlet as
the step-mother spoke severely:
</p>
<p>
"You hush, Bub," and Bub rose and stalked into the house. Aunt Tilly was
leaning back in her chair—gasping—and consternation smote the
group. June rose suddenly with her string of dangling beans.
</p>
<p>
"I haven't shown you my room, Loretty. Don't you want to see it? Come on,
all of you," she added to the girls, and they and Loretta with one swift
look of gratitude rose shyly and trooped shyly within where they looked in
wide-mouthed wonder at the marvellous things that room contained. The
older women followed to share sight of the miracle, and all stood looking
from one thing to another, some with their hands behind them as though to
thwart the temptation to touch, and all saying merely:
</p>
<p>
"My! My!"
</p>
<p>
None of them had ever seen a piano before and June must play the "shiny
contraption" and sing a song. It was only curiosity and astonishment that
she evoked when her swift fingers began running over the keys from one end
of the board to the other, astonishment at the gymnastic quality of the
performance, and only astonishment when her lovely voice set the very
walls of the little room to vibrating with a dramatic love song that was
about as intelligible to them as a problem in calculus, and June flushed
and then smiled with quick understanding at the dry comment that rose from
Aunt Tilly behind:
</p>
<p>
"She shorely can holler some!"
</p>
<p>
She couldn't play "Sourwood Mountain" on the piano—nor "Jinny git
Aroun'," nor "Soapsuds over the Fence," but with a sudden inspiration she
went back to an old hymn that they all knew, and at the end she won the
tribute of an awed silence that made them file back to the beans on the
porch. Loretta lingered a moment and when June closed the piano and the
two girls went into the main room, a tall figure, entering, stopped in the
door and stared at June without speaking:
</p>
<p>
"Why, howdye, Uncle Rufe," said Loretta. "This is June. You didn't know
her, did ye?" The man laughed. Something in June's bearing made him take
off his hat; he came forward to shake hands, and June looked up into a
pair of bold black eyes that stirred within her again the vague fears of
her childhood. She had been afraid of him when she was a child, and it was
the old fear aroused that made her recall him by his eyes now. His beard
was gone and he was much changed. She trembled when she shook hands with
him and she did not call him by his name Old Judd came in, and a moment
later the two men and Bub sat on the porch while the women worked, and
when June rose again to go indoors, she felt the newcomer's bold eyes take
her slowly in from head to foot and she turned crimson. This was the
terror among the Tollivers—Bad Rufe, come back from the West to take
part in the feud. HE saw the belt and the stockings and the shoes, the
white column of her throat and the proud set of her gold-crowned head; HE
knew what they meant, he made her feel that he knew, and later he managed
to catch her eyes once with an amused, half-contemptuous glance at the
simple untravelled folk about them, that said plainly how well he knew
they two were set apart from them, and she shrank fearfully from the
comradeship that the glance implied and would look at him no more. He knew
everything that was going on in the mountains. He had come back "ready for
business," he said. When he made ready to go, June went to her room and
stayed there, but she heard him say to her father that he was going over
to the Gap, and with a laugh that chilled her soul:
</p>
<p>
"I'm goin' over to kill me a policeman." And her father warned gruffly:
</p>
<p>
"You better keep away from thar. You don't understand them fellers." And
she heard Rufe's brutal laugh again, and as he rode into the creek his
horse stumbled and she saw him cut cruelly at the poor beast's ears with
the rawhide quirt that he carried. She was glad when all went home, and
the only ray of sunlight in the day for her radiated from Uncle Billy's
face when, at sunset, he came to take old Hon home. The old miller was the
one unchanged soul to her in that he was the one soul that could see no
change in June. He called her "baby" in the old way, and he talked to her
now as he had talked to her as a child. He took her aside to ask her if
she knew that Hale had got his license to marry, and when she shook her
head, his round, red face lighted up with the benediction of a rising sun:
</p>
<p>
"Well, that's what he's done, baby, an' he's axed me to marry ye," he
added, with boyish pride, "he's axed ME."
</p>
<p>
And June choked, her eyes filled, and she was dumb, but Uncle Billy could
not see that it meant distress and not joy. He just put his arm around her
and whispered:
</p>
<p>
"I ain't told a soul, baby—not a soul."
</p>
<p>
She went to bed and to sleep with Hale's face in the dream-mist of her
brain, and Uncle Billy's, and the bold, black eyes of Bad Rufe Tolliver—all
fused, blurred, indistinguishable. Then suddenly Rufe's words struck that
brain, word by word, like the clanging terror of a frightened bell.
</p>
<p>
"I'm goin' to kill me a policeman." And with the last word, it seemed, she
sprang upright in bed, clutching the coverlid convulsively. Daylight was
showing gray through her window. She heard a swift step up the steps,
across the porch, the rattle of the door-chain, her father's quick call,
then the rumble of two men's voices, and she knew as well what had
happened as though she had heard every word they uttered. Rufe had killed
him a policeman—perhaps John Hale—and with terror clutching
her heart she sprang to the floor, and as she dropped the old purple gown
over her shoulders, she heard the scurry of feet across the back porch—feet
that ran swiftly but cautiously, and left the sound of them at the edge of
the woods. She heard the back door close softly, the creaking of the bed
as her father lay down again, and then a sudden splashing in the creek.
Kneeling at the window, she saw strange horsemen pushing toward the gate
where one threw himself from his saddle, strode swiftly toward the steps,
and her lips unconsciously made soft, little, inarticulate cries of joy—for
the stern, gray face under the hat of the man was the face of John Hale.
After him pushed other men—fully armed—whom he motioned to
either side of the cabin to the rear. By his side was Bob Berkley, and
behind him was a red-headed Falin whom she well remembered. Within twenty
feet, she was looking into that gray face, when the set lips of it opened
in a loud command: "Hello!" She heard her father's bed creak again, again
the rattle of the door-chain, and then old Judd stepped on the porch with
a revolver in each hand.
</p>
<p>
"Hello!" he answered sternly.
</p>
<p>
"Judd," said Hale sharply—and June had never heard that tone from
him before—"a man with a black moustache killed one of our men over
in the Gap yesterday and we've tracked him over here. There's his horse—and
we saw him go into that door. We want him."
</p>
<p>
"Do you know who the feller is?" asked old Judd calmly.
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale quickly. And then, with equal calm:
</p>
<p>
"Hit was my brother," and the old man's mouth closed like a vise. Had the
last word been a stone striking his ear, Hale could hardly have been more
stunned. Again he called and almost gently:
</p>
<p>
"Watch the rear, there," and then gently he turned to Devil Judd.
</p>
<p>
"Judd, your brother shot a man at the Gap—without excuse or warning.
He was an officer and a friend of mine, but if he were a stranger—we
want him just the same. Is he here?"
</p>
<p>
Judd looked at the red-headed man behind Hale.
</p>
<p>
"So you're turned on the Falin side now, have ye?" he said contemptuously.
</p>
<p>
"Is he here?" repeated Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, an' you can't have him." Without a move toward his pistol Hale
stepped forward, and June saw her father's big right hand tighten on his
huge pistol, and with a low cry she sprang to her feet.
</p>
<p>
"I'm an officer of the law," Hale said, "stand aside, Judd!" Bub leaped to
the door with a Winchester—his eyes wild and his face white.
</p>
<p>
"Watch out, men!" Hale called, and as the men raised their guns there was
a shriek inside the cabin and June stood at Bub's side, barefooted, her
hair tumbled about her shoulders, and her hand clutching the little cross
at her throat.
</p>
<p>
"Stop!" she shrieked. "He isn't here. He's—he's gone!" For a moment
a sudden sickness smote Hale's face, then Devil Judd's ruse flashed to him
and, wheeling, he sprang to the ground.
</p>
<p>
"Quick!" he shouted, with a sweep of his hand right and left. "Up those
hollows! Lead those horses up to the Pine and wait. Quick!"
</p>
<p>
Already the men were running as he directed and Hale, followed by Bob and
the Falin, rushed around the corner of the house. Old Judd's nostrils were
quivering, and with his pistols dangling in his hands he walked to the
gate, listening to the sounds of the pursuit.
</p>
<p>
"They'll never ketch him," he said, coming back, and then he dropped into
a chair and sat in silence a long time. June reappeared, her face still
white and her temples throbbing, for the sun was rising on days of
darkness for her. Devil Judd did not even look at her.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you ain't goin' to marry John Hale."
</p>
<p>
"No, Dad," said June.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0026" id="link2H_4_0026">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXV
</h2>
<p>
Thus Fate did not wait until Election Day for the thing Hale most dreaded—a
clash that would involve the guard in the Tolliver-Falin troubles over the
hills. There had been simply a preliminary political gathering at the Gap
the day before, but it had been a crucial day for the guard from a cloudy
sunrise to a tragic sunset. Early that morning, Mockaby, the
town-sergeant, had stepped into the street freshly shaven, with polished
boots, and in his best clothes for the eyes of his sweetheart, who was to
come up that day to the Gap from Lee. Before sunset he died with those
boots on, while the sweetheart, unknowing, was bound on her happy way
homeward, and Rufe Tolliver, who had shot Mockaby, was clattering through
the Gap in flight for Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
As far as anybody knew, there had been but one Tolliver and one Falin in
town that day, though many had noticed the tall Western-looking stranger
who, early in the afternoon, had ridden across the bridge over the North
Fork, but he was quiet and well-behaved, he merged into the crowd and
through the rest of the afternoon was in no way conspicuous, even when the
one Tolliver and the one Falin got into a fight in front of the speaker's
stand and the riot started which came near ending in a bloody battle. The
Falin was clearly blameless and was let go at once. This angered the many
friends of the Tolliver, and when he was arrested there was an attempt at
rescue, and the Tolliver was dragged to the calaboose behind a slowly
retiring line of policemen, who were jabbing the rescuers back with the
muzzles of cocked Winchesters. It was just when it was all over, and the
Tolliver was safely jailed, that Bad Rufe galloped up to the calaboose,
shaking with rage, for he had just learned that the prisoner was a
Tolliver. He saw how useless interference was, but he swung from his
horse, threw the reins over its head after the Western fashion and strode
up to Hale.
</p>
<p>
"You the captain of this guard?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale; "and you?" Rufe shook his head with angry impatience,
and Hale, thinking he had some communication to make, ignored his refusal
to answer.
</p>
<p>
"I hear that a fellow can't blow a whistle or holler, or shoot off his
pistol in this town without gittin' arrested."
</p>
<p>
"That's true—why?" Rufe's black eyes gleamed vindictively.
</p>
<p>
"Nothin'," he said, and he turned to his horse.
</p>
<p>
Ten minutes later, as Mockaby was passing down the dummy track, a whistle
was blown on the river bank, a high yell was raised, a pistol shot quickly
followed and he started for the sound of them on a run. A few minutes
later three more pistol shots rang out, and Hale rushed to the river bank
to find Mockaby stretched out on the ground, dying, and a mountaineer lout
pointing after a man on horseback, who was making at a swift gallop for
the mouth of the gap and the hills.
</p>
<p>
"He done it," said the lout in a frightened way; "but I don't know who he
was."
</p>
<p>
Within half an hour ten horsemen were clattering after the murderer,
headed by Hale, Logan, and the Infant of the Guard. Where the road forked,
a woman with a child in her arms said she had seen a tall, black-eyed man
with a black moustache gallop up the right fork. She no more knew who he
was than any of the pursuers. Three miles up that fork they came upon a
red-headed man leading his horse from a mountaineer's yard.
</p>
<p>
"He went up the mountain," the red-haired man said, pointing to the trail
of the Lonesome Pine. "He's gone over the line. Whut's he done—killed
somebody?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale shortly, starting up his horse.
</p>
<p>
"I wish I'd a-knowed you was atter him. I'm sheriff over thar."
</p>
<p>
Now they were without warrant or requisition, and Hale, pulling in, said
sharply:
</p>
<p>
"We want that fellow. He killed a man at the Gap. If we catch him over the
line, we want you to hold him for us. Come along!" The red-headed sheriff
sprang on his horse and grinned eagerly:
</p>
<p>
"I'm your man."
</p>
<p>
"Who was that fellow?" asked Hale as they galloped. The sheriff denied
knowledge with a shake of his head.
</p>
<p>
"What's your name?" The sheriff looked sharply at him for the effect of
his answer.
</p>
<p>
"Jim Falin." And Hale looked sharply back at him. He was one of the Falins
who long, long ago had gone to the Gap for young Dave Tolliver, and now
the Falin grinned at Hale.
</p>
<p>
"I know you—all right." No wonder the Falin chuckled at this
Heaven-born chance to get a Tolliver into trouble.
</p>
<p>
At the Lonesome Pine the traces of the fugitive's horse swerved along the
mountain top—the shoe of the right forefoot being broken in half.
That swerve was a blind and the sheriff knew it, but he knew where Rufe
Tolliver would go and that there would be plenty of time to get him.
Moreover, he had a purpose of his own and a secret fear that it might be
thwarted, so, without a word, he followed the trail till darkness hid it
and they had to wait until the moon rose. Then as they started again, the
sheriff said:
</p>
<p>
"Wait a minute," and plunged down the mountain side on foot. A few minutes
later he hallooed for Hale, and down there showed him the tracks doubling
backward along a foot-path.
</p>
<p>
"Regular rabbit, ain't he?" chuckled the sheriff, and back they went to
the trail again on which two hundred yards below the Pine they saw the
tracks pointing again to Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
On down the trail they went, and at the top of the spur that overlooked
Lonesome Cove, the Falin sheriff pulled in suddenly and got off his horse.
There the tracks swerved again into the bushes.
</p>
<p>
"He's goin' to wait till daylight, fer fear somebody's follered him. He'll
come in back o' Devil Judd's."
</p>
<p>
"How do you know he's going to Devil Judd's?" asked Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Whar else would he go?" asked the Falin with a sweep of his arm toward
the moonlit wilderness. "Thar ain't but one house that way fer ten miles—and
nobody lives thar."
</p>
<p>
"How do you know that he's going to any house?" asked Hale impatiently.
"He may be getting out of the mountains."
</p>
<p>
"D'you ever know a feller to leave these mountains jus' because he'd
killed a man? How'd you foller him at night? How'd you ever ketch him with
his start? What'd he turn that way fer, if he wasn't goin' to Judd's—why
d'n't he keep on down the river? If he's gone, he's gone. If he ain't,
he'll be at Devil Judd's at daybreak if he ain't thar now."
</p>
<p>
"What do you want to do?"
</p>
<p>
"Go on down with the hosses, hide 'em in the bushes an' wait."
</p>
<p>
"Maybe he's already heard us coming down the mountain."
</p>
<p>
"That's the only thing I'm afeerd of," said the Falin calmly. "But whut
I'm tellin' you's our only chance."
</p>
<p>
"How do you know he won't hear us going down? Why not leave the horses?"
</p>
<p>
"We might need the hosses, and hit's mud and sand all the way—you
ought to know that."
</p>
<p>
Hale did know that; so on they went quietly and hid their horses aside
from the road near the place where Hale had fished when he first went to
Lonesome Cove. There the Falin disappeared on foot.
</p>
<p>
"Do you trust him?" asked Hale, turning to Budd, and Budd laughed.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you can trust a Falin against a friend of a Tolliver, or t'other
way round—any time." Within half an hour the Falin came back with
the news that there were no signs that the fugitive had yet come in.
</p>
<p>
"No use surrounding the house now," he said, "he might see one of us first
when he comes in an' git away. We'll do that atter daylight."
</p>
<p>
And at daylight they saw the fugitive ride out of the woods at the back of
the house and boldly around to the front of the house, where he left his
horse in the yard and disappeared.
</p>
<p>
"Now send three men to ketch him if he runs out the back way—quick!"
said the Falin. "Hit'll take 'em twenty minutes to git thar through the
woods. Soon's they git thar, let one of 'em shoot his pistol off an'
that'll be the signal fer us."
</p>
<p>
The three men started swiftly, but the pistol shot came before they had
gone a hundred yards, for one of the three—a new man and
unaccustomed to the use of fire-arms, stumbled over a root while he was
seeing that his pistol was in order and let it go off accidentally.
</p>
<p>
"No time to waste now," the Falin called sharply. "Git on yo' hosses and
git!" Then the rush was made and when they gave up the chase at noon that
day, the sheriff looked Hale squarely in the eye when Hale sharply asked
him a question:
</p>
<p>
"Why didn't you tell me who that man was?"
</p>
<p>
"Because I was afeerd you wouldn't go to Devil Judd's atter him. I know
better now," and he shook his head, for he did not understand. And so Hale
at the head of the disappointed Guard went back to the Gap, and when, next
day, they laid Mockaby away in the thinly populated little graveyard that
rested in the hollow of the river's arm, the spirit of law and order in
the heart of every guard gave way to the spirit of revenge, and the grass
would grow under the feet of none until Rufe Tolliver was caught and the
death-debt of the law was paid with death.
</p>
<p>
That purpose was no less firm in the heart of Hale, and he turned away
from the grave, sick with the trick that Fate had lost no time in playing
him; for he was a Falin now in the eyes of both factions and an enemy—even
to June.
</p>
<p>
The weeks dragged slowly along, and June sank slowly toward the depths
with every fresh realization of the trap of circumstance into which she
had fallen. She had dim memories of just such a state of affairs when she
was a child, for the feud was on now and the three things that governed
the life of the cabin in Lonesome Cove were hate, caution, and fear.
</p>
<p>
Bub and her father worked in the fields with their Winchesters close at
hand, and June was never easy if they were outside the house. If somebody
shouted "hello"—that universal hail of friend or enemy in the
mountains—from the gate after dark, one or the other would go out
the back door and answer from the shelter of the corner of the house.
Neither sat by the light of the fire where he could be seen through the
window nor carried a candle from one room to the other. And when either
rode down the river, June must ride behind him to prevent ambush from the
bushes, for no Kentucky mountaineer, even to kill his worst enemy, will
risk harming a woman. Sometimes Loretta would come and spend the day, and
she seemed little less distressed than June. Dave was constantly in and
out, and several times June had seen the Red Fox hanging around. Always
the talk was of the feud. The killing of this Tolliver and of that long
ago was rehearsed over and over; all the wrongs the family had suffered at
the hands of the Falins were retold, and in spite of herself June felt the
old hatred of her childhood reawakening against them so fiercely that she
was startled: and she knew that if she were a man she would be as ready
now to take up a Winchester against the Falins as though she had known no
other life.
</p>
<p>
Loretta got no comfort from her in her tentative efforts to talk of Buck
Falin, and once, indeed, June gave her a scathing rebuke. With every day
her feeling for her father and Bub was knit a little more closely, and
toward Dave grew a little more kindly. She had her moods even against
Hale, but they always ended in a storm of helpless tears. Her father said
little of Hale, but that little was enough. Young Dave was openly exultant
when he heard of the favouritism shown a Falin by the Guard at the Gap,
the effort Hale had made to catch Rufe Tolliver and his well-known purpose
yet to capture him; for the Guard maintained a fund for the arrest and
prosecution of criminals, and the reward it offered for Rufe, dead or
alive, was known by everybody on both sides of the State line. For nearly
a week no word was heard of the fugitive, and then one night, after
supper, while June was sitting at the fire, the back door was opened, Rufe
slid like a snake within, and when June sprang to her feet with a sharp
cry of terror, he gave his brutal laugh:
</p>
<p>
"Don't take much to skeer you—does it?" Shuddering she felt his evil
eyes sweep her from head to foot, for the beast within was always
unleashed and ever ready to spring, and she dropped back into her seat,
speechless. Young Dave, entering from the kitchen, saw Rufe's look and the
hostile lightning of his own eyes flashed at his foster-uncle, who knew
straightway that he must not for his own safety strain the boy's jealousy
too far.
</p>
<p>
"You oughtn't to 'a' done it, Rufe," said old Judd a little later, and he
shook his head. Again Rufe laughed:
</p>
<p>
"No—" he said with a quick pacificatory look to young Dave, "not to
HIM!" The swift gritting of Dave's teeth showed that he knew what was
meant, and without warning the instinct of a protecting tigress leaped
within June. She had seen and had been grateful for the look Dave gave the
outlaw, but without a word she rose new and went to her own room. While
she sat at her window, her step-mother came out the back door and left it
open for a moment. Through it June could hear the talk:
</p>
<p>
"No," said her father, "she ain't goin' to marry him." Dave grunted and
Rufe's voice came again:
</p>
<p>
"Ain't no danger, I reckon, of her tellin' on me?"
</p>
<p>
"No," said her father gruffly, and the door banged.
</p>
<p>
No, thought June, she wouldn't, even without her father's trust, though
she loathed the man, and he was the only thing on earth of which she was
afraid—that was the miracle of it and June wondered. She was a
Tolliver and the clan loyalty of a century forbade—that was all. As
she rose she saw a figure skulking past the edge of the woods. She called
Bub in and told him about it, and Rufe stayed at the cabin all night, but
June did not see him next morning, and she kept out of his way whenever he
came again. A few nights later the Red Fox slouched up to the cabin with
some herbs for the step-mother. Old Judd eyed him askance.
</p>
<p>
"Lookin' fer that reward, Red?" The old man had no time for the meek reply
that was on his lips, for the old woman spoke up sharply:
</p>
<p>
"You let Red alone, Judd—I tol' him to come." And the Red Fox stayed
to supper, and when Rufe left the cabin that night, a bent figure with a
big rifle and in moccasins sneaked after him.
</p>
<p>
The next night there was a tap on Hale's window just at his bedside, and
when he looked out he saw the Red Fox's big rifle, telescope, moccasins
and all in the moonlight. The Red Fox had discovered the whereabouts of
Rufe Tolliver, and that very night he guided Hale and six of the guard to
the edge of a little clearing where the Red Fox pointed to a one-roomed
cabin, quiet in the moonlight. Hale had his requisition now.
</p>
<p>
"Ain't no trouble ketchin' Rufe, if you bait him with a woman," he
snarled. "There mought be several Tollivers in thar. Wait till daybreak
and git the drap on him, when he comes out." And then he disappeared.
</p>
<p>
Surrounding the cabin, Hale waited, and on top of the mountain, above
Lonesome Cove, the Red Fox sat waiting and watching through his big
telescope. Through it he saw Bad Rufe step outside the door at daybreak
and stretch his arms with a yawn, and he saw three men spring with
levelled Winchesters from behind a clump of bushes. The woman shot from
the door behind Rufe with a pistol in each hand, but Rufe kept his hands
in the air and turned his head to the woman who lowered the half-raised
weapons slowly. When he saw the cavalcade start for the county seat with
Rufe manacled in the midst of them, he dropped swiftly down into Lonesome
Cove to tell Judd that Rufe was a prisoner and to retake him on the way to
jail. And, as the Red Fox well knew would happen, old Judd and young Dave
and two other Tollivers who were at the cabin galloped into the county
seat to find Rufe in jail, and that jail guarded by seven grim young men
armed with Winchesters and shot-guns.
</p>
<p>
Hale faced the old man quietly—eye to eye.
</p>
<p>
"It's no use, Judd," he said, "you'd better let the law take its course."
The old man was scornful.
</p>
<p>
"Thar's never been a Tolliver convicted of killin' nobody, much less hung—an'
thar ain't goin' to be."
</p>
<p>
"I'm glad you warned me," said Hale still quietly, "though it wasn't
necessary. But if he's convicted, he'll hang."
</p>
<p>
The giant's face worked in convulsive helplessness and he turned away.
</p>
<p>
"You hold the cyards now, but my deal is comin'."
</p>
<p>
"All right, Judd—you're getting a square one from me."
</p>
<p>
Back rode the Tollivers and Devil Judd never opened his lips again until
he was at home in Lonesome Cove. June was sitting on the porch when he
walked heavy-headed through the gate.
</p>
<p>
"They've ketched Rufe," he said, and after a moment he added gruffly:
</p>
<p>
"Thar's goin' to be sure enough trouble now. The Falins'll think all them
police fellers air on their side now. This ain't no place fer you—you
must git away."
</p>
<p>
June shook her head and her eyes turned to the flowers at the edge of the
garden:
</p>
<p>
"I'm not goin' away, Dad," she said.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0027" id="link2H_4_0027">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXVI
</h2>
<p>
Back to the passing of Boone and the landing of Columbus no man, in that
region, had ever been hanged. And as old Judd said, no Tolliver had ever
been sentenced and no jury of mountain men, he well knew, could be found
who would convict a Tolliver, for there were no twelve men in the
mountains who would dare. And so the Tollivers decided to await the
outcome of the trial and rest easy. But they did not count on the mettle
and intelligence of the grim young "furriners" who were a flying wedge of
civilization at the Gap. Straightway, they gave up the practice of law and
banking and trading and store-keeping and cut port-holes in the brick
walls of the Court House and guarded town and jail night and day. They
brought their own fearless judge, their own fearless jury and their own
fearless guard. Such an abstract regard for law and order the mountaineer
finds a hard thing to understand. It looked as though the motive of the
Guard was vindictive and personal, and old Judd was almost stifled by the
volcanic rage that daily grew within him as the toils daily tightened
about Rufe Tolliver.
</p>
<p>
Every happening the old man learned through the Red Fox, who, with his
huge pistols, was one of the men who escorted Rufe to and from Court House
and jail—a volunteer, Hale supposed, because he hated Rufe; and, as
the Tollivers supposed, so that he could keep them advised of everything
that went on, which he did with secrecy and his own peculiar faith. And
steadily and to the growing uneasiness of the Tollivers, the law went its
way. Rufe had proven that he was at the Gap all day and had taken no part
in the trouble. He produced a witness—the mountain lout whom Hale
remembered—who admitted that he had blown the whistle, given the
yell, and fired the pistol shot. When asked his reason, the witness, who
was stupid, had none ready, looked helplessly at Rufe and finally mumbled—"fer
fun." But it was plain from the questions that Rufe had put to Hale only a
few minutes before the shooting, and from the hesitation of the witness,
that Rufe had used him for a tool. So the testimony of the latter that
Mockaby without even summoning Rufe to surrender had fired first, carried
no conviction. And yet Rufe had no trouble making it almost sure that he
had never seen the dead man before—so what was his motive? It was
then that word reached the ear of the prosecuting attorney of the only
testimony that could establish a motive and make the crime a hanging
offence, and Court was adjourned for a day, while he sent for the witness
who could give it. That afternoon one of the Falins, who had grown bolder,
and in twos and threes were always at the trial, shot at a Tolliver on the
edge of town and there was an immediate turmoil between the factions that
the Red Fox had been waiting for and that suited his dark purposes well.
</p>
<p>
That very night, with his big rifle, he slipped through the woods to a
turn of the road, over which old Dave Tolliver was to pass next morning,
and built a "blind" behind some rocks and lay there smoking peacefully and
dreaming his Swedenborgian dreams. And when a wagon came round the turn,
driven by a boy, and with the gaunt frame of old Dave Tolliver lying on
straw in the bed of it, his big rifle thundered and the frightened horses
dashed on with the Red Fox's last enemy, lifeless. Coolly he slipped back
to the woods, threw the shell from his gun, tirelessly he went by short
cuts through the hills, and at noon, benevolent and smiling, he was on
guard again.
</p>
<p>
The little Court Room was crowded for the afternoon session. Inside the
railing sat Rufe Tolliver, white and defiant—manacled. Leaning on
the railing, to one side, was the Red Fox with his big pistols, his good
profile calm, dreamy, kind—to the other, similarly armed, was Hale.
At each of the gaping port-holes, and on each side of the door, stood a
guard with a Winchester, and around the railing outside were several more.
In spite of window and port-hole the air was close and heavy with the
smell of tobacco and the sweat of men. Here and there in the crowd was a
red Falin, but not a Tolliver was in sight, and Rufe Tolliver sat alone.
The clerk called the Court to order after the fashion since the days
before Edward the Confessor—except that he asked God to save a
commonwealth instead of a king—and the prosecuting attorney rose:
</p>
<p>
"Next witness, may it please your Honour": and as the clerk got to his
feet with a slip of paper in his hand and bawled out a name, Hale wheeled
with a thumping heart. The crowd vibrated, turned heads, gave way, and
through the human aisle walked June Tolliver with the sheriff following
meekly behind. At the railing-gate she stopped, head uplifted, face pale
and indignant; and her eyes swept past Hale as if he were no more than a
wooden image, and were fixed with proud inquiry on the Judge's face. She
was bare-headed, her bronze hair was drawn low over her white brow, her
gown was of purple home-spun, and her right hand was clenched tight about
the chased silver handle of a riding whip, and in eyes, mouth, and in
every line of her tense figure was the mute question: "Why have you
brought <i>me</i> here?"
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0005" id="linkimage-0005">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/0342.jpg" alt="'why Have You Brought Me Here?', 0342 "
width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
"Here, please," said the Judge gently, as though he were about to answer
that question, and as she passed Hale she seemed to swerve her skirts
aside that they might not touch him.
</p>
<p>
"Swear her."
</p>
<p>
June lifted her right hand, put her lips to the soiled, old, black Bible
and faced the jury and Hale and Bad Rufe Tolliver whose black eyes never
left her face.
</p>
<p>
"What is your name?" asked a deep voice that struck her ears as familiar,
and before she answered she swiftly recalled that she had heard that voice
speaking when she entered the door.
</p>
<p>
"June Tolliver."
</p>
<p>
"Your age?"
</p>
<p>
"Eighteen."
</p>
<p>
"You live—"
</p>
<p>
"In Lonesome Cove."
</p>
<p>
"You are the daughter of—"
</p>
<p>
"Judd Tolliver."
</p>
<p>
"Do you know the prisoner?"
</p>
<p>
"He is my foster-uncle."
</p>
<p>
"Were you at home on the night of August the tenth?"
</p>
<p>
"I was."
</p>
<p>
"Have you ever heard the prisoner express any enmity against this
volunteer Police Guard?" He waved his hand toward the men at the portholes
and about the railing—unconsciously leaving his hand directly
pointed at Hale. June hesitated and Rufe leaned one elbow on the table,
and the light in his eyes beat with fierce intensity into the girl's eyes
into which came a curious frightened look that Hale remembered—the
same look she had shown long ago when Rufe's name was mentioned in the old
miller's cabin, and when going up the river road she had put her childish
trust in him to see that her bad uncle bothered her no more. Hale had
never forgot that, and if it had not been absurd he would have stopped the
prisoner from staring at her now. An anxious look had come into Rufe's
eyes—would she lie for him?
</p>
<p>
"Never," said June. Ah, she would—she was a Tolliver and Rufe took a
breath of deep content.
</p>
<p>
"You never heard him express any enmity toward the Police Guard—before
that night?"
</p>
<p>
"I have answered that question," said June with dignity and Rufe's lawyer
was on his feet.
</p>
<p>
"Your Honour, I object," he said indignantly.
</p>
<p>
"I apologize," said the deep voice—"sincerely," and he bowed to
June. Then very quietly:
</p>
<p>
"What was the last thing you heard the prisoner say that afternoon when he
left your father's house?"
</p>
<p>
It had come—how well she remembered just what he had said and how,
that night, even when she was asleep, Rufe's words had clanged like a bell
in her brain—what her awakening terror was when she knew that the
deed was done and the stifling fear that the victim might be Hale. Swiftly
her mind worked—somebody had blabbed, her step-mother, perhaps, and
what Rufe had said had reached a Falin ear and come to the relentless man
in front of her. She remembered, too, now, what the deep voice was saying
as she came into the door:
</p>
<p>
"There must be deliberation, a malicious purpose proven to make the
prisoner's crime a capital offence—I admit that, of course, your
Honour. Very well, we propose to prove that now," and then she had heard
her name called. The proof that was to send Rufe Tolliver to the scaffold
was to come from her—that was why she was there. Her lips opened and
Rufe's eyes, like a snake's, caught her own again and held them.
</p>
<p>
"He said he was going over to the Gap—"
</p>
<p>
There was a commotion at the door, again the crowd parted, and in towered
giant Judd Tolliver, pushing people aside as though they were straws, his
bushy hair wild and his great frame shaking from head to foot with rage.
</p>
<p>
"You went to my house," he rumbled hoarsely—glaring at Hale—"an'
took my gal thar when I wasn't at home—you—"
</p>
<p>
"Order in the Court," said the Judge sternly, but already at a signal from
Hale several guards were pushing through the crowd and old Judd saw them
coming and saw the Falins about him and the Winchesters at the port-holes,
and he stopped with a hard gulp and stood looking at June.
</p>
<p>
"Repeat his exact words," said the deep voice again as calmly as though
nothing had happened.
</p>
<p>
"He said, 'I'm goin' over to the Gap—'" and still Rufe's black eyes
held her with mesmeric power—would she lie for him—would she
lie for him?
</p>
<p>
It was a terrible struggle for June. Her father was there, her uncle Dave
was dead, her foster-uncle's life hung on her next words and she was a
Tolliver. Yet she had given her oath, she had kissed the sacred Book in
which she believed from cover to cover with her whole heart, and she could
feel upon her the blue eyes of a man for whom a lie was impossible and to
whom she had never stained her white soul with a word of untruth.
</p>
<p>
"Yes," encouraged the deep voice kindly.
</p>
<p>
Not a soul in the room knew where the struggle lay—not even the girl—for
it lay between the black eyes of Rufe Tolliver and the blue eyes of John
Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Yes," repeated the deep voice again. Again, with her eyes on Rufe, she
repeated:
</p>
<p>
"'I'm goin' over to the Gap—'" her face turned deadly white, she
shivered, her dark eyes swerved suddenly full on Hale and she said slowly
and distinctly, yet hardly above a whisper:
</p>
<p>
"'TO KILL ME A POLICEMAN.'"
</p>
<p>
"That will do," said the deep voice gently, and Hale started toward her—she
looked so deadly sick and she trembled so when she tried to rise; but she
saw him, her mouth steadied, she rose, and without looking at him, passed
by his outstretched hand and walked slowly out of the Court Room.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0028" id="link2H_4_0028">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXVII
</h2>
<p>
The miracle had happened. The Tollivers, following the Red Fox's advice to
make no attempt at rescue just then, had waited, expecting the old
immunity from the law and getting instead the swift sentence that Rufe
Tolliver should be hanged by the neck until he was dead. Astounding and
convincing though the news was, no mountaineer believed he would ever
hang, and Rufe himself faced the sentence defiant. He laughed when he was
led back to his cell:
</p>
<p>
"I'll never hang," he said scornfully. They were the first words that came
from his lips, and the first words that came from old Judd's when the news
reached him in Lonesome Cove, and that night old Judd gathered his clan
for the rescue—to learn next morning that during the night Rufe had
been spirited away to the capital for safekeeping until the fatal day. And
so there was quiet for a while—old Judd making ready for the day
when Rufe should be brought back, and trying to find out who it was that
had slain his brother Dave. The Falins denied the deed, but old Judd never
questioned that one of them was the murderer, and he came out openly now
and made no secret of the fact that he meant to have revenge. And so the
two factions went armed, watchful and wary—especially the Falins,
who were lying low and waiting to fulfil a deadly purpose of their own.
They well knew that old Judd would not open hostilities on them until Rufe
Tolliver was dead or at liberty. They knew that the old man meant to try
to rescue Rufe when he was brought back to jail or taken from it to the
scaffold, and when either day came they themselves would take a hand, thus
giving the Tollivers at one and the same time two sets of foes. And so
through the golden September days the two clans waited, and June Tolliver
went with dull determination back to her old life, for Uncle Billy's
sister had left the house in fear and she could get no help—milking
cows at cold dawns, helping in the kitchen, spinning flax and wool, and
weaving them into rough garments for her father and step-mother and Bub,
and in time, she thought grimly—for herself: for not another cent
for her maintenance could now come from John Hale, even though he claimed
it was hers—even though it was in truth her own. Never, but once,
had Hale's name been mentioned in the cabin—never, but once, had her
father referred to the testimony that she had given against Rufe Tolliver,
for the old man put upon Hale the fact that the sheriff had sneaked into
his house when he was away and had taken June to Court, and that was the
crowning touch of bitterness in his growing hatred for the captain of the
guard of whom he had once been so fond.
</p>
<p>
"Course you had to tell the truth, baby, when they got you there," he said
kindly; "but kidnappin' you that-a-way—" He shook his great bushy
head from side to side and dropped it into his hands.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon that damn Hale was the man who found out that you heard Rufe say
that. I'd like to know how—I'd like to git my hands on the feller as
told him."
</p>
<p>
June opened her lips in simple justice to clear Hale of that charge, but
she saw such a terrified appeal in her step-mother's face that she kept
her peace, let Hale suffer for that, too, and walked out into her garden.
Never once had her piano been opened, her books had lain unread, and from
her lips, during those days, came no song. When she was not at work, she
was brooding in her room, or she would walk down to Uncle Billy's and sit
at the mill with him while the old man would talk in tender helplessness,
or under the honeysuckle vines with old Hon, whose brusque kindness was of
as little avail. And then, still silent, she would get wearily up and as
quietly go away while the two old friends, worried to the heart, followed
her sadly with their eyes. At other times she was brooding in her room or
sitting in her garden, where she was now, and where she found most comfort—the
garden that Hale had planted for her-where purple asters leaned against
lilac shrubs that would flower for the first time the coming spring; where
a late rose bloomed, and marigolds drooped, and great sunflowers nodded
and giant castor-plants stretched out their hands of Christ, And while
June thus waited the passing of the days, many things became clear to her:
for the grim finger of reality had torn the veil from her eyes and let her
see herself but little changed, at the depths, by contact with John Male's
world, as she now saw him but little changed, at the depths, by contact
with hers. Slowly she came to see, too, that it was his presence in the
Court Room that made her tell the truth, reckless of the consequences, and
she came to realize that she was not leaving the mountains because she
would go to no place where she could not know of any danger that, in the
present crisis, might threaten John Hale.
</p>
<p>
And Hale saw only that in the Court Room she had drawn her skirts aside,
that she had looked at him once and then had brushed past his helping
hand. It put him in torment to think of what her life must be now, and of
how she must be suffering. He knew that she would not leave her father in
the crisis that was at hand, and after it was all over—what then?
His hands would still be tied and he would be even more helpless than he
had ever dreamed possible. To be sure, an old land deal had come to life,
just after the discovery of the worthlessness of the mine in Lonesome
Cove, and was holding out another hope. But if that, too, should fail—or
if it should succeed—what then? Old Judd had sent back, with a curt
refusal, the last "allowance" he forwarded to June and he knew the old man
was himself in straits. So June must stay in the mountains, and what would
become of her? She had gone back to her mountain garb—would she
lapse into her old life and ever again be content? Yes, she would lapse,
but never enough to keep her from being unhappy all her life, and at that
thought he groaned. Thus far he was responsible and the paramount duty
with him had been that she should have the means to follow the career she
had planned for herself outside of those hills. And now if he had the
means, he was helpless. There was nothing for him to do now but to see
that the law had its way with Rufe Tolliver, and meanwhile he let the
reawakened land deal go hang and set himself the task of finding out who
it was that had ambushed old Dave Tolliver. So even when he was thinking
of June his brain was busy on that mystery, and one night, as he sat
brooding, a suspicion flashed that made him grip his chair with both hands
and rise to pace the porch. Old Dave had been shot at dawn, and the night
before the Red Fox had been absent from the guard and had not turned up
until nearly noon next day. He had told Hale that he was going home. Two
days later, Hale heard by accident that the old man had been seen near the
place of the ambush about sunset of the day before the tragedy, which was
on his way home, and he now learned straightway for himself that the Red
Fox had not been home for a month—which was only one of his ways of
mistreating the patient little old woman in black.
</p>
<p>
A little later, the Red Fox gave it out that he was trying to ferret out
the murderer himself, and several times he was seen near the place of
ambush, looking, as he said, for evidence. But this did not halt Hale's
suspicions, for he recalled that the night he had spent with the Red Fox,
long ago, the old man had burst out against old Dave and had quickly
covered up his indiscretion with a pious characterization of himself as a
man that kept peace with both factions. And then why had he been so
suspicious and fearful when Hale told him that night that he had seen him
talking with a Falin in town the Court day before, and had he disclosed
the whereabouts of Rufe Tolliver and guided the guard to his hiding-place
simply for the reward? He had not yet come to claim it, and his
indifference to money was notorious through the hills. Apparently there
was some general enmity in the old man toward the whole Tolliver clan, and
maybe he had used the reward to fool Hale as to his real motive. And then
Hale quietly learned that long ago the Tollivers bitterly opposed the Red
Fox's marriage to a Tolliver-that Rufe, when a boy, was always teasing the
Red Fox and had once made him dance in his moccasins to the tune of
bullets spitting about his feet, and that the Red Fox had been heard to
say that old Dave had cheated his wife out of her just inheritance of wild
land; but all that was long, long ago, and apparently had been mutually
forgiven and forgotten. But it was enough for Hale, and one night he
mounted his horse, and at dawn he was at the place of ambush with his
horse hidden in the bushes. The rocks for the ambush were waist high, and
the twigs that had been thrust in the crevices between them were withered.
And there, on the hypothesis that the Red Fox was the assassin, Hale tried
to put himself, after the deed, into the Red Fox's shoes. The old man had
turned up on guard before noon—then he must have gone somewhere
first or have killed considerable time in the woods. He would not have
crossed the road, for there were two houses on the other side; there would
have been no object in going on over the mountain unless he meant to
escape, and if he had gone over there for another reason he would hardly
have had time to get to the Court House before noon: nor would he have
gone back along the road on that side, for on that side, too, was a cabin
not far away. So Hale turned and walked straight away from the road where
the walking was easiest—down a ravine, and pushing this way and that
through the bushes where the way looked easiest. Half a mile down the
ravine he came to a little brook, and there in the black earth was the
faint print of a man's left foot and in the hard crust across was the
deeper print of his right, where his weight in leaping had come down hard.
But the prints were made by a shoe and not by a moccasin, and then Hale
recalled exultantly that the Red Fox did not have his moccasins on the
morning he turned up on guard. All the while he kept a sharp lookout,
right and left, on the ground—the Red Fox must have thrown his
cartridge shell somewhere, and for that Hale was looking. Across the brook
he could see the tracks no farther, for he was too little of a woodsman to
follow so old a trail, but as he stood behind a clump of rhododendron,
wondering what he could do, he heard the crack of a dead stick down the
stream, and noiselessly he moved farther into the bushes. His heart
thumped in the silence—the long silence that followed—for it
might be a hostile Tolliver that was coming, so he pulled his pistol from
his holster, made ready, and then, noiseless as a shadow, the Red Fox
slipped past him along the path, in his moccasins now, and with his big
Winchester in his left hand. The Red Fox, too, was looking for that
cartridge shell, for only the night before had he heard for the first time
of the whispered suspicions against him. He was making for the blind and
Hale trembled at his luck. There was no path on the other side of the
stream, and Hale could barely hear him moving through the bushes. So he
pulled off his boots and, carrying them in one hand, slipped after him,
watching for dead twigs, stooping under the branches, or sliding sidewise
through them when he had to brush between their extremities, and pausing
every now and then to listen for an occasional faint sound from the Red
Fox ahead. Up the ravine the old man went to a little ledge of rocks,
beyond which was the blind, and when Hale saw his stooped figure slip over
that and disappear, he ran noiselessly toward it, crept noiselessly to the
top and peeped carefully over to see the Red Fox with his back to him and
peering into a clump of bushes—hardly ten yards away. While Hale
looked, the old man thrust his hand into the bushes and drew out something
that twinkled in the sun. At the moment Hale's horse nickered from the
bushes, and the Red Fox slipped his hand into his pocket, crouched
listening a moment, and then, step by step, backed toward the ledge. Hale
rose:
</p>
<p>
"I want you, Red!"
</p>
<p>
The old man wheeled, the wolf's snarl came, but the big rifle was too slow—Hale's
pistol had flashed in his face.
</p>
<p>
"Drop your gun!" Paralyzed, but the picture of white fury, the old man
hesitated.
</p>
<p>
"Drop—your—gun!" Slowly the big rifle was loosed and fell to
the ground.
</p>
<p>
"Back away—turn around and hands up!"
</p>
<p>
With his foot on the Winchester, Hale felt in the old man's pockets and
fished out an empty cartridge shell. Then he picked up the rifle and threw
the slide.
</p>
<p>
"It fits all right. March—toward that horse!"
</p>
<p>
Without a word the old man slouched ahead to where the big black horse was
restlessly waiting in the bushes.
</p>
<p>
"Climb up," said Hale. "We won't 'ride and tie' back to town—but
I'll take turns with you on the horse."
</p>
<p>
The Red Fox was making ready to leave the mountains, for he had been
falsely informed that Rufe was to be brought back to the county seat next
day, and he was searching again for the sole bit of evidence that was out
against him. And when Rufe was spirited back to jail and was on his way to
his cell, an old freckled hand was thrust between the bars of an iron door
to greet him and a voice called him by name. Rufe stopped in amazement;
then he burst out laughing; he struck then at the pallid face through the
bars with his manacles and cursed the old man bitterly; then he laughed
again horribly. The two slept in adjoining cells of the same cage that
night—the one waiting for the scaffold and the other waiting for the
trial that was to send him there. And away over the blue mountains a
little old woman in black sat on the porch of her cabin as she had sat
patiently many and many a long day. It was time, she thought, that the Red
Fox was coming home.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0029" id="link2H_4_0029">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXVIII
</h2>
<p>
And so while Bad Rufe Tolliver was waiting for death, the trial of the Red
Fox went on, and when he was not swinging in a hammock, reading his Bible,
telling his visions to his guards and singing hymns, he was in the Court
House giving shrewd answers to questions, or none at all, with the
benevolent half of his mask turned to the jury and the wolfish snarl of
the other half showing only now and then to some hostile witness for whom
his hate was stronger than his fear for his own life. And in jail Bad Rufe
worried his enemy with the malicious humour of Satan. Now he would say:
</p>
<p>
"Oh, there ain't nothin' betwixt old Red and me, nothin' at all—'cept
this iron wall," and he would drum a vicious tattoo on the thin wall with
the heel of his boot. Or when he heard the creak of the Red Fox's hammock
as he droned his Bible aloud, he would say to his guard outside:
</p>
<p>
"Course I don't read the Bible an' preach the word, nor talk with sperits,
but thar's worse men than me in the world—old Red in thar' for
instance"; and then he would cackle like a fiend and the Red Fox would
writhe in torment and beg to be sent to another cell. And always he would
daily ask the Red Fox about his trial and ask him questions in the night,
and his devilish instinct told him the day that the Red Fox, too, was
sentenced to death-he saw it in the gray pallour of the old man's face,
and he cackled his glee like a demon. For the evidence against the Red Fox
was too strong. Where June sat as chief witness against Rufe Tolliver—John
Hale sat as chief witness against the Red Fox. He could not swear it was a
cartridge shell that he saw the old man pick up, but it was something that
glistened in the sun, and a moment later he had found the shell in the old
man's pocket—and if it had been fired innocently, why was it there
and why was the old man searching for it? He was looking, he said, for
evidence of the murderer himself. That claim made, the Red Fox's lawyer
picked up the big rifle and the shell.
</p>
<p>
"You say, Mr. Hale, the prisoner told you the night you spent at his home
that this rifle was rim-fire?"
</p>
<p>
"He did." The lawyer held up the shell.
</p>
<p>
"You see this was exploded in such a rifle." That was plain, and the
lawyer shoved the shell into the rifle, pulled the trigger, took it out,
and held it up again. The plunger had struck below the rim and near the
centre, but not quite on the centre, and Hale asked for the rifle and
examined it closely.
</p>
<p>
"It's been tampered with," he said quietly, and he handed it to the
prosecuting attorney. The fact was plain; it was a bungling job and better
proved the Red Fox's guilt. Moreover, there were only two such big rifles
in all the hills, and it was proven that the man who owned the other was
at the time of the murder far away. The days of brain-storms had not come
then. There were no eminent Alienists to prove insanity for the prisoner.
Apparently, he had no friends—none save the little old woman in
black who sat by his side, hour by hour and day by day.
</p>
<p>
And the Red Fox was doomed.
</p>
<p>
In the hush of the Court Room the Judge solemnly put to the gray face
before him the usual question:
</p>
<p>
"Have you anything to say whereby sentence of death should not be
pronounced on you?"
</p>
<p>
The Red Fox rose:
</p>
<p>
"No," he said in a shaking voice; "but I have a friend here who I would
like to speak for me." The Judge bent his head a moment over his bench and
lifted it:
</p>
<p>
"It is unusual," he said; "but under the circumstances I will grant your
request. Who is your friend?" And the Red Fox made the souls of his
listeners leap.
</p>
<p>
"Jesus Christ," he said.
</p>
<p>
The Judge reverently bowed his head and the hush of the Court Room grew
deeper when the old man fished his Bible from his pocket and calmly read
such passages as might be interpreted as sure damnation for his enemies
and sure glory for himself—read them until the Judge lifted his hand
for a halt.
</p>
<p>
And so another sensation spread through the hills and a superstitious awe
of this strange new power that had come into the hills went with it hand
in hand. Only while the doubting ones knew that nothing could save the Red
Fox they would wait to see if that power could really avail against the
Tolliver clan. The day set for Rufe's execution was the following Monday,
and for the Red Fox the Friday following—for it was well to have the
whole wretched business over while the guard was there. Old Judd Tolliver,
so Hale learned, had come himself to offer the little old woman in black
the refuge of his roof as long as she lived, and had tried to get her to
go back with him to Lonesome Cove; but it pleased the Red Fox that he
should stand on the scaffold in a suit of white—cap and all—as
emblems of the purple and fine linen he was to put on above, and the
little old woman stayed where she was, silently and without question,
cutting the garments, as Hale pityingly learned, from a white table-cloth
and measuring them piece by piece with the clothes the old man wore in
jail. It pleased him, too, that his body should be kept unburied three
days—saying that he would then arise and go about preaching, and
that duty, too, she would as silently and with as little question perform.
Moreover, he would preach his own funeral sermon on the Sunday before
Rufe's day, and a curious crowd gathered to hear him. The Red Fox was led
from jail. He stood on the porch of the jailer's house with a little table
in front of him. On it lay a Bible, on the other side of the table sat a
little pale-faced old woman in black with a black sun-bonnet drawn close
to her face. By the side of the Bible lay a few pieces of bread. It was
the Red Fox's last communion—a communion which he administered to
himself and in which there was no other soul on earth to join save that
little old woman in black. And when the old fellow lifted the bread and
asked the crowd to come forward to partake with him in the last sacrament,
not a soul moved. Only the old woman who had been ill-treated by the Red
Fox for so many years—only she, of all the crowd, gave any answer,
and she for one instant turned her face toward him. With a churlish
gesture the old man pushed the bread over toward her and with hesitating,
trembling fingers she reached for it.
</p>
<p>
Bob Berkley was on the death-watch that night, and as he passed Rufe's
cell a wiry hand shot through the grating of his door, and as the boy
sprang away the condemned man's fingers tipped the butt of the big pistol
that dangled on the lad's hip.
</p>
<p>
"Not this time," said Bob with a cool little laugh, and Rufe laughed, too.
</p>
<p>
"I was only foolin'," he said, "I ain't goin' to hang. You hear that, Red?
I ain't goin' to hang—but you are, Red—sure. Nobody'd risk his
little finger for your old carcass, 'cept maybe that little old woman o'
yours who you've treated like a hound—but my folks ain't goin' to
see me hang."
</p>
<p>
Rufe spoke with some reason. That night the Tollivers climbed the
mountain, and before daybreak were waiting in the woods a mile on the
north side of the town. And the Falins climbed, too, farther along the
mountains, and at the same hour were waiting in the woods a mile to the
south.
</p>
<p>
Back in Lonesome Cove June Tolliver sat alone—her soul shaken and
terror-stricken to the depths—and the misery that matched hers was
in the heart of Hale as he paced to and fro at the county seat, on guard
and forging out his plans for that day under the morning stars.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0030" id="link2H_4_0030">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXIX
</h2>
<p>
Day broke on the old Court House with its black port-holes, on the
graystone jail, and on a tall topless wooden box to one side, from which
projected a cross-beam of green oak. From the centre of this beam dangled
a rope that swung gently to and fro when the wind moved. And with the day
a flock of little birds lighted on the bars of the condemned man's cell
window, chirping through them, and when the jailer brought breakfast he
found Bad Rufe cowering in the corner of his cell and wet with the sweat
of fear.
</p>
<p>
"Them damn birds ag'in," he growled sullenly.
</p>
<p>
"Don't lose yo' nerve, Rufe," said the jailer, and the old laugh of
defiance came, but from lips that were dry.
</p>
<p>
"Not much," he answered grimly, but the jailer noticed that while he ate,
his eyes kept turning again and again to the bars; and the turnkey went
away shaking his head. Rufe had told the jailer, his one friend through
whom he had kept in constant communication with the Tollivers, how on the
night after the shooting of Mockaby, when he lay down to sleep high on the
mountain side and under some rhododendron bushes, a flock of little birds
flew in on him like a gust of rain and perched over and around him,
twittering at him until he had to get up and pace the woods, and how,
throughout the next day, when he sat in the sun planning his escape, those
birds would sweep chattering over his head and sweep chattering back
again, and in that mood of despair he had said once, and only once:
"Somehow I knowed this time my name was Dennis"—a phrase of evil
prophecy he had picked up outside the hills. And now those same birds of
evil omen had come again, he believed, right on the heels of the last
sworn oath old Judd had sent him that he would never hang.
</p>
<p>
With the day, through mountain and valley, came in converging lines
mountain humanity—men and women, boys and girls, children and babes
in arms; all in their Sunday best—the men in jeans, slouched hats,
and high boots, the women in gay ribbons and brilliant home-spun; in
wagons, on foot and on horses and mules, carrying man and man, man and
boy, lover and sweetheart, or husband and wife and child—all moving
through the crisp autumn air, past woods of russet and crimson and along
brown dirt roads, to the straggling little mountain town. A stranger would
have thought that a county fair, a camp-meeting, or a circus was their
goal, but they were on their way to look upon the Court House with its
black port-holes, the graystone jail, the tall wooden box, the projecting
beam, and that dangling rope which, when the wind moved, swayed gently to
and fro. And Hale had forged his plan. He knew that there would be no
attempt at rescue until Rufe was led to the scaffold, and he knew that
neither Falins nor Tollivers would come in a band, so the incoming tide
found on the outskirts of the town and along every road boyish policemen
who halted and disarmed every man who carried a weapon in sight, for thus
John Hale would have against the pistols of the factions his own
Winchesters and repeating shot-guns. And the wondering people saw at the
back windows of the Court House and at the threatening port-holes more
youngsters manning Winchesters, more at the windows of the jailer's frame
house, which joined and fronted the jail, and more still—a line of
them—running all around the jail; and the old men wagged their heads
in amazement and wondered if, after all, a Tolliver was not really going
to be hanged.
</p>
<p>
So they waited—the neighbouring hills were black with people
waiting; the housetops were black with men and boys waiting; the trees in
the streets were bending under the weight of human bodies; and the
jail-yard fence was three feet deep with people hanging to it and hanging
about one another's necks—all waiting. All morning they waited
silently and patiently, and now the fatal noon was hardly an hour away and
not a Falin nor a Tolliver had been seen. Every Falin had been disarmed of
his Winchester as he came in, and as yet no Tolliver had entered the town,
for wily old Judd had learned of Hale's tactics and had stayed outside the
town for his own keen purpose. As the minutes passed, Hale was beginning
to wonder whether, after all, old Judd had come to believe that the odds
against him were too great, and had told the truth when he set afoot the
rumour that the law should have its way; and it was just when his load of
anxiety was beginning to lighten that there was a little commotion at the
edge of the Court House and a great red-headed figure pushed through the
crowd, followed by another of like build, and as the people rapidly gave
way and fell back, a line of Falins slipped along the wall and stood under
the port-holes-quiet, watchful, and determined. Almost at the same time
the crowd fell back the other way up the street, there was the hurried
tramping of feet and on came the Tollivers, headed by giant Judd, all
armed with Winchesters—for old Judd had sent his guns in ahead—and
as the crowd swept like water into any channel of alley or doorway that
was open to it, Hale saw the yard emptied of everybody but the line of
Falins against the wall and the Tollivers in a body but ten yards in front
of them. The people on the roofs and in the trees had not moved at all,
for they were out of range. For a moment old Judd's eyes swept the windows
and port-holes of the Court House, the windows of the jailer's house, the
line of guards about the jail, and then they dropped to the line of Falins
and glared with contemptuous hate into the leaping blue eyes of old Buck
Falin, and for that moment there was silence. In that silence and as
silently as the silence itself issued swiftly from the line of guards
twelve youngsters with Winchesters, repeating shot-guns, and in a minute
six were facing the Falins and six facing the Tollivers, each with his
shot-gun at his hip. At the head of them stood Hale, his face a pale
image, as hard as though cut from stone, his head bare, and his hand and
his hip weaponless. In all that crowd there was not a man or a woman who
had not seen or heard of him, for the power of the guard that was at his
back had radiated through that wild region like ripples of water from a
dropped stone and, unarmed even, he had a personal power that belonged to
no other man in all those hills, though armed to the teeth. His voice rose
clear, steady, commanding:
</p>
<p>
"The law has come here and it has come to stay." He faced the beetling
eyebrows and angrily working beard of old Judd now:
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0006" id="linkimage-0006">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/0370.jpg" alt="'we'll Fight You Both!', 0370 "
width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
"The Falins are here to get revenge on you Tollivers, if you attack us. I
know that. But"—he wheeled on the Falins—"understand! We don't
want your help! If the Tollivers try to take that man in there, and one of
you Falins draws a pistol, those guns there"—waving his hand toward
the jail windows—"will be turned loose on YOU, WE'LL FIGHT YOU
BOTH!" The last words shot like bullets through his gritted teeth, then
the flash of his eyes was gone, his face was calm, and as though the whole
matter had been settled beyond possible interruption, he finished quietly:
</p>
<p>
"The condemned man wishes to make a confession and to say good-by. In five
minutes he will be at that window to say what he pleases. Ten minutes
later he will be hanged." And he turned and walked calmly into the
jailer's door. Not a Tolliver nor a Falin made a movement or a sound.
Young Dave's eyes had glared savagely when he first saw Hale, for he had
marked Hale for his own and he knew that the fact was known to Hale. Had
the battle begun then and there, Hale's death was sure, and Dave knew that
Hale must know that as well as he: and yet with magnificent audacity,
there he was—unarmed, personally helpless, and invested with an
insulting certainty that not a shot would be fired. Not a Falin or a
Tolliver even reached for a weapon, and the fact was the subtle tribute
that ignorance pays intelligence when the latter is forced to deadly
weapons as a last resort; for ignorance faced now belching shot-guns and
was commanded by rifles on every side. Old Judd was trapped and the Falins
were stunned. Old Buck Falin turned his eyes down the line of his men with
one warning glance. Old Judd whispered something to a Tolliver behind him
and a moment later the man slipped from the band and disappeared. Young
Dave followed Hale's figure with a look of baffled malignant hatred and
Bub's eyes were filled with angry tears. Between the factions, the grim
young men stood with their guns like statues.
</p>
<p>
At once a big man with a red face appeared at one of the jailer's windows
and then came the sheriff, who began to take out the sash. Already the
frightened crowd had gathered closer again and now a hush came over it,
followed by a rustling and a murmur. Something was going to happen. Faces
and gun-muzzles thickened at the port-holes and at the windows; the line
of guards turned their faces sidewise and upward; the crowd on the fence
scuffled for better positions; the people in the trees craned their necks
from the branches or climbed higher, and there was a great scraping on all
the roofs. Even the black crowd out on the hills seemed to catch the
excitement and to sway, while spots of intense blue and vivid crimson came
out here and there from the blackness when the women rose from their seats
on the ground. Then—sharply—there was silence. The sheriff
disappeared, and shut in by the sashless window as by a picture frame and
blinking in the strong light, stood a man with black hair, cropped close,
face pale and worn, and hands that looked white and thin—stood bad
Rufe Tolliver.
</p>
<p>
He was going to confess—that was the rumour. His lawyers wanted him
to confess; the preacher who had been singing hymns with him all morning
wanted him to confess; the man himself said he wanted to confess; and now
he was going to confess. What deadly mysteries he might clear up if he
would! No wonder the crowd was eager, for there was no soul there but knew
his record—and what a record! His best friends put his victims no
lower than thirteen, and there looking up at him were three women whom he
had widowed or orphaned, while at one corner of the jail-yard stood a girl
in black—the sweetheart of Mockaby, for whose death Rufe was
standing where he stood now. But his lips did not open. Instead he took
hold of the side of the window and looked behind him. The sheriff brought
him a chair and he sat down. Apparently he was weak and he was going to
wait a while. Would he tell how he had killed one Falin in the presence of
the latter's wife at a wild bee tree; how he had killed a sheriff by
dropping to the ground when the sheriff fired, in this way dodging the
bullet and then shooting the officer from where he lay supposedly dead;
how he had thrown another Falin out of the Court House window and broken
his neck—the Falin was drunk, Rufe always said, and fell out; why,
when he was constable, he had killed another—because, Rufe said, he
resisted arrest; how and where he had killed Red-necked Johnson, who was
found out in the woods? Would he tell all that and more? If he meant to
tell there was no sign. His lips kept closed and his bright black eyes
were studying the situation; the little squad of youngsters, back to back,
with their repeating shot-guns, the line of Falins along the wall toward
whom protruded six shining barrels, the huddled crowd of Tollivers toward
whom protruded six more—old Judd towering in front with young Dave
on one side, tense as a leopard about to spring, and on the other Bub,
with tears streaming down his face. In a flash he understood, and in that
flash his face looked as though he had been suddenly struck a heavy blow
by some one from behind, and then his elbows dropped on the sill of the
window, his chin dropped into his hands and a murmur arose. Maybe he was
too weak to stand and talk—perhaps he was going to talk from his
chair. Yes, he was leaning forward and his lips were opening, but no sound
came. Slowly his eyes wandered around at the waiting people—in the
trees, on the roofs and the fence—and then they dropped to old
Judd's and blazed their appeal for a sign. With one heave of his mighty
chest old Judd took off his slouch hat, pressed one big hand to the back
of his head and, despite that blazing appeal, kept it there. At that
movement Rufe threw his head up as though his breath had suddenly failed
him, his face turned sickening white, and slowly again his chin dropped
into his trembling hands, and still unbelieving he stared his appeal, but
old Judd dropped his big hand and turned his head away. The condemned
man's mouth twitched once, settled into defiant calm, and then he did one
kindly thing. He turned in his seat and motioned Bob Berkley, who was just
behind him, away from the window, and the boy, to humour him, stepped
aside. Then he rose to his feet and stretched his arms wide.
Simultaneously came the far-away crack of a rifle, and as a jet of smoke
spurted above a clump of bushes on a little hill, three hundred yards
away, Bad Rufe wheeled half-way round and fell back out of sight into the
sheriff's arms. Every Falin made a nervous reach for his pistol, the line
of gun-muzzles covering them wavered slightly, but the Tollivers stood
still and unsurprised, and when Hale dashed from the door again, there was
a grim smile of triumph on old Judd's face. He had kept his promise that
Rufe should never hang.
</p>
<p>
"Steady there," said Hale quietly. His pistol was on his hip now and a
Winchester was in his left hand.
</p>
<p>
"Stand where you are—everybody!"
</p>
<p>
There was the sound of hurrying feet within the jail. There was the clang
of an iron door, the bang of a wooden one, and in five minutes from within
the tall wooden box came the sharp click of a hatchet and then—dully:
</p>
<p>
"T-H-O-O-MP!" The dangling rope had tightened with a snap and the wind
swayed it no more.
</p>
<p>
At his cell door the Red Fox stood with his watch in his hand and his eyes
glued to the second-hand. When it had gone three times around its circuit,
he snapped the lid with a sigh of relief and turned to his hammock and his
Bible.
</p>
<p>
"He's gone now," said the Red Fox.
</p>
<p>
Outside Hale still waited, and as his eyes turned from the Tollivers to
the Falins, seven of the faces among them came back to him with startling
distinctness, and his mind went back to the opening trouble in the
county-seat over the Kentucky line, years before—when eight men held
one another at the points of their pistols. One face was missing, and that
face belonged to Rufe Tolliver. Hale pulled out his watch.
</p>
<p>
"Keep those men there," he said, pointing to the Falins, and he turned to
the bewildered Tollivers.
</p>
<p>
"Come on, Judd," he said kindly—"all of you."
</p>
<p>
Dazed and mystified, they followed him in a body around the corner of the
jail, where in a coffin, that old Jadd had sent as a blind to his real
purpose, lay the remains of Bad Rufe Tolliver with a harmless bullet hole
through one shoulder. Near by was a wagon and hitched to it were two mules
that Hale himself had provided. Hale pointed to it:
</p>
<p>
"I've done all I could, Judd. Take him away. I'll keep the Falins under
guard until you reach the Kentucky line, so that they can't waylay you."
</p>
<p>
If old Judd heard, he gave no sign. He was looking down at the face of his
foster-brother—his shoulder drooped, his great frame shrunken, and
his iron face beaten and helpless. Again Hale spoke:
</p>
<p>
"I'm sorry for all this. I'm even sorry that your man was not a better
shot."
</p>
<p>
The old man straightened then and with a gesture he motioned young Dave to
the foot of the coffin and stooped himself at the head. Past the wagon
they went, the crowd giving way before them, and with the dead Tolliver on
their shoulders, old Judd and young Dave passed with their followers out
of sight.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0031" id="link2H_4_0031">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXX
</h2>
<p>
The longest of her life was that day to June. The anxiety in times of war
for the women who wait at home is vague because they are mercifully
ignorant of the dangers their loved ones run, but a specific issue that
involves death to those loved ones has a special and poignant terror of
its own. June knew her father's plan, the precise time the fight would
take place, and the especial danger that was Hale's, for she knew that
young Dave Tolliver had marked him with the first shot fired. Dry-eyed and
white and dumb, she watched them make ready for the start that morning
while it was yet dark; dully she heard the horses snorting from the cold,
the low curt orders of her father, and the exciting mutterings of Bub and
young Dave; dully she watched the saddles thrown on, the pistols buckled,
the Winchesters caught up, and dully she watched them file out the gate
and ride away, single file, into the cold, damp mist like ghostly figures
in a dream. Once only did she open her lips and that was to plead with her
father to leave Bub at home, but her father gave her no answer and Bub
snorted his indignation—he was a man now, and his now was the
privilege of a man. For a while she stood listening to the ring of metal
against stone that came to her more and more faintly out of the mist, and
she wondered if it was really June Tolliver standing there, while father
and brother and cousin were on their way to fight the law—how
differently she saw these things now—for a man who deserved death,
and to fight a man who was ready to die for his duty to that law—the
law that guarded them and her and might not perhaps guard him: the man who
had planted for her the dew-drenched garden that was waiting for the sun,
and had built the little room behind her for her comfort and seclusion;
who had sent her to school, had never been anything but kind and just to
her and to everybody—who had taught her life and, thank God, love.
Was she really the June Tolliver who had gone out into the world and had
held her place there; who had conquered birth and speech and customs and
environment so that none could tell what they all once were; who had
become the lady, the woman of the world, in manner, dress, and education:
who had a gift of music and a voice that might enrich her life beyond any
dream that had ever sprung from her own brain or any that she had ever
caught from Hale's? Was she June Tolliver who had been and done all that,
and now had come back and was slowly sinking back into the narrow grave
from which Hale had lifted her? It was all too strange and bitter, but if
she wanted proof there was her step-mother's voice now—the same old,
querulous, nerve-racking voice that had embittered all her childhood—calling
her down into the old mean round of drudgery that had bound forever the
horizon of her narrow life just as now it was shutting down like a sky of
brass around her own. And when the voice came, instead of bursting into
tears as she was about to do, she gave a hard little laugh and she lifted
a defiant face to the rising sun. There was a limit to the sacrifice for
kindred, brother, father, home, and that limit was the eternal sacrifice—the
eternal undoing of herself: when this wretched terrible business was over
she would set her feet where that sun could rise on her, busy with the
work that she could do in that world for which she felt she was born.
Swiftly she did the morning chores and then she sat on the porch thinking
and waiting. Spinning wheel, loom, and darning needle were to lie idle
that day. The old step-mother had gotten from bed and was dressing herself—miraculously
cured of a sudden, miraculously active. She began to talk of what she
needed in town, and June said nothing. She went out to the stable and led
out the old sorrel-mare. She was going to the hanging.
</p>
<p>
"Don't you want to go to town, June?"
</p>
<p>
"No," said June fiercely.
</p>
<p>
"Well, you needn't git mad about it—I got to go some day this week,
and I reckon I might as well go ter-day." June answered nothing, but in
silence watched her get ready and in silence watched her ride away. She
was glad to be left alone. The sun had flooded Lonesome Cove now with a
light as rich and yellow as though it were late afternoon, and she could
yet tell every tree by the different colour of the banner that each yet
defiantly flung into the face of death. The yard fence was festooned with
dewy cobwebs, and every weed in the field was hung with them as with
flashing jewels of exquisitely delicate design: Hale had once told her
that they meant rain. Far away the mountains were overhung with purple so
deep that the very air looked like mist, and a peace that seemed
motherlike in tenderness brooded over the earth. Peace! Peace—with a
man on his way to a scaffold only a few miles away, and two bodies of men,
one led by her father, the other by the man she loved, ready to fly at
each other's throats—the one to get the condemned man alive, the
other to see that he died. She got up with a groan. She walked into the
garden. The grass was tall, tangled, and withering, and in it dead leaves
lay everywhere, stems up, stems down, in reckless confusion. The scarlet
sage-pods were brown and seeds were dropping from their tiny gaping
mouths. The marigolds were frost-nipped and one lonely black-winged
butterfly was vainly searching them one by one for the lost sweets of
summer. The gorgeous crowns of the sun-flowers were nothing but grotesque
black mummy-heads set on lean, dead bodies, and the clump of big
castor-plants, buffeted by the wind, leaned this way and that like giants
in a drunken orgy trying to keep one another from falling down. The blight
that was on the garden was the blight that was in her heart, and two bits
of cheer only she found—one yellow nasturtium, scarlet-flecked,
whose fragrance was a memory of the spring that was long gone, and one
little cedar tree that had caught some dead leaves in its green arms and
was firmly holding them as though to promise that another spring would
surely come. With the flower in her hand, she started up the ravine to her
dreaming place, but it was so lonely up there and she turned back. She
went into her room and tried to read. Mechanically, she half opened the
lid of the piano and shut it, horrified by her own act. As she passed out
on the porch again she noticed that it was only nine o'clock. She turned
and watched the long hand—how long a minute was! Three hours more!
She shivered and went inside and got her bonnet—she could not be
alone when the hour came, and she started down the road toward Uncle
Billy's mill. Hale! Hale! Hale!—the name began to ring in her ears
like a bell. The little shacks he had built up the creek were deserted and
gone to ruin, and she began to wonder in the light of what her father had
said how much of a tragedy that meant to him. Here was the spot where he
was fishing that day, when she had slipped down behind him and he had
turned and seen her for the first time. She could recall his smile and the
very tone of his kind voice:
</p>
<p>
"Howdye, little girl!" And the cat had got her tongue. She remembered when
she had written her name, after she had first kissed him at the foot of
the beech—"June HAIL," and by a grotesque mental leap the beating of
his name in her brain now made her think of the beating of hailstones on
her father's roof one night when as a child she had lain and listened to
them. Then she noticed that the autumn shadows seemed to make the river
darker than the shadows of spring—or was it already the stain of
dead leaves? Hale could have told her. Those leaves were floating through
the shadows and when the wind moved, others zig-zagged softly down to join
them. The wind was helping them on the water, too, and along came one
brown leaf that was shaped like a tiny trireme—its stem acting like
a rudder and keeping it straight before the breeze—so that it swept
past the rest as a yacht that she was once on had swept past a fleet of
fishing sloops. She was not unlike that swift little ship and thirty yards
ahead were rocks and shallows where it and the whole fleet would turn
topsy-turvy—would her own triumph be as short and the same fate be
hers? There was no question as to that, unless she took the wheel of her
fate in her own hands and with them steered the ship. Thinking hard, she
walked on slowly, with her hands behind her and her eyes bent on the road.
What should she do? She had no money, her father had none to spare, and
she could accept no more from Hale. Once she stopped and stared with
unseeing eyes at the blue sky, and once under the heavy helplessness of it
all she dropped on the side of the road and sat with her head buried in
her arms—sat so long that she rose with a start and, with an
apprehensive look at the mounting sun, hurried on. She would go to the Gap
and teach; and then she knew that if she went there it would be on Hale's
account. Very well, she would not blind herself to that fact; she would go
and perhaps all would be made up between them, and then she knew that if
that but happened, nothing else could matter...
</p>
<p>
When she reached the miller's cabin, she went to the porch without
noticing that the door was closed. Nobody was at home and she turned
listlessly. When she reached the gate, she heard the clock beginning to
strike, and with one hand on her breast she breathlessly listened,
counting—"eight, nine, ten, eleven"—and her heart seemed to
stop in the fraction of time that she waited for it to strike once more.
But it was only eleven, and she went on down the road slowly, still
thinking hard. The old miller was leaning back in a chair against the log
side of the mill, with his dusty slouched hat down over his eyes. He did
not hear her coming and she thought he must be asleep, but he looked up
with a start when she spoke and she knew of what he, too, had been
thinking. Keenly his old eyes searched her white face and without a word
he got up and reached for another chair within the mill.
</p>
<p>
"You set right down now, baby," he said, and he made a pretence of having
something to do inside the mill, while June watched the creaking old wheel
dropping the sun-shot sparkling water into the swift sluice, but hardly
seeing it at all. By and by Uncle Billy came outside and sat down and
neither spoke a word. Once June saw him covertly looking at his watch and
she put both hands to her throat—stifled.
</p>
<p>
"What time is it, Uncle Billy?" She tried to ask the question calmly, but
she had to try twice before she could speak at all and when she did get
the question out, her voice was only a broken whisper.
</p>
<p>
"Five minutes to twelve, baby," said the old man, and his voice had a gulp
in it that broke June down. She sprang to her feet wringing her hands:
</p>
<p>
"I can't stand it, Uncle Billy," she cried madly, and with a sob that
almost broke the old man's heart. "I tell you I can't stand it."
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
And yet for three hours more she had to stand it, while the cavalcade of
Tollivers, with Rufe's body, made its slow way to the Kentucky line where
Judd and Dave and Bub left them to go home for the night and be on hand
for the funeral next day. But Uncle Billy led her back to his cabin, and
on the porch the two, with old Hon, waited while the three hours dragged
along. It was June who was first to hear the galloping of horses' hoofs up
the road and she ran to the gate, followed by Uncle Billy and old Hon to
see young Dave Tolliver coming in a run. At the gate he threw himself from
his horse:
</p>
<p>
"Git up thar, June, and go home," he panted sharply. June flashed out the
gate.
</p>
<p>
"Have you done it?" she asked with deadly quiet.
</p>
<p>
"Hurry up an' go home, I tell ye! Uncle Judd wants ye!"
</p>
<p>
She came quite close to him now.
</p>
<p>
"You said you'd do it—I know what you've done—you—" she
looked as if she would fly at his throat, and Dave, amazed, shrank back a
step.
</p>
<p>
"Go home, I tell ye—Uncle Judd's shot. Git on the hoss!"
</p>
<p>
"No, no, NO! I wouldn't TOUCH anything that was yours"—she put her
hands to her head as though she were crazed, and then she turned and broke
into a swift run up the road.
</p>
<p>
Panting, June reached the gate. The front door was closed and there she
gave a tremulous cry for Bub. The door opened a few inches and through it
Bub shouted for her to come on. The back door, too, was closed, and not a
ray of daylight entered the room except at the port-hole where Bub, with a
Winchester, had been standing on guard. By the light of the fire she saw
her father's giant frame stretched out on the bed and she heard his
laboured breathing. Swiftly she went to the bed and dropped on her knees
beside it.
</p>
<p>
"Dad!" she said. The old man's eyes opened and turned heavily toward her.
</p>
<p>
"All right, Juny. They shot me from the laurel and they might nigh got
Bub. I reckon they've got me this time."
</p>
<p>
"No—no!" He saw her eyes fixed on the matted blood on his chest.
</p>
<p>
"Hit's stopped. I'm afeared hit's bleedin' inside." His voice had dropped
to a whisper and his eyes closed again. There was another cautious "Hello"
outside, and when Bub again opened the door Dave ran swiftly within. He
paid no attention to June.
</p>
<p>
"I follered June back an' left my hoss in the bushes. There was three of
'em." He showed Bub a bullet hole through one sleeve and then he turned
half contemptuously to June:
</p>
<p>
"I hain't done it"—adding grimly—"not yit. He's as safe as you
air. I hope you're satisfied that hit hain't him 'stid o' yo' daddy thar."
</p>
<p>
"Are you going to the Gap for a doctor?"
</p>
<p>
"I reckon I can't leave Bub here alone agin all the Falins—not even
to git a doctor or to carry a love-message fer you."
</p>
<p>
"Then I'll go myself."
</p>
<p>
A thick protest came from the bed, and then an appeal that might have come
from a child.
</p>
<p>
"Don't leave me, Juny." Without a word June went into the kitchen and got
the old bark horn.
</p>
<p>
"Uncle Billy will go," she said, and she stepped out on the porch. But
Uncle Billy was already on his way and she heard him coming just as she
was raising the horn to her lips. She met him at the gate, and without
even taking the time to come into the house the old miller hurried upward
toward the Lonesome Pine. The rain came then—the rain that the tiny
cobwebs had heralded at dawn that morning. The old step-mother had not
come home, and June told Bub she had gone over the mountain to see her
sister, and when, as darkness fell, she did not appear they knew that she
must have been caught by the rain and would spend the night with a
neighbour. June asked no question, but from the low talk of Bub and Dave
she made out what had happened in town that day and a wild elation settled
in her heart that John Hale was alive and unhurt—though Rufe was
dead, her father wounded, and Bub and Dave both had but narrowly escaped
the Falin assassins that afternoon. Bub took the first turn at watching
while Dave slept, and when it was Dave's turn she saw him drop quickly
asleep in his chair, and she was left alone with the breathing of the
wounded man and the beating of rain on the roof. And through the long
night June thought her brain weary over herself, her life, her people, and
Hale. They were not to blame—her people, they but did as their
fathers had done before them. They had their own code and they lived up to
it as best they could, and they had had no chance to learn another. She
felt the vindictive hatred that had prolonged the feud. Had she been a
man, she could not have rested until she had slain the man who had
ambushed her father. She expected Bub to do that now, and if the spirit
was so strong in her with the training she had had, how helpless they must
be against it. Even Dave was not to blame—not to blame for loving
her—he had always done that. For that reason he could not help
hating Hale, and how great a reason he had now, for he could not
understand as she could the absence of any personal motive that had
governed him in the prosecution of the law, no matter if he hurt friend or
foe. But for Hale, she would have loved Dave and now be married to him and
happier than she was. Dave saw that—no wonder he hated Hale. And as
she slowly realized all these things, she grew calm and gentle and
determined to stick to her people and do the best she could with her life.
</p>
<p>
And now and then through the night old Judd would open his eyes and stare
at the ceiling, and at these times it was not the pain in his face that
distressed her as much as the drawn beaten look that she had noticed
growing in it for a long time. It was terrible—that helpless look in
the face of a man, so big in body, so strong of mind, so iron-like in
will; and whenever he did speak she knew what he was going to say:
</p>
<p>
"It's all over, Juny. They've beat us on every turn. They've got us one by
one. Thar ain't but a few of us left now and when I git up, if I ever do,
I'm goin' to gether 'em all together, pull up stakes and take 'em all
West. You won't ever leave me, Juny?"
</p>
<p>
"No, Dad," she would say gently. He had asked the question at first quite
sanely, but as the night wore on and the fever grew and his mind wandered,
he would repeat the question over and over like a child, and over and
over, while Bub and Dave slept and the rain poured, June would repeat her
answer:
</p>
<p>
"I'll never leave you, Dad."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0032" id="link2H_4_0032">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXXI
</h2>
<p>
Before dawn Hale and the doctor and the old miller had reached the Pine,
and there Hale stopped. Any farther, the old man told him, he would go
only at the risk of his life from Dave or Bub, or even from any Falin who
happened to be hanging around in the bushes, for Hale was hated equally by
both factions now.
</p>
<p>
"I'll wait up here until noon, Uncle Billy," said Hale. "Ask her, for
God's sake, to come up here and see me."
</p>
<p>
"All right. I'll axe her, but—" the old miller shook his head.
Breakfastless, except for the munching of a piece of chocolate, Hale
waited all the morning with his black horse in the bushes some thirty
yards from the Lonesome Pine. Every now and then he would go to the tree
and look down the path, and once he slipped far down the trail and aside
to a spur whence he could see the cabin in the cove. Once his hungry eyes
caught sight of a woman's figure walking through the little garden, and
for an hour after it disappeared into the house he watched for it to come
out again. But nothing more was visible, and he turned back to the trail
to see Uncle Billy laboriously climbing up the slope. Hale waited and ran
down to meet him, his face and eyes eager and his lips trembling, but
again Uncle Billy was shaking his head.
</p>
<p>
"No use, John," he said sadly. "I got her out on the porch and axed her,
but she won't come."
</p>
<p>
"She won't come at all?"
</p>
<p>
"John, when one o' them Tollivers gits white about the mouth, an' thar
eyes gits to blazin' and they KEEPS QUIET—they're plumb out o' reach
o' the Almighty hisself. June skeered me. But you mustn't blame her jes'
now. You see, you got up that guard. You ketched Rufe and hung him, and
she can't help thinkin' if you hadn't done that, her old daddy wouldn't be
in thar on his back nigh to death. You mustn't blame her, John—she's
most out o' her head now."
</p>
<p>
"All right, Uncle Billy. Good-by." Hale turned, climbed sadly back to his
horse and sadly dropped down the other side of the mountain and on through
the rocky gap-home.
</p>
<p>
A week later he learned from the doctor that the chances were even that
old Judd would get well, but the days went by with no word of June.
Through those days June wrestled with her love for Hale and her loyalty to
her father, who, sick as he was, seemed to have a vague sense of the
trouble within her and shrewdly fought it by making her daily promise that
she would never leave him. For as old Judd got better, June's fierceness
against Hale melted and her love came out the stronger, because of the
passing injustice that she had done him. Many times she was on the point
of sending him word that she would meet him at the Pine, but she was
afraid of her own strength if she should see him face to face, and she
feared she would be risking his life if she allowed him to come. There
were times when she would have gone to him herself, had her father been
well and strong, but he was old, beaten and helpless, and she had given
her sacred word that she would never leave him. So once more she grew
calmer, gentler still, and more determined to follow her own way with her
own kin, though that way led through a breaking heart. She never mentioned
Hale's name, she never spoke of going West, and in time Dave began to
wonder not only if she had not gotten over her feeling for Hale, but if
that feeling had not turned into permanent hate. To him, June was kinder
than ever, because she understood him better and because she was sorry for
the hunted, hounded life he led, not knowing, when on his trips to see her
or to do some service for her father, he might be picked off by some Falin
from the bushes. So Dave stopped his sneering remarks against Hale and
began to dream his old dreams, though he never opened his lips to June,
and she was unconscious of what was going on within him. By and by, as old
Judd began to mend, overtures of peace came, singularly enough, from the
Falins, and while the old man snorted with contemptuous disbelief at them
as a pretence to throw him off his guard, Dave began actually to believe
that they were sincere, and straightway forged a plan of his own, even if
the Tollivers did persist in going West. So one morning as he mounted his
horse at old Judd's gate, he called to June in the garden:
</p>
<p>
"I'm a-goin' over to the Gap." June paled, but Dave was not looking at
her.
</p>
<p>
"What for?" she asked, steadying her voice.
</p>
<p>
"Business," he answered, and he laughed curiously and, still without
looking at her, rode away.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Hale sat in the porch of his little office that morning, and the Hon. Sam
Budd, who had risen to leave, stood with his hands deep in his pockets,
his hat tilted far over his big goggles, looking down at the dead leaves
that floated like lost hopes on the placid mill-pond. Hale had agreed to
go to England once more on the sole chance left him before he went back to
chain and compass—the old land deal that had come to life—and
between them they had about enough money for the trip.
</p>
<p>
"You'll keep an eye on things over there?" said Hale with a backward
motion of his head toward Lonesome Cove, and the Hon. Sam nodded his head:
</p>
<p>
"All I can."
</p>
<p>
"Those big trunks of hers are still here." The Hon. Sam smiled. "She won't
need 'em. I'll keep an eye on 'em and she can come over and get what she
wants—every year or two," he added grimly, and Hale groaned.
</p>
<p>
"Stop it, Sam."
</p>
<p>
"All right. You ain't goin' to try to see her before you leave?" And then
at the look on Hale's face he said hurriedly: "All right—all right,"
and with a toss of his hands turned away, while Hale sat thinking where he
was.
</p>
<p>
Rufe Tolliver had been quite right as to the Red Fox. Nobody would risk
his life for him—there was no one to attempt a rescue, and but a few
of the guards were on hand this time to carry out the law. On the last day
he had appeared in his white suit of tablecloth. The little old woman in
black had made even the cap that was to be drawn over his face, and that,
too, she had made of white. Moreover, she would have his body kept
unburied for three days, because the Red Fox said that on the third day he
would arise and go about preaching. So that even in death the Red Fox was
consistently inconsistent, and how he reconciled such a dual life at one
and the same time over and under the stars was, except to his twisted
brain, never known. He walked firmly up the scaffold steps and stood there
blinking in the sunlight. With one hand he tested the rope. For a moment
he looked at the sky and the trees with a face that was white and
absolutely expressionless. Then he sang one hymn of two verses and quietly
dropped into that world in which he believed so firmly and toward which he
had trod so strange a way on earth. As he wished, the little old woman in
black had the body kept unburied for the three days—but the Red Fox
never rose. With his passing, law and order had become supreme. Neither
Tolliver nor Falin came on the Virginia side for mischief, and the
desperadoes of two sister States, whose skirts are stitched together with
pine and pin-oak along the crest of the Cumberland, confined their
deviltries with great care to places long distant from the Gap. John Hale
had done a great work, but the limit of his activities was that State line
and the Falins, ever threatening that they would not leave a Tolliver
alive, could carry out those threats and Hale not be able to lift a hand.
It was his helplessness that was making him writhe now.
</p>
<p>
Old Judd had often said he meant to leave the mountains—why didn't
he go now and take June for whose safety his heart was always in his
mouth? As an officer, he was now helpless where he was; and if he went
away he could give no personal aid—he would not even know what was
happening—and he had promised Budd to go. An open letter was
clutched in his hand, and again he read it. His coal company had accepted
his last proposition. They would take his stock—worthless as they
thought it—and surrender the cabin and two hundred acres of field
and woodland in Lonesome Cove. That much at least would be intact, but if
he failed in his last project now, it would be subject to judgments
against him that were sure to come. So there was one thing more to do for
June before he left for the final effort in England—to give back her
home to her—and as he rose to do it now, somebody shouted at his
gate:
</p>
<p>
"Hello!" Hale stopped short at the head of the steps, his right hand shot
like a shaft of light to the butt of his pistol, stayed there—and he
stood astounded. It was Dave Tolliver on horseback, and Dave's right hand
had kept hold of his bridle-reins.
</p>
<p>
"Hold on!" he said, lifting the other with a wide gesture of peace. "I
want to talk with you a bit." Still Hale watched him closely as he swung
from his horse.
</p>
<p>
"Come in—won't you?" The mountaineer hitched his horse and slouched
within the gate.
</p>
<p>
"Have a seat." Dave dropped to the steps.
</p>
<p>
"I'll set here," he said, and there was an embarrassed silence for a while
between the two. Hale studied young Dave's face from narrowed eyes. He
knew all the threats the Tolliver had made against him, the bitter enmity
that he felt, and that it would last until one or the other was dead. This
was a queer move. The mountaineer took off his slouched hat and ran one
hand through his thick black hair.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon you've heard as how all our folks air sellin' out over the
mountains."
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale quickly.
</p>
<p>
"Well, they air, an' all of 'em are going West—Uncle Judd, Loretty
and June, and all our kinfolks. You didn't know that?"
</p>
<p>
"No," repeated Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Well, they hain't closed all the trades yit," he said, "an' they mought
not go mebbe afore spring. The Falins say they air done now. Uncle Judd
don't believe 'em, but I do, an' I'm thinkin' I won't go. I've got a
leetle money, an' I want to know if I can't buy back Uncle Judd's house
an' a leetle ground around it. Our folks is tired o' fightin' and I
couldn't live on t'other side of the mountain, after they air gone, an'
keep as healthy as on this side—so I thought I'd see if I couldn't
buy back June's old home, mebbe, an' live thar."
</p>
<p>
Hale watched him keenly, wondering what his game was—and he went on:
"I know the house an' land ain't wuth much to your company, an' as the
coal-vein has petered out, I reckon they might not axe much fer it." It
was all out now, and he stopped without looking at Hale. "I ain't axin'
any favours, leastwise not o' you, an' I thought my share o' Mam's farm
mought be enough to git me the house an' some o' the land."
</p>
<p>
"You mean to live there, yourself?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"Alone?" Dave frowned.
</p>
<p>
"I reckon that's my business."
</p>
<p>
"So it is—excuse me." Hale lighted his pipe and the mountaineer
waited—he was a little sullen now.
</p>
<p>
"Well, the company has parted with the land." Dave started.
</p>
<p>
"Sold it?"
</p>
<p>
"In a way—yes."
</p>
<p>
"Well, would you mind tellin' me who bought it—maybe I can git it
from him."
</p>
<p>
"It's mine now," said Hale quietly.
</p>
<p>
"YOURN!" The mountaineer looked incredulous and then he let loose a
scornful laugh.
</p>
<p>
"YOU goin' to live thar?"
</p>
<p>
"Maybe."
</p>
<p>
"Alone?"
</p>
<p>
"That's my business." The mountaineer's face darkened and his fingers
began to twitch.
</p>
<p>
"Well, if you're talkin' 'bout June, hit's MY business. Hit always has
been and hit always will be."
</p>
<p>
"Well, if I was talking about June, I wouldn't consult you."
</p>
<p>
"No, but I'd consult you like hell."
</p>
<p>
"I wish you had the chance," said Hale coolly; "but I wasn't talking about
June." Again Dave laughed harshly, and for a moment his angry eyes rested
on the quiet mill-pond. He went backward suddenly.
</p>
<p>
"You went over thar in Lonesome with your high notions an' your slick
tongue, an' you took June away from me. But she wusn't good enough fer you
THEN—so you filled her up with yo' fool notions an' sent her away to
git her po' little head filled with furrin' ways, so she could be fitten
to marry you. You took her away from her daddy, her family, her kinfolks
and her home, an' you took her away from me; an' now she's been over thar
eatin' her heart out just as she et it out over here when she fust left
home. An' in the end she got so highfalutin that SHE wouldn't marry YOU."
He laughed again and Hale winced under the laugh and the lashing words.
"An' I know you air eatin' yo' heart out, too, because you can't git June,
an' I'm hopin' you'll suffer the torment o' hell as long as you live. God,
she hates ye now! To think o' your knowin' the world and women and books"—he
spoke with vindictive and insulting slowness—"You bein' such a—fool!"
</p>
<p>
"That may all be true, but I think you can talk better outside that gate."
The mountaineer, deceived by Hale's calm voice, sprang to his feet in a
fury, but he was too late. Hale's hand was on the butt of his revolver,
his blue eyes were glittering and a dangerous smile was at his lips.
Silently he sat and silently he pointed his other hand at the gate. Dave
laughed:
</p>
<p>
"D'ye think I'd fight you hyeh? If you killed me, you'd be elected County
Jedge; if I killed you, what chance would I have o' gittin' away? I'd
swing fer it." He was outside the gate now and unhitching his horse. He
started to turn the beasts but Hale stopped him.
</p>
<p>
"Get on from this side, please."
</p>
<p>
With one foot in the stirrup, Dave turned savagely: "Why don't you go up
in the Gap with me now an' fight it out like a man?"
</p>
<p>
"I don't trust you."
</p>
<p>
"I'll git ye over in the mountains some day."
</p>
<p>
"I've no doubt you will, if you have the chance from the bush." Hale was
getting roused now.
</p>
<p>
"Look here," he said suddenly, "you've been threatening me for a long time
now. I've never had any feeling against you. I've never done anything to
you that I hadn't to do. But you've gone a little too far now and I'm
tired. If you can't get over your grudge against me, suppose we go across
the river outside the town-limits, put our guns down and fight it out—fist
and skull."
</p>
<p>
"I'm your man," said Dave eagerly. Looking across the street Hale saw two
men on the porch.
</p>
<p>
"Come on!" he said. The two men were Budd and the new town-sergeant.
"Sam," he said "this gentleman and I are going across the river to have a
little friendly bout, and I wish you'd come along—and you, too,
Bill, to see that Dave here gets fair play."
</p>
<p>
The sergeant spoke to Dave. "You don't need nobody to see that you git
fair play with them two—but I'll go 'long just the same." Hardly a
word was said as the four walked across the bridge and toward a thicket to
the right. Neither Budd nor the sergeant asked the nature of the trouble,
for either could have guessed what it was. Dave tied his horse and, like
Hale, stripped off his coat. The sergeant took charge of Dave's pistol and
Budd of Hale's.
</p>
<p>
"All you've got to do is to keep him away from you," said Budd. "If he
gets his hands on you—you're gone. You know how they fight
rough-and-tumble."
</p>
<p>
Hale nodded—he knew all that himself, and when he looked at Dave's
sturdy neck, and gigantic shoulders, he knew further that if the
mountaineer got him in his grasp he would have to gasp "enough" in a
hurry, or be saved by Budd from being throttled to death.
</p>
<p>
"Are you ready?" Again Hale nodded.
</p>
<p>
"Go ahead, Dave," growled the sergeant, for the job was not to his liking.
Dave did not plunge toward Hale, as the three others expected. On the
contrary, he assumed the conventional attitude of the boxer and advanced
warily, using his head as a diagnostician for Hale's points—and Hale
remembered suddenly that Dave had been away at school for a year. Dave
knew something of the game and the Hon. Sam straightway was anxious, when
the mountaineer ducked and swung his left Budd's heart thumped and he
almost shrank himself from the terrific sweep of the big fist.
</p>
<p>
"God!" he muttered, for had the fist caught Hale's head it must, it
seemed, have crushed it like an egg-shell. Hale coolly withdrew his head
not more than an inch, it seemed to Budd's practised eye, and jabbed his
right with a lightning uppercut into Dave's jaw, that made the mountaineer
reel backward with a grunt of rage and pain, and when he followed it up
with a swing of his left on Dave's right eye and another terrific jolt
with his right on the left jaw, and Budd saw the crazy rage in the
mountaineer's face, he felt easy. In that rage Dave forgot his science as
the Hon. Sam expected, and with a bellow he started at Hale like a
cave-dweller to bite, tear, and throttle, but the lithe figure before him
swayed this way and that like a shadow, and with every side-step a fist
crushed on the mountaineer's nose, chin or jaw, until, blinded with blood
and fury, Dave staggered aside toward the sergeant with the cry of a
madman:
</p>
<p>
"Gimme my gun! I'll kill him! Gimme my gun!" And when the sergeant sprang
forward and caught the mountaineer, he dropped weeping with rage and shame
to the ground.
</p>
<p>
"You two just go back to town," said the sergeant. "I'll take keer of him.
Quick!" and he shook his head as Hale advanced. "He ain't goin' to shake
hands with you."
</p>
<p>
The two turned back across the bridge and Hale went on to Budd's office to
do what he was setting out to do when young Dave came. There he had the
lawyer make out a deed in which the cabin in Lonesome Cove and the acres
about it were conveyed in fee simple to June—her heirs and assigns
forever; but the girl must not know until, Hale said, "her father dies, or
I die, or she marries." When he came out the sergeant was passing the
door.
</p>
<p>
"Ain't no use fightin' with one o' them fellers thataway," he said,
shaking his head. "If he whoops you, he'll crow over you as long as he
lives, and if you whoop him, he'll kill ye the fust chance he gets. You'll
have to watch that feller as long as you live—'specially when he's
drinking. He'll remember that lickin' and want revenge fer it till the
grave. One of you has got to die some day—shore."
</p>
<p>
And the sergeant was right. Dave was going through the Gap at that moment,
cursing, swaying like a drunken man, firing his pistol and shouting his
revenge to the echoing gray walls that took up his cries and sent them
shrieking on the wind up every dark ravine. All the way up the mountain he
was cursing. Under the gentle voice of the big Pine he was cursing still,
and when his lips stopped, his heart was beating curses as he dropped down
the other side of the mountain.
</p>
<p>
When he reached the river, he got off his horse and bathed his mouth and
his eyes again, and he cursed afresh when the blood started afresh at his
lips again. For a while he sat there in his black mood, undecided whether
he should go to his uncle's cabin or go on home. But he had seen a woman's
figure in the garden as he came down the spur, and the thought of June
drew him to the cabin in spite of his shame and the questions that were
sure to be asked. When he passed around the clump of rhododendrons at the
creek, June was in the garden still. She was pruning a rose-bush with
Bub's penknife, and when she heard him coming she wheeled, quivering. She
had been waiting for him all day, and, like an angry goddess, she swept
fiercely toward him. Dave pretended not to see her, but when he swung from
his horse and lifted his sullen eyes, he shrank as though she had lashed
him across them with a whip. Her eyes blazed with murderous fire from her
white face, the penknife in her hand was clenched as though for a deadly
purpose, and on her trembling lips was the same question that she had
asked him at the mill:
</p>
<p>
"Have you done it this time?" she whispered, and then she saw his swollen
mouth and his battered eye. Her fingers relaxed about the handle of the
knife, the fire in her eyes went swiftly down, and with a smile that was
half pity, half contempt, she turned away. She could not have told the
whole truth better in words, even to Dave, and as he looked after her his
every pulse-beat was a new curse, and if at that minute he could have had
Hale's heart he would have eaten it like a savage—raw. For a minute
he hesitated with reins in hand as to whether he should turn now and go
back to the Gap to settle with Hale, and then he threw the reins over a
post. He could bide his time yet a little longer, for a crafty purpose
suddenly entered his brain. Bub met him at the door of the cabin and his
eyes opened.
</p>
<p>
"What's the matter, Dave?"
</p>
<p>
"Oh, nothin'," he said carelessly. "My hoss stumbled comin' down the
mountain an' I went clean over his head." He raised one hand to his mouth
and still Bub was suspicious.
</p>
<p>
"Looks like you been in a fight." The boy began to laugh, but Dave ignored
him and went on into the cabin. Within, he sat where he could see through
the open door.
</p>
<p>
"Whar you been, Dave?" asked old Judd from the corner. Just then he saw
June coming and, pretending to draw on his pipe, he waited until she had
sat down within ear-shot on the edge of the porch.
</p>
<p>
"Who do you reckon owns this house and two hundred acres o' land
roundabouts?"
</p>
<p>
The girl's heart waited apprehensively and she heard her father's deep
voice.
</p>
<p>
"The company owns it." Dave laughed harshly.
</p>
<p>
"Not much—John Hale." The heart out on the porch leaped with
gladness now.
</p>
<p>
"He bought it from the company. It's just as well you're goin' away, Uncle
Judd. He'd put you out."
</p>
<p>
"I reckon not. I got writin' from the company which 'lows me to stay here
two year or more—if I want to."
</p>
<p>
"I don't know. He's a slick one."
</p>
<p>
"I heerd him say," put in Bub stoutly, "that he'd see that we stayed here
jus' as long as we pleased."
</p>
<p>
"Well," said old Judd shortly, "ef we stay here by his favour, we won't
stay long."
</p>
<p>
There was silence for a while. Then Dave spoke again for the listening
ears outside—maliciously:
</p>
<p>
"I went over to the Gap to see if I couldn't git the place myself from the
company. I believe the Falins ain't goin' to bother us an' I ain't
hankerin' to go West. But I told him that you-all was goin' to leave the
mountains and goin' out thar fer good." There was another silence.
</p>
<p>
"He never said a word." Nobody had asked the question, but he was
answering the unspoken one in the heart of June, and that heart sank like
a stone.
</p>
<p>
"He's goin' away hisself-goin' ter-morrow—goin' to that same place
he went before—England, some feller called it."
</p>
<p>
Dave had done his work well. June rose unsteadily, and with one hand on
her heart and the other clutching the railing of the porch, she crept
noiselessly along it, staggered like a wounded thing around the chimney,
through the garden and on, still clutching her heart, to the woods—there
to sob it out on the breast of the only mother she had ever known.
</p>
<p>
Dave was gone when she came back from the woods—calm, dry-eyed,
pale. Her step-mother had kept her dinner for her, and when she said she
wanted nothing to eat, the old woman answered something querulous to which
June made no answer, but went quietly to cleaning away the dishes. For a
while she sat on the porch, and presently she went into her room and for a
few moments she rocked quietly at her window. Hale was going away next
day, and when he came back she would be gone and she would never see him
again. A dry sob shook her body of a sudden, she put both hands to her
head and with wild eyes she sprang to her feet and, catching up her
bonnet, slipped noiselessly out the back door. With hands clenched tight
she forced herself to walk slowly across the foot-bridge, but when the
bushes hid her, she broke into a run as though she were crazed and
escaping a madhouse. At the foot of the spur she turned swiftly up the
mountain and climbed madly, with one hand tight against the little cross
at her throat. He was going away and she must tell him—she must tell
him—what? Behind her a voice was calling, the voice that pleaded all
one night for her not to leave him, that had made that plea a daily
prayer, and it had come from an old man—wounded, broken in health
and heart, and her father. Hale's face was before her, but that voice was
behind, and as she climbed, the face that she was nearing grew fainter,
the voice she was leaving sounded the louder in her ears, and when she
reached the big Pine she dropped helplessly at the base of it, sobbing.
With her tears the madness slowly left her, the old determination came
back again and at last the old sad peace. The sunlight was slanting at a
low angle when she rose to her feet and stood on the cliff overlooking the
valley—her lips parted as when she stood there first, and the tiny
drops drying along the roots of her dull gold hair. And being there for
the last time she thought of that time when she was first there—ages
ago. The great glare of light that she looked for then had come and gone.
There was the smoking monster rushing into the valley and sending echoing
shrieks through the hills—but there was no booted stranger and no
horse issuing from the covert of maple where the path disappeared. A long
time she stood there, with a wandering look of farewell to every familiar
thing before her, but not a tear came now. Only as she turned away at last
her breast heaved and fell with one long breath—that was all.
Passing the Pine slowly, she stopped and turned back to it, unclasping the
necklace from her throat. With trembling fingers she detached from it the
little luck-piece that Hale had given her—the tear of a fairy that
had turned into a tiny cross of stone when a strange messenger brought to
the Virginia valley the story of the crucifixion. The penknife was still
in her pocket, and, opening it, she went behind the Pine and dug a niche
as high and as deep as she could toward its soft old heart. In there she
thrust the tiny symbol, whispering:
</p>
<p>
"I want all the luck you could ever give me, little cross—for HIM."
Then she pulled the fibres down to cover it from sight and, crossing her
hands over the opening, she put her forehead against them and touched her
lips to the tree.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0007" id="linkimage-0007">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/frontispiece.jpg"
alt="Keep It Safe Old Pine, Frontispiece " width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
"Keep it safe, old Pine." Then she lifted her face—looking upward
along its trunk to the blue sky. "And bless him, dear God, and guard him
evermore." She clutched her heart as she turned, and she was clutching it
when she passed into the shadows below, leaving the old Pine to whisper,
when he passed, her love.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Next day the word went round to the clan that the Tollivers would start in
a body one week later for the West. At daybreak, that morning, Uncle Billy
and his wife mounted the old gray horse and rode up the river to say
good-by. They found the cabin in Lonesome Cove deserted. Many things were
left piled in the porch; the Tollivers had left apparently in a great
hurry and the two old people were much mystified. Not until noon did they
learn what the matter was. Only the night before a Tolliver had shot a
Falin and the Falins had gathered to get revenge on Judd that night. The
warning word had been brought to Lonesome Cove by Loretta Tolliver, and it
had come straight from young Buck Falin himself. So June and old Judd and
Bub had fled in the night. At that hour they were on their way to the
railroad—old Judd at the head of his clan—his right arm still
bound to his side, his bushy beard low on his breast, June and Bub on
horseback behind him, the rest strung out behind them, and in a wagon at
the end, with all her household effects, the little old woman in black who
would wait no longer for the Red Fox to arise from the dead. Loretta alone
was missing. She was on her way with young Buck Falin to the railroad on
the other side of the mountains. Between them not a living soul disturbed
the dead stillness of Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0033" id="link2H_4_0033">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXXII
</h2>
<p>
All winter the cabin in Lonesome Cove slept through rain and sleet and
snow, and no foot passed its threshold. Winter broke, floods came and warm
sunshine. A pale green light stole through the trees, shy, ethereal and so
like a mist that it seemed at any moment on the point of floating upward.
Colour came with the wild flowers and song with the wood-thrush. Squirrels
played on the tree-trunks like mischievous children, the brooks sang like
happy human voices through the tremulous underworld and woodpeckers
hammered out the joy of spring, but the awakening only made the desolate
cabin lonelier still. After three warm days in March, Uncle Billy, the
miller, rode up the creek with a hoe over his shoulder—he had
promised this to Hale—for his labour of love in June's garden.
Weeping April passed, May came with rosy face uplifted, and with the birth
of June the laurel emptied its pink-flecked cups and the rhododendron
blazed the way for the summer's coming with white stars.
</p>
<p>
Back to the hills came Hale then, and with all their rich beauty they were
as desolate as when he left them bare with winter, for his mission had
miserably failed. His train creaked and twisted around the benches of the
mountains, and up and down ravines into the hills. The smoke rolled in as
usual through the windows and doors. There was the same crowd of children,
slatternly women and tobacco-spitting men in the dirty day-coaches, and
Hale sat among them—for a Pullman was no longer attached to the
train that ran to the Gap. As he neared the bulk of Powell's mountain and
ran along its mighty flank, he passed the ore-mines. At each one the
commissary was closed, the cheap, dingy little houses stood empty on the
hillsides, and every now and then he would see a tipple and an empty car,
left as it was after dumping its last load of red ore. On the right, as he
approached the station, the big furnace stood like a dead giant, still and
smokeless, and the piles of pig iron were red with rust. The same little
dummy wheezed him into the dead little town. Even the face of the Gap was
a little changed by the gray scar that man had slashed across its mouth,
getting limestone for the groaning monster of a furnace that was now at
peace. The streets were deserted. A new face fronted him at the desk of
the hotel and the eyes of the clerk showed no knowledge of him when he
wrote his name. His supper was coarse, greasy and miserable, his room was
cold (steam heat, it seemed, had been given up), the sheets were
ill-smelling, the mouth of the pitcher was broken, and the one towel had
seen much previous use. But the water was the same, as was the cool,
pungent night-air—both blessed of God—and they were the sole
comforts that were his that night.
</p>
<p>
The next day it was as though he were arranging his own funeral, with but
little hope of a resurrection. The tax-collector met him when he came
downstairs—having seen his name on the register.
</p>
<p>
"You know," he said, "I'll have to add 5 per cent. next month." Hale
smiled.
</p>
<p>
"That won't be much more," he said, and the collector, a new one, laughed
good-naturedly and with understanding turned away. Mechanically he walked
to the Club, but there was no club—then on to the office of The
Progress—the paper that was the boast of the town. The Progress was
defunct and the brilliant editor had left the hills. A boy with an
ink-smeared face was setting type and a pallid gentleman with glasses was
languidly working a hand-press. A pile of fresh-smelling papers lay on a
table, and after a question or two he picked up one. Two of its four pages
were covered with announcements of suits and sales to satisfy judgments—the
printing of which was the raison d'etre of the noble sheet. Down the
column his eye caught John Hale et al. John Hale et al., and he wondered
why "the others" should be so persistently anonymous. There was a cloud of
them—thicker than the smoke of coke-ovens. He had breathed that
thickness for a long time, but he got a fresh sense of suffocation now.
Toward the post-office he moved. Around the corner he came upon one of two
brothers whom he remembered as carpenters. He recalled his inability once
to get that gentleman to hang a door for him. He was a carpenter again now
and he carried a saw and a plane. There was grim humour in the situation.
The carpenter's brother had gone—and he himself could hardly get
enough work, he said, to support his family.
</p>
<p>
"Goin' to start that house of yours?"
</p>
<p>
"I think not," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'd like to get a contract for a chicken-coop just to keep my hand
in."
</p>
<p>
There was more. A two-horse wagon was coming with two cottage-organs
aboard. In the mouth of the slouch-hatted, unshaven driver was a corn-cob
pipe. He pulled in when he saw Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Hello!" he shouted grinning. Good Heavens, was that uncouth figure the
voluble, buoyant, flashy magnate of the old days? It was.
</p>
<p>
"Sellin' organs agin," he said briefly.
</p>
<p>
"And teaching singing-school?"
</p>
<p>
The dethroned king of finance grinned.
</p>
<p>
"Sure! What you doin'?"
</p>
<p>
"Nothing."
</p>
<p>
"Goin' to stay long?"
</p>
<p>
"No."
</p>
<p>
"Well, see you again. So long. Git up!"
</p>
<p>
Wheel-spokes whirred in the air and he saw a buggy, with the top down,
rattling down another street in a cloud of dust. It was the same buggy in
which he had first seen the black-bearded Senator seven years before. It
was the same horse, too, and the Arab-like face and the bushy black
whiskers, save for streaks of gray, were the same. This was the man who
used to buy watches and pianos by the dozen, who one Xmas gave a present
to every living man, woman and child in the town, and under whose colossal
schemes the pillars of the church throughout the State stood as supports.
That far away the eagle-nosed face looked haggard, haunted and all but
spent, and even now he struck Hale as being driven downward like a madman
by the same relentless energy that once had driven him upward. It was the
same story everywhere. Nearly everybody who could get away was gone. Some
of these were young enough to profit by the lesson and take surer root
elsewhere—others were too old for transplanting, and of them would
be heard no more. Others stayed for the reason that getting away was
impossible. These were living, visible tragedies—still hopeful,
pathetically unaware of the leading parts they were playing, and still
weakly waiting for a better day or sinking, as by gravity, back to the old
trades they had practised before the boom. A few sturdy souls, the
fittest, survived—undismayed. Logan was there—lawyer for the
railroad and the coal-company. MacFarlan was a judge, and two or three
others, too, had come through unscathed in spirit and undaunted in
resolution—but gone were the young Bluegrass Kentuckians, the young
Tide-water Virginians, the New England school-teachers, the bankers,
real-estate agents, engineers; gone the gamblers, the wily Jews and the
vagrant women that fringe the incoming tide of a new prosperity—gone—all
gone!
</p>
<p>
Beyond the post-office he turned toward the red-brick house that sat above
the mill-pond. Eagerly he looked for the old mill, and he stopped in
physical pain. The dam had been torn away, the old wheel was gone and a
caved-in roof and supporting walls, drunkenly aslant, were the only
remnants left. A red-haired child stood at the gate before the red-brick
house and Hale asked her a question. The little girl had never heard of
the Widow Crane. Then he walked toward his old office and bedroom. There
was a voice inside his old office when he approached, a tall figure filled
the doorway, a pair of great goggles beamed on him like beacon lights in a
storm, and the Hon. Sam Budd's hand and his were clasped over the gate.
</p>
<p>
"It's all over, Sam."
</p>
<p>
"Don't you worry—come on in."
</p>
<p>
The two sat on the porch. Below it the dimpled river shone through the
rhododendrons and with his eyes fixed on it, the Hon. Sam slowly
approached the thought of each.
</p>
<p>
"The old cabin in Lonesome Cove is just as the Tollivers left it."
</p>
<p>
"None of them ever come back?" Budd shook his head.
</p>
<p>
"No, but one's comin'—Dave."
</p>
<p>
"Dave!"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, an' you know what for."
</p>
<p>
"I suppose so," said Hale carelessly. "Did you send old Judd the deed?"
</p>
<p>
"Sure—along with that fool condition of yours that June shouldn't
know until he was dead or she married. I've never heard a word."
</p>
<p>
"Do you suppose he'll stick to the condition?"
</p>
<p>
"He has stuck," said the Hon. Sam shortly; "otherwise you would have heard
from June."
</p>
<p>
"I'm not going to be here long," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Where you goin'?"
</p>
<p>
"I don't know." Budd puffed his pipe.
</p>
<p>
"Well, while you are here, you want to keep your eye peeled for Dave
Tolliver. I told you that the mountaineer hates as long as he remembers,
and that he never forgets. Do you know that Dave sent his horse back to
the stable here to be hired out for his keep, and told it right and left
that when you came back he was comin', too, and he was goin' to straddle
that horse until he found you, and then one of you had to die? How he
found out you were comin' about this time I don't know, but he has sent
word that he'll be here. Looks like he hasn't made much headway with
June."
</p>
<p>
"I'm not worried."
</p>
<p>
"Well, you better be," said Budd sharply.
</p>
<p>
"Did Uncle Billy plant the garden?"
</p>
<p>
"Flowers and all, just as June always had 'em. He's always had the idea
that June would come back."
</p>
<p>
"Maybe she will."
</p>
<p>
"Not on your life. She might if you went out there for her."
</p>
<p>
Hale looked up quickly and slowly shook his head.
</p>
<p>
"Look here, Jack, you're seein' things wrong. You can't blame that girl
for losing her head after you spoiled and pampered her the way you did.
And with all her sense it was mighty hard for her to understand your being
arrayed against her flesh and blood—law or no law. That's mountain
nature pure and simple, and it comes mighty near bein' human nature the
world over. You never gave her a square chance."
</p>
<p>
"You know what Uncle Billy said?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, an' I know Uncle Billy changed his mind. Go after her."
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale firmly. "It'll take me ten years to get out of debt. I
wouldn't now if I could—on her account."
</p>
<p>
"Nonsense." Hale rose.
</p>
<p>
"I'm going over to take a look around and get some things I left at Uncle
Billy's and then—me for the wide, wide world again."
</p>
<p>
The Hon. Sam took off his spectacles to wipe them, but when Bale's back
was turned, his handkerchief went to his eyes:
</p>
<p>
"Don't you worry, Jack."
</p>
<p>
"All right, Sam."
</p>
<p>
An hour later Hale was at the livery stable for a horse to ride to
Lonesome Cove, for he had sold his big black to help out expenses for the
trip to England. Old Dan Harris, the stableman, stood in the door and
silently he pointed to a gray horse in the barn-yard.
</p>
<p>
"You know that hoss?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"You know whut's he here fer?"
</p>
<p>
"I've heard."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'm lookin' fer Dave every day now."
</p>
<p>
"Well, maybe I'd better ride Dave's horse now," said Hale jestingly.
</p>
<p>
"I wish you would," said old Dan.
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale, "if he's coming, I'll leave the horse so that he can get
to me as quickly as possible. You might send me word, Uncle Dan, ahead, so
that he can't waylay me."
</p>
<p>
"I'll do that very thing," said the old man seriously.
</p>
<p>
"I was joking, Uncle Dan."
</p>
<p>
"But I ain't."
</p>
<p>
The matter was out of Hale's head before he got through the great Gap. How
the memories thronged of June—June—June!
</p>
<p>
"YOU DIDN'T GIVE HER A CHANCE."
</p>
<p>
That was what Budd said. Well, had he given her a chance? Why shouldn't he
go to her and give her the chance now? He shook his shoulders at the
thought and laughed with some bitterness. He hadn't the car-fare for
half-way across the continent—and even if he had, he was a promising
candidate for matrimony!—and again he shook his shoulders and
settled his soul for his purpose. He would get his things together and
leave those hills forever.
</p>
<p>
How lonely had been his trip—how lonely was the God-forsaken little
town behind him! How lonely the road and hills and the little white clouds
in the zenith straight above him—and how unspeakably lonely the
green dome of the great Pine that shot into view from the north as he
turned a clump of rhododendron with uplifted eyes. Not a breath of air
moved. The green expanse about him swept upward like a wave—but
unflecked, motionless, except for the big Pine which, that far away,
looked like a bit of green spray, spouting on its very crest.
</p>
<p>
"Old man," he muttered, "you know—you know." And as to a brother he
climbed toward it.
</p>
<p>
"No wonder they call you Lonesome," he said as he went upward into the
bright stillness, and when he dropped into the dark stillness of shadow
and forest gloom on the other side he said again:
</p>
<p>
"My God, no wonder they call you Lonesome."
</p>
<p>
And still the memories of June thronged—at the brook—at the
river—and when he saw the smokeless chimney of the old cabin, he all
but groaned aloud. But he turned away from it, unable to look again, and
went down the river toward Uncle Billy's mill.
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
* * * * * * *
</pre>
<p>
Old Hon threw her arms around him and kissed him.
</p>
<p>
"John," said Uncle Billy, "I've got three hundred dollars in a old yarn
sock under one of them hearthstones and its yourn. Ole Hon says so too."
</p>
<p>
Hale choked.
</p>
<p>
"I want ye to go to June. Dave'll worry her down and git her if you don't
go, and if he don't worry her down, he'll come back an' try to kill ye.
I've always thought one of ye would have to die fer that gal, an' I want
it to be Dave. You two have got to fight it out some day, and you mought
as well meet him out thar as here. You didn't give that little gal a fair
chance, John, an' I want you to go to June."
</p>
<p>
"No, I can't take your money, Uncle Billy—God bless you and old Hon—I'm
going—I don't know where—and I'm going now."
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0034" id="link2H_4_0034">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXXIII
</h2>
<p>
Clouds were gathering as Hale rode up the river after telling old Hon and
Uncle Billy good-by. He had meant not to go to the cabin in Lonesome Cove,
but when he reached the forks of the road, he stopped his horse and sat in
indecision with his hands folded on the pommel of his saddle and his eyes
on the smokeless chimney. The memories tugging at his heart drew him
irresistibly on, for it was the last time. At a slow walk he went
noiselessly through the deep sand around the clump of rhododendron. The
creek was clear as crystal once more, but no geese cackled and no dog
barked. The door of the spring-house gaped wide, the barn-door sagged on
its hinges, the yard-fence swayed drunkenly, and the cabin was still as a
gravestone. But the garden was alive, and he swung from his horse at the
gate, and with his hands clasped behind his back walked slowly through it.
June's garden! The garden he had planned and planted for June—that
they had tended together and apart and that, thanks to the old miller's
care, was the one thing, save the sky above, left in spirit unchanged. The
periwinkles, pink and white, were almost gone. The flags were at half-mast
and sinking fast. The annunciation lilies were bending their white
foreheads to the near kiss of death, but the pinks were fragrant, the
poppies were poised on slender stalks like brilliant butterflies at rest,
the hollyhocks shook soundless pink bells to the wind, roses as scarlet as
June's lips bloomed everywhere and the richness of mid-summer was at hand.
</p>
<p>
Quietly Hale walked the paths, taking a last farewell of plant and flower,
and only the sudden patter of raindrops made him lift his eyes to the
angry sky. The storm was coming now in earnest and he had hardly time to
lead his horse to the barn and dash to the porch when the very heavens,
with a crash of thunder, broke loose. Sheet after sheet swept down the
mountains like wind-driven clouds of mist thickening into water as they
came. The shingles rattled as though with the heavy slapping of hands, the
pines creaked and the sudden dusk outside made the cabin, when he pushed
the door open, as dark as night. Kindling a fire, he lit his pipe and
waited. The room was damp and musty, but the presence of June almost
smothered him. Once he turned his face. June's door was ajar and the key
was in the lock. He rose to go to it and look within and then dropped
heavily back into his chair. He was anxious to get away now—to get
to work. Several times he rose restlessly and looked out the window. Once
he went outside and crept along the wall of the cabin to the east and the
west, but there was no break of light in the murky sky and he went back to
pipe and fire. By and by the wind died and the rain steadied into a dogged
downpour. He knew what that meant—there would be no letting up now
in the storm, and for another night he was a prisoner. So he went to his
saddle-pockets and pulled out a cake of chocolate, a can of potted ham and
some crackers, munched his supper, went to bed, and lay there with
sleepless eyes, while the lights and shadows from the wind-swayed fire
flicked about him. After a while his body dozed but his racked brain went
seething on in an endless march of fantastic dreams in which June was the
central figure always, until of a sudden young Dave leaped into the centre
of the stage in the dream-tragedy forming in his brain. They were meeting
face to face at last—and the place was the big Pine. Dave's pistol
flashed and his own stuck in the holster as he tried to draw. There was a
crashing report and he sprang upright in bed—but it was a crash of
thunder that wakened him and that in that swift instant perhaps had caused
his dream. The wind had come again and was driving the rain like soft
bullets against the wall of the cabin next which he lay. He got up, threw
another stick of wood on the fire and sat before the leaping blaze,
curiously disturbed but not by the dream. Somehow he was again in doubt—was
he going to stick it out in the mountains after all, and if he should, was
not the reason, deep down in his soul, the foolish hope that June would
come back again. No, he thought, searching himself fiercely, that was not
the reason. He honestly did not know what his duty to her was—what
even was his inmost wish, and almost with a groan he paced the floor to
and fro. Meantime the storm raged. A tree crashed on the mountainside and
the lightning that smote it winked into the cabin so like a mocking,
malignant eye that he stopped in his tracks, threw open the door and
stepped outside as though to face an enemy. The storm was majestic and his
soul went into the mighty conflict of earth and air, whose beginning and
end were in eternity. The very mountain tops were rimmed with zigzag fire,
which shot upward, splitting a sky that was as black as a nether world,
and under it the great trees swayed like willows under rolling clouds of
gray rain. One fiery streak lit up for an instant the big Pine and seemed
to dart straight down upon its proud, tossing crest. For a moment the beat
of the watcher's heart and the flight of his soul stopped still. A
thunderous crash came slowly to his waiting ears, another flash came, and
Hale stumbled, with a sob, back into the cabin. God's finger was pointing
the way now—the big Pine was no more.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0035" id="link2H_4_0035">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXXIV
</h2>
<p>
The big Pine was gone. He had seen it first, one morning at daybreak, when
the valley on the other side was a sea of mist that threw soft, clinging
spray to the very mountain tops—for even above the mists, that
morning, its mighty head arose, sole visible proof that the earth still
slept beneath. He had seen it at noon—but little less majestic,
among the oaks that stood about it; had seen it catching the last light at
sunset, clean-cut against the after-glow, and like a dark, silent,
mysterious sentinel guarding the mountain pass under the moon. He had seen
it giving place with sombre dignity to the passing burst of spring, had
seen it green among dying autumn leaves, green in the gray of winter trees
and still green in a shroud of snow—a changeless promise that the
earth must wake to life again. It had been the beacon that led him into
Lonesome Cove—the beacon that led June into the outer world. From it
her flying feet had carried her into his life—past it, the same feet
had carried her out again. It had been their trysting place—had kept
their secrets like a faithful friend and had stood to him as the
changeless symbol of their love. It had stood a mute but sympathetic
witness of his hopes, his despairs and the struggles that lay between
them. In dark hours it had been a silent comforter, and in the last year
it had almost come to symbolize his better self as to that self he came
slowly back. And in the darkest hour it was the last friend to whom he had
meant to say good-by. Now it was gone. Always he had lifted his eyes to it
every morning when he rose, but now, next morning, he hung back
consciously as one might shrink from looking at the face of a dead friend,
and when at last he raised his head to look upward to it, an impenetrable
shroud of mist lay between them—and he was glad.
</p>
<p>
And still he could not leave. The little creek was a lashing yellow
torrent, and his horse, heavily laden as he must be, could hardly swim
with his weight, too, across so swift a stream. But mountain streams were
like June's temper—up quickly and quickly down—so it was noon
before he plunged into the tide with his saddle-pockets over one shoulder
and his heavy transit under one arm. Even then his snorting horse had to
swim a few yards, and he reached the other bank soaked to his waist line.
But the warm sun came out just as he entered the woods, and as he climbed,
the mists broke about him and scudded upward like white sails before a
driving wind. Once he looked back from a "fire-scald" in the woods at the
lonely cabin in the cove, but it gave him so keen a pain that he would not
look again. The trail was slippery and several times he had to stop to let
his horse rest and to slow the beating of his own heart. But the sunlight
leaped gladly from wet leaf to wet leaf until the trees looked decked out
for unseen fairies, and the birds sang as though there was nothing on
earth but joy for all its creatures, and the blue sky smiled above as
though it had never bred a lightning flash or a storm. Hale dreaded the
last spur before the little Gap was visible, but he hurried up the steep,
and when he lifted his apprehensive eyes, the gladness of the earth was as
nothing to the sudden joy in his own heart. The big Pine stood majestic,
still unscathed, as full of divinity and hope to him as a rainbow in an
eastern sky. Hale dropped his reins, lifted one hand to his dizzy head,
let his transit to the ground, and started for it on a run. Across the
path lay a great oak with a white wound running the length of its mighty
body, from crest to shattered trunk, and over it he leaped, and like a
child caught his old friend in both arms. After all, he was not alone. One
friend would be with him till death, on that border-line between the world
in which he was born and the world he had tried to make his own, and he
could face now the old one again with a stouter heart. There it lay before
him with its smoke and fire and noise and slumbering activities just
awakening to life again. He lifted his clenched fist toward it:
</p>
<p>
"You got ME once," he muttered, "but this time I'll get YOU." He turned
quickly and decisively—there would be no more delay. And he went
back and climbed over the big oak that, instead of his friend, had fallen
victim to the lightning's kindly whim and led his horse out into the
underbrush. As he approached within ten yards of the path, a metallic note
rang faintly on the still air the other side of the Pine and down the
mountain. Something was coming up the path, so he swiftly knotted his
bridle-reins around a sapling, stepped noiselessly into the path and
noiselessly slipped past the big tree where he dropped to his knees,
crawled forward and lay flat, peering over the cliff and down the winding
trail. He had not long to wait. A riderless horse filled the opening in
the covert of leaves that swallowed up the path. It was gray and he knew
it as he knew the saddle as his old enemy's—Dave. Dave had kept his
promise—he had come back. The dream was coming true, and they were
to meet at last face to face. One of them was to strike a trail more
lonesome than the Trail of the Lonesome Pine, and that man would not be
John Hale. One detail of the dream was going to be left out, he thought
grimly, and very quietly he drew his pistol, cocked it, sighted it on the
opening—it was an easy shot—and waited. He would give that
enemy no more chance than he would a mad dog—or would he? The horse
stopped to browse. He waited so long that he began to suspect a trap. He
withdrew his head and looked about him on either side and behind—listening
intently for the cracking of a twig or a footfall. He was about to push
backward to avoid possible attack from the rear, when a shadow shot from
the opening. His face paled and looked sick of a sudden, his clenched
fingers relaxed about the handle of his pistol and he drew it back, still
cocked, turned on his knees, walked past the Pine, and by the fallen oak
stood upright, waiting. He heard a low whistle calling to the horse below
and a shudder ran through him. He heard the horse coming up the path, he
clenched his pistol convulsively, and his eyes, lit by an unearthly fire
and fixed on the edge of the bowlder around which they must come, burned
an instant later on—June. At the cry she gave, he flashed a hunted
look right and left, stepped swiftly to one side and stared past her-still
at the bowlder. She had dropped the reins and started toward him, but at
the Pine she stopped short.
</p>
<p>
"Where is he?"
</p>
<p>
Her lips opened to answer, but no sound came. Hale pointed at the horse
behind her.
</p>
<p>
"That's his. He sent me word. He left that horse in the valley, to ride
over here, when he came back, to kill me. Are you with him?" For a moment
she thought from his wild face that he had gone crazy and she stared
silently. Then she seemed to understand, and with a moan she covered her
face with her hands and sank weeping in a heap at the foot of the Pine.
</p>
<p>
The forgotten pistol dropped, full cocked to the soft earth, and Hale with
bewildered eyes went slowly to her.
</p>
<p>
"Don't cry,"—he said gently, starting to call her name. "Don't cry,"
he repeated, and he waited helplessly.
</p>
<p>
"He's dead. Dave was shot—out—West," she sobbed. "I told him I
was coming back. He gave me his horse. Oh, how could you?"
</p>
<p>
"Why did you come back?" he asked, and she shrank as though he had struck
her—but her sobs stopped and she rose to her feet.
</p>
<p>
"Wait," she said, and she turned from him to wipe her eyes with her
handerchief. Then she faced him.
</p>
<p>
"When dad died, I learned everything. You made him swear never to tell me
and he kept his word until he was on his death-bed. YOU did everything for
me. It was YOUR money. YOU gave me back the old cabin in the Cove. It was
always you, you, YOU, and there was never anybody else but you." She
stopped for Hale's face was as though graven from stone.
</p>
<p>
"And you came back to tell me that?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"You could have written that."
</p>
<p>
"Yes," she faltered, "but I had to tell you face to face."
</p>
<p>
"Is that all?"
</p>
<p>
Again the tears were in her eyes.
</p>
<p>
"No," she said tremulously.
</p>
<p>
"Then I'll say the rest for you. You wanted to come to tell me of the
shame you felt when you knew," she nodded violently—"but you could
have written that, too, and I could have written that you mustn't feel
that way—that" he spoke slowly—"you mustn't rob me of the
dearest happiness I ever knew in my whole life."
</p>
<p>
"I knew you would say that," she said like a submissive child. The
sternness left his face and he was smiling now.
</p>
<p>
"And you wanted to say that the only return you could make was to come
back and be my wife."
</p>
<p>
"Yes," she faltered again, "I did feel that—I did."
</p>
<p>
"You could have written that, too, but you thought you had to PROVE it by
coming back yourself."
</p>
<p>
This time she nodded no assent and her eyes were streaming. He turned away—stretching
out his arms to the woods.
</p>
<p>
"God! Not that—no—no!"
</p>
<p>
"Listen, Jack!" As suddenly his arms dropped. She had controlled her tears
but her lips were quivering.
</p>
<p>
"No, Jack, not that—thank God. I came because I wanted to come," she
said steadily. "I loved you when I went away. I've loved you every minute
since—" her arms were stealing about his neck, her face was upturned
to his and her eyes, moist with gladness, were looking into his wondering
eyes—"and I love you now—Jack."
</p>
<p>
"June!" The leaves about them caught his cry and quivered with the joy of
it, and above their heads the old Pine breathed its blessing with the name—June—June—June.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="link2H_4_0036" id="link2H_4_0036">
<!-- H2 anchor --> </SPAN>
</p>
<div style="height: 4em;">
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</div>
<h2>
XXXV
</h2>
<p>
With a mystified smile but with no question, Hale silently handed his
penknife to June and when, smiling but without a word, she walked behind
the old Pine, he followed her. There he saw her reach up and dig the point
of the knife into the trunk, and when, as he wonderingly watched her, she
gave a sudden cry, Hale sprang toward her. In the hole she was digging he
saw the gleam of gold and then her trembling fingers brought out before
his astonished eyes the little fairy stone that he had given her long ago.
She had left it there for him, she said, through tears, and through his
own tears Hale pointed to the stricken oak:
</p>
<p>
"It saved the Pine," he said.
</p>
<p>
"And you," said June.
</p>
<p>
"And you," repeated Hale solemnly, and while he looked long at her, her
arms dropped slowly to her sides and he said simply:
</p>
<p>
"Come!"
</p>
<p>
Leading the horses, they walked noiselessly through the deep sand around
the clump of rhododendron, and there sat the little cabin of Lonesome
Cove. The holy hush of a cathedral seemed to shut it in from the world, so
still it was below the great trees that stood like sentinels on eternal
guard. Both stopped, and June laid her head on Hale's shoulder and they
simply looked in silence.
</p>
<p>
"Dear old home," she said, with a little sob, and Hale, still silent, drew
her to him.
</p>
<p>
"You were <i>never</i> coming back again?"
</p>
<p>
"I was never coming back again." She clutched his arm fiercely as though
even now something might spirit him away, and she clung to him, while he
hitched the horses and while they walked up the path.
</p>
<p>
"Why, the garden is just as I left it! The very same flowers in the very
same places!" Hale smiled.
</p>
<p>
"Why not? I had Uncle Billy do that."
</p>
<p>
"Oh, you dear—you dear!"
</p>
<p>
Her little room was shuttered tight as it always had been when she was
away, and, as usual, the front door was simply chained on the outside. The
girl turned with a happy sigh and looked about at the nodding flowers and
the woods and the gleaming pool of the river below and up the shimmering
mountain to the big Pine topping it with sombre majesty.
</p>
<p>
"Dear old Pine," she murmured, and almost unconsciously she unchained the
door as she had so often done before, stepped into the dark room, pulling
Hale with one hand after her, and almost unconsciously reaching upward
with the other to the right of the door. Then she cried aloud:
</p>
<p>
"My key—my key is there!"
</p>
<p>
"That was in case you should come back some day."
</p>
<p>
"Oh, I might—I might! and think if I had come too late—think
if I hadn't come <i>now!</i>" Again her voice broke and still holding
Hale's arm, she moved to her own door. She had to use both hands there,
but before she let go, she said almost hysterically:
</p>
<p>
"It's so dark! You won't leave me, dear, if I let you go?"
</p>
<p>
For answer Hale locked his arms around her, and when the door opened, he
went in ahead of her and pushed open the shutters. The low sun flooded the
room and when Hale turned, June was looking with wild eyes from one thing
to another in the room—her rocking-chair at a window, her sewing
close by, a book on the table, her bed made up in the corner, her
washstand of curly maple—the pitcher full of water and clean towels
hanging from the rack. Hale had gotten out the things she had packed away
and the room was just as she had always kept it. She rushed to him,
weeping.
</p>
<p>
"It would have killed me," she sobbed. "It would have killed me." She
strained him tightly to her—her wet face against his cheek: "Think—<i>think</i>—if
I hadn't come now!" Then loosening herself she went all about the room
with a caressing touch to everything, as though it were alive. The book
was the volume of Keats he had given her—which had been loaned to
Loretta before June went away.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, I wrote for it and wrote for it," she said.
</p>
<p>
"I found it in the post-office," said Hale, "and I understood."
</p>
<p>
She went over to the bed.
</p>
<p>
"Oh," she said with a happy laugh. "You've got one slip inside out," and
she whipped the pillow from its place, changed it, and turned down the
edge of the covers in a triangle.
</p>
<p>
"That's the way I used to leave it," she said shyly. Hale smiled.
</p>
<p>
"I never noticed that!" She turned to the bureau and pulled open a drawer.
In there were white things with frills and blue ribbons—and she
flushed.
</p>
<p>
"Oh," she said, "these haven't even been touched." Again Hale smiled but
he said nothing. One glance had told him there were things in that drawer
too sacred for his big hands.
</p>
<p>
"I'm so happy—<i>so</i> happy."
</p>
<p>
Suddenly she looked him over from head to foot—his rough riding
boots, old riding breeches and blue flannel shirt.
</p>
<p>
"I am pretty rough," he said. She flushed, shook her head and looked down
at her smart cloth suit of black.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, <i>you</i> are all right—but you must go out now, just for a
little while."
</p>
<p>
"What are you up to, little girl?"
</p>
<p>
"How I love to hear that again!"
</p>
<p>
"Aren't you afraid I'll run away?" he said at the door.
</p>
<p>
"I'm not afraid of anything else in this world any more."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I won't."
</p>
<p>
He heard her moving around as he sat planning on the porch.
</p>
<p>
"To-morrow," he thought, and then an idea struck him that made him dizzy.
From within June cried:
</p>
<p>
"Here I am," and out she ran in the last crimson gown of her young
girlhood—her sleeves rolled up and her hair braided down her back as
she used to wear it.
</p>
<p>
"You've made up my bed and I'm going to make yours—and I'm going to
cook your supper—why, what's the matter?" Hale's face was radiant
with the heaven-born idea that lighted it, and he seemed hardly to notice
the change she had made. He came over and took her in his arms:
</p>
<p>
"Ah, sweetheart, <i>my</i> sweetheart!" A spasm of anxiety tightened her
throat, but Hale laughed from sheer delight.
</p>
<p>
"Never you mind. It's a secret," and he stood back to look at hen She
blushed as his eyes went downward to her perfect ankles.
</p>
<p>
"It <i>is</i> too short," she said.
</p>
<p>
"No, no, no! Not for me! You're mine now, little girl, <i>mine</i>—do
you understand that?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," she whispered, her mouth trembling, Again he laughed joyously.
</p>
<p>
"Come on!" he cried, and he went into the kitchen and brought out an axe:
</p>
<p>
"I'll cut wood for you." She followed him out to the wood-pile and then
she turned and went into the house. Presently the sound of his axe rang
through the woods, and as he stooped to gather up the wood, he heard a
creaking sound. June was drawing water at the well, and he rushed toward
her:
</p>
<p>
"Here, you mustn't do that."
</p>
<p>
She flashed a happy smile at him.
</p>
<p>
"You just go back and get that wood. I reckon," she used the word
purposely, "I've done this afore." Her strong bare arms were pulling the
leaking moss-covered old bucket swiftly up, hand under hand—so he
got the wood while she emptied the bucket into a pail, and together they
went laughing into the kitchen, and while he built the fire, June got out
the coffee-grinder and the meal to mix, and settled herself with the
grinder in her lap.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, isn't it fun?" She stopped grinding suddenly.
</p>
<p>
"What would the neighbours say?"
</p>
<p>
"We haven't any."
</p>
<p>
"But if we had!"
</p>
<p>
"Terrible!" said Hale with mock solemnity.
</p>
<p>
"I wonder if Uncle Billy is at home," Hale trembled at his luck. "That's a
good idea. I'll ride down for him while you're getting supper."
</p>
<p>
"No, you won't," said June, "I can't spare you. Is that old horn here
yet?"
</p>
<p>
Hale brought it out from behind the cupboard.
</p>
<p>
"I can get him—if he is at home."
</p>
<p>
Hale followed her out to the porch where she put her red mouth to the old
trumpet. One long, mellow hoot rang down the river—and up the hills.
Then there were three short ones and a single long blast again.
</p>
<p>
"That's the old signal," she said. "And he'll know I want him <i>bad</i>."
Then she laughed.
</p>
<p>
"He may think he's dreaming, so I'll blow for him again." And she did.
</p>
<p>
"There, now," she said. "He'll come."
</p>
<p>
It was well she did blow again, for the old miller was not at home and old
Hon, down at the cabin, dropped her iron when she heard the horn and
walked to the door, dazed and listening. Even when it came again she could
hardly believe her ears, and but for her rheumatism, she would herself
have started at once for Lonesome Cove. As it was, she ironed no more, but
sat in the doorway almost beside herself with anxiety and bewilderment,
looking down the road for the old miller to come home.
</p>
<p>
Back the two went into the kitchen and Hale sat at the door watching June
as she fixed the table and made the coffee and corn bread. Once only he
disappeared and that was when suddenly a hen cackled, and with a shout of
laughter he ran out to come back with a fresh egg.
</p>
<p>
"Now, my lord!" said June, her hair falling over her eyes and her face
flushed from the heat.
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale. "I'm going to wait on you."
</p>
<p>
"For the last time," she pleaded, and to please her he did sit down, and
every time she came to his side with something he bent to kiss the hand
that served him.
</p>
<p>
"You're nothing but a big, nice boy," she said. Hale held out a lock of
his hair near the temples and with one finger silently followed the track
of wrinkles in his face.
</p>
<p>
"It's premature," she said, "and I love every one of them." And she
stooped to kiss him on the hair. "And those are nothing but troubles. I'm
going to smooth every one of <i>them</i> away."
</p>
<p>
"If they're troubles, they'll go—now," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
All the time they talked of what they would do with Lonesome Cove.
</p>
<p>
"Even if we do go away, we'll come back once a year," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Yes," nodded June, "once a year."
</p>
<p>
"I'll tear down those mining shacks, float them down the river and sell
them as lumber."
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"And I'll stock the river with bass again."
</p>
<p>
"Yes."
</p>
<p>
"And I'll plant young poplars to cover the sight of every bit of uptorn
earth along the mountain there. I'll bury every bottle and tin can in the
Cove. I'll take away every sign of civilization, every sign of the outside
world."
</p>
<p>
"And leave old Mother Nature to cover up the scars," said June.
</p>
<p>
"So that Lonesome Cove will be just as it was."
</p>
<p>
"Just as it was in the beginning," echoed June.
</p>
<p>
"And shall be to the end," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"And there will never be anybody here but you."
</p>
<p>
"And you," said June.
</p>
<p>
While she cleared the table and washed the dishes Hale fed the horses and
cut more wood, and it was dusk when he came to the porch. Through the door
he saw that she had made his bed in one corner. And through her door he
saw one of the white things, that had lain untouched in her drawer, now
stretched out on her bed.
</p>
<p>
The stars were peeping through the blue spaces of a white-clouded sky and
the moon would be coming by and by. In the garden the flowers were dim,
quiet and restful. A kingfisher screamed from the river. An owl hooted in
the woods and crickets chirped about them, but every passing sound seemed
only to accentuate the stillness in which they were engulfed. Close
together they sat on the old porch and she made him tell of everything
that had happened since she left the mountains, and she told him of her
flight from the mountains and her life in the West—of her father's
death and the homesickness of the ones who still were there.
</p>
<p>
<SPAN name="linkimage-0008" id="linkimage-0008">
<!-- IMG --></SPAN>
</p>
<div class="fig" style="width:80%">
<ANTIMG src="images/0444.jpg" alt="She Made Him Tell of Everything, 0444 "
width="100%" /><br />
</div>
<p>
"Bub is a cowboy and wouldn't come back for the world, but I could never
have been happy there," she said, "even if it hadn't been for you—here."
</p>
<p>
"I'm just a plain civil engineer, now," said Hale, "an engineer without
even a job and—" his face darkened.
</p>
<p>
"It's a shame, sweetheart, for you—" She put one hand over his lips
and with the other turned his face so that she could look into his eyes.
In the mood of bitterness, they did show worn, hollow and sad, and around
them the wrinkles were deep.
</p>
<p>
"Silly," she said, tracing them gently with her finger tips, "I love every
one of them, too," and she leaned over and kissed them.
</p>
<p>
"We're going to be happy each and every day, and all day long! We'll live
at the Gap in winter and I'll teach."
</p>
<p>
"No, you won't."
</p>
<p>
"Then I'll teach <i>you</i> to be patient and how little I care for
anything else in the world while I've got you, and I'll teach you to care
for nothing else while you've got me. And you'll have me, dear, forever
and ever——"
</p>
<p>
"Amen," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
Something rang out in the darkness, far down the river, and both sprang to
their feet. "It's Uncle Billy!" cried June, and she lifted the old horn to
her lips. With the first blare of it, a cheery halloo answered, and a
moment later they could see a gray horse coming up the road—coming
at a gallop, and they went down to the gate and waited.
</p>
<p>
"Hello, Uncle Billy" cried June. The old man answered with a fox-hunting
yell and Hale stepped behind a bush.
</p>
<p>
"Jumping Jehosophat—is that you, June? Air ye all right?"
</p>
<p>
"Yes, Uncle Billy." The old man climbed off his horse with a groan.
</p>
<p>
"Lordy, Lordy, Lordy, but I was skeered!" He had his hands on June's
shoulders and was looking at her with a bewildered face.
</p>
<p>
"What air ye doin' here alone, baby?"
</p>
<p>
June's eyes shone: "Nothing Uncle Billy." Hale stepped into sight.
</p>
<p>
"Oh, ho! I see! You back an' he ain't gone! Well, bless my soul, if this
ain't the beatenest—" he looked from the one to the other and his
kind old face beamed with a joy that was but little less than their own.
</p>
<p>
"You come back to stay?"
</p>
<p>
"My—where's that horn? I want it right now, Ole Hon down thar is
a-thinkin' she's gone crazy and I thought she shorely was when she said
she heard you blow that horn. An' she tol' me the minute I got here, if
hit was you—to blow three times." And straightway three blasts rang
down the river.
</p>
<p>
"Now she's all right, if she don't die o' curiosity afore I git back and
tell her why you come. Why did you come back, baby? Gimme a drink o'
water, son. I reckon me an' that ole hoss hain't travelled sech a gait in
five year."
</p>
<p>
June was whispering something to the old man when Hale came back, and what
it was the old man's face told plainly.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, Uncle Billy—right away," said Hale.
</p>
<p>
"Just as soon as you can git yo' license?" Hale nodded.
</p>
<p>
"An' June says I'm goin' to do It."
</p>
<p>
"Yes," said Hale, "right away."
</p>
<p>
Again June had to tell the story to Uncle Billy that she had told to Hale
and to answer his questions, and it was an hour before the old miller rose
to go. Hale called him then into June's room and showed him a piece of
paper.
</p>
<p>
"Is it good now?" he asked.
</p>
<p>
The old man put on his spectacles, looked at it and chuckled:
</p>
<p>
"Just as good as the day you got hit."
</p>
<p>
"Well, can't you——"
</p>
<p>
"Right now! Does June know?"
</p>
<p>
"Not yet. I'm going to tell her now. June!" he called.
</p>
<p>
"Yes, dear." Uncle Billy moved hurriedly to the door.
</p>
<p>
"You just wait till I git out o' here." He met June in the outer room.
</p>
<p>
"Where are you going, Uncle Billy?"
</p>
<p>
"Go on, baby," he said, hurrying by her, "I'll be back in a minute."
</p>
<p>
She stopped in the doorway—her eyes wide again with sudden anxiety,
but Hale was smiling.
</p>
<p>
"You remember what you said at the Pine, dear?" The girl nodded and she
was smiling now, when with sweet seriousness she said again: "Your least
wish is now law to me, my lord."
</p>
<p>
"Well, I'm going to test it now. I've laid a trap for you." She shook her
head.
</p>
<p>
"And you've walked right into it"
</p>
<p>
"I'm glad." She noticed now the crumpled piece of paper in his hand and
she thought it was some matter of business.
</p>
<p>
"Oh," she said, reproachfully. "You aren't going to bother with anything
of that kind <i>now?</i>"
</p>
<p>
"Yes," he said. "I want you to look over this."
</p>
<p>
"Very well," she said resignedly. He was holding the paper out to her and
she took it and held it to the light of the candle. Her face flamed and
she turned remorseful eyes upon him.
</p>
<p>
"And you've kept that, too, you had it when I——"
</p>
<p>
"When you were wiser maybe than you are now."
</p>
<p>
"God save me from ever being such a fool again." Tears started in her
eyes.
</p>
<p>
"You haven't forgiven me!" she cried.
</p>
<p>
"Uncle Billy says it's as good now as it was then."
</p>
<p>
He was looking at her queerly now and his smile was gone. Slowly his
meaning came to her like the flush that spread over her face and throat.
She drew in one long quivering breath and, with parted lips and her great
shining eyes wide, she looked at him.
</p>
<p>
"Now?" she whispered.
</p>
<p>
"Now!" he said.
</p>
<p>
Her eyes dropped to the coarse gown, she lifted both hands for a moment to
her hair and unconsciously she began to roll one crimson sleeve down her
round, white arm.
</p>
<p>
"No," said Hale, "just as you are."
</p>
<p>
She went to him then, put her arms about his neck, and with head thrown
back she looked at him long with steady eyes.
</p>
<p>
"Yes," she breathed out—"just as you are—and now."
</p>
<p>
Uncle Billy was waiting for them on the porch and when they came out, he
rose to his feet and they faced him, hand in hand. The moon had risen. The
big Pine stood guard on high against the outer world. Nature was their
church and stars were their candles. And as if to give them even a better
light, the moon had sent a luminous sheen down the dark mountainside to
the very garden in which the flowers whispered like waiting happy friends.
Uncle Billy lifted his hand and a hush of expectancy seemed to come even
from the farthest star.
</p>
<p>
<br /><br /><br /><br />
</p>
<pre xml:space="preserve">
End of Project Gutenberg's The Trail of the Lonesome Pine, by John Fox, Jr.